Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

234
Lademoen The Dahl FAMILYTREE March 2012 Øynes Kvæfjord Dale Tromsoe anno 1830 Vadsoe today

Transcript of Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 1: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Lademoen

The Dahl

FAMILYTREE

March 2012

Øynes

Kvæfjord

Dale

Tromsoe anno 1830 Vadsoe today

Page 2: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Dear family and interested readers,

The history of the Dahlfamily and the Dahl-familytree starts with Ole Hansen Dahl as the first

person in the family that used the familyname Dahl. The Dahlfamily tree does not include

information about the families of persons that over the generations have married into the

Dahlfamily. The information is based on inputs from different family members and records of

public sources like church protocols, census records, history books, etc.

This is the second version of the familytree, the first was issued after the Vadsø "Dahl-reunion"

in August 2010. You will find that there is still limited information on several of the family

branches and any inputs from youo will be hioghly appreciated.

The numbers added to or linked to the names, are ID-numbers used as the unique identification

in my family database. There are several persons with the same name(s) and you will by the ID-

number be able to distinguish between them.

I have experienced that details may differ between the different sources and also that I in the

gathering process may have created errors. You are therefore mostly welcomed to send me

corrections to any of the information, names, dates, relations and any other issues.

The Dahl familytree will be accessible on; www.dahlslekt.no,

however restricted by password.

Are you interested, please contact me on; [email protected],

and you will receive your password and you will also be alerted about any new stories and

released information.

March 2012

John Schjelderup Olaisen

Page 3: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 3 of 233

Table of Contents

1 GENERATION 1-2-3 ............................................................................................................. 6

2 GENERATION I .................................................................................................................... 7

2.1 OLE HANSEN DAHL120, 1770-1839 ........................................................................... 7

2.1.1 Name and age ............................................................................................................ 7

2.1.2 Parents/Grandparents ................................................................................................ 8

2.1.3 Spouse-Elen Martha Wold121, 1774-1855 ............................................................... 8

2.1.4 Living areas ............................................................................................................... 8

2.1.5 Professional life ........................................................................................................ 9

3 GENERATION II ................................................................................................................. 11

3.1 BAARD NICOLAI BENJAMIN DAHL53, 1805-1876 ................................................ 11

3.2 SIMON MARENIUS DAHL1811, 1807-1874 .............................................................. 12

3.3 LORENTZ ANDREAS DAHL203, 1810-1860 ............................................................ 13

3.4 OLE JOHAN WOLD DAHL118, 1812-1875................................................................ 14

3.5 ANNE BIRGITTE DAHL104, 1812-1871 .................................................................... 14

3.6 DAHL-WOLD-WITH RELATIONS ............................................................................ 15

4 BAARD NICOLAI BENJAMIN DAHL53-FURTHER GENERATIONS ......................... 16

4.1 OLUF EDVARD MARTIN DAHL146 AND REGINE NATVIG250 ......................... 16

4.2 HERMAN RICHARD KLÆBOE DAHL144 ............................................................... 17

4.2.1 Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl144 and Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen147 ............. 17

4.2.2 Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl144 and Regine Olsen Bøe1648 ............................. 22

4.3 ANNA NICOLINE DAHL247 AND MICHAEL JULIUS HØYEM MICHAELSEN253

........................................................................................................................................ 27

4.4 BAARD NICOLAI DAHL72 AND REGINE BIRGITHE NATVIG250 ..................... 30

4.5 REBEKKA MATHILDE DAHL248 ............................................................................. 33

4.6 JOHAN MARENIUS RASCH DAHL8 ........................................................................ 34

4.6.1 Rolf Engh Johansen Dahl 67................................................................................... 36

4.6.2 Thora Johansdatter Dahl 152 .................................................................................. 36

4.6.3 Erikka Andrea Johansdatter Dahl 153 .................................................................... 36

4.6.4 Johan Nicolai Dahl 154 ........................................................................................... 36

4.6.5 Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 155................................................................................... 37

4.6.6 Evald Dahl 196, 1880-1880 .................................................................................... 37

4.6.7 Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and Anna Eugenie Hansen 4 ........................................... 38

4.6.8 Gustav Johansen Dahl3 and Elen Kristine Aslaksen296 ........................................ 80

4.6.9 Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl1072 ..................................................................... 100

Page 4: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 4 of 233

4.7 MATHILDE SUSANNE DAHL174 AND NIELS ANTON HANSEN AALL175.... 104

4.8 CARL ANTON REINER DAHL83 AND JULIE SOFIE SCHANKE172 ................. 112

4.9 REGNOR FREDRIK LAURITZ DAHL173 ............................................................... 114

4.9.1 Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl113 and Wilhelmina Sofie Johansen Mattila954 .... 114

4.9.2 Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl173 and Marie Lindeberg249 .................................. 140

4.9.3 Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl173 and Martha Andrea Tidemand952 ................... 141

4.10 NICOLAI BENJAMIN DAHL145 .......................................................................... 147

5 SIMON MARENIUS DAHL1811-FURTHER GENERATIONS ..................................... 148

5.1 OLLIE (TILLA) ANDREA ØSTRING1895 ............................................................... 148

5.2 EDUARD CORNELIUS DAHL1836 AND ANNA DORTHEA STRØM1898 ........ 149

5.3 SOFIE MARIE DAHL1835 ......................................................................................... 151

5.4 ELEONORA DITLEFINE DAHL1834 ....................................................................... 151

5.5 ELEONORA ANNE CHRISTINE DAHL1826 AND GUNDER OLSEN HAGEN1825

...................................................................................................................................... 152

5.6 BETZY OLEFINE DAHL1824 AND ANTON JULIUS NELSEN1823 .................... 156

5.7 SIMON NIKOLAI MARENIUS DAHL1816 AND FREDRIKKE OLAVA JOHANNA

BRUUN679............................................................................................................................. 158

5.8 LORENZE OLEA DAHL1815 AND HANS IVERSEN KRONH1814 ..................... 167

5.9 MAREN ANDREA DAHL1810 AND CARL BRAMMER ESBENSEN1809 .......... 170

5.10 HANSINE (SINUS) DAHL1813 ............................................................................. 175

6 LORENTZ ANDREAS DAHL203-FURTHER GENERATIONS .................................... 176

6.1 ELISE DAHL227 ......................................................................................................... 176

6.2 NIKOLAI MARENIUS WOLD DAHL222 ................................................................ 176

6.3 HANS GEORG LORENTZEN DAHL124 AND KAREN DORTHEA

SVENSDATTER STAVSETH127 ......................................................................................... 177

6.4 GOLLA HERTEL LORENTZDATTER DAHL220 ................................................... 179

6.5 LORENTZ ANDREAS LORENTZEN DAHL221 ..................................................... 179

6.6 ANNE REGINE LORENTZDATTER DAHL125 AND BERNT THEODOR AAS126 .

...................................................................................................................................... 180

6.7 BETZY KRISTINE DAHL224 AND THOR SOLEGLAD230 .................................. 184

6.8 ELISE OTHILDE DAHL109 AND BERNHARD MARTIN ACKERMAND110 .... 186

6.9 THEODOR FREDRIK LORENTZEN DAHL113 ...................................................... 187

6.10 CAROLINE JOHANNE DAHL779 AND HANS CHRISTIAN INGEMANN

ØSTVOLD775 ........................................................................................................................ 188

6.11 ELISE DAHL227 ..................................................................................................... 193

6.12 NIKOLAI MARENIUS WOLD DAHL222............................................................. 193

Page 5: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 5 of 233

7 OLE JOHAN WOLD DAHL118-FURTHER GENERATIONS ....................................... 194

7.1 FLORA JENSINE FREDRICIA DAHL242 AND JOHAN EMIL NICOLAISEN246 ....

...................................................................................................................................... 194

7.2 OLE CHRISTIAN WOLD DAHL243 ......................................................................... 194

7.3 ELLEN MARIE DAHL244 ......................................................................................... 194

7.4 PEDER C. KJ. DAHL245 ............................................................................................ 194

8 ANNE BIRGITHE DAHL104-FURTHER GENERATIONS ........................................... 195

8.1 SIVERT REGOR WITH232 ........................................................................................ 195

8.2 SIVERT ODIN WITH233 ........................................................................................... 195

8.3 EDVIN MARENIUS WITH234 AND JENSINE MARIE JØRGENSDATTER683,

MAREN AMUNDSEN1464 .................................................................................................. 196

8.4 SIVERT ANTON DAHL WITH235 AND JOHANNE BERNHOFT KILDAL688,

SARA KAROLINE KRISTINE BRISZACH689 .................................................................. 199

8.5 RICHARD BERNHARD WITH156 AND OLINE SOPHIE WENNBERG313,

AUGUSTA SEPTIME WENNBERG698 .............................................................................. 203

8.6 ANNA SUSANNE WITH239 AND ANTON MARIUS SCHULTZE241 ................. 209

8.7 OLE WOLD DAHL WITH237.................................................................................... 211

8.8 EMMA WITH1037 ...................................................................................................... 211

8.9 EMMA KAROLINE WITH236................................................................................... 211

8.10 DANIEL ANDREAS WITH240 AND AXELINE SCHIOTZ705 .......................... 212

9 DAHL EMIGRANTS ......................................................................................................... 216

10 GEOGRAPHY .................................................................................................................... 217

10.1 KVAEFIORD ........................................................................................................... 218

10.2 TRONDHEIM .......................................................................................................... 218

10.3 TROMSOE ............................................................................................................... 219

10.4 VADSOE .................................................................................................................. 221

11 INDEX ................................................................................................................................ 223

Page 6: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 6 of 233

1 GENERATION 1-2-3

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Østring Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Olu

f Ed

va

rd M

artin

Da

hl,1

82

9-5

7

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-?

?

An

na

Nic

olin

e D

ah

l,18

34

-58

Mic

ha

el J

uliu

s H

øye

m M

ich

ae

lse

n,1

82

1-0

1

He

rma

n R

ich

ard

Klæ

bo

e D

ah

l,18

31

-19

09

(i) Viv

ikke

Ma

rku

sse

n

(ii) Re

gin

a O

lse

n B

øe,1

8+

+-1

92

6

Ba

ard

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,1

83

6-6

3

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-?

?

Re

be

cca

Ma

thild

e D

ah

l,18

38

-xx

No

t ma

rried

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,d

ied

as a

ch

ild

Jo

ha

n M

are

niu

s R

asch

Da

hl,1

84

0-9

4

(i) An

dre

a E

rikka

Esb

en

se

n,1

83

9-1

8

(ii)Birth

e M

orte

nsd

atte

r,

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42

-10

Nie

ls A

nto

n H

an

se

n A

all,1

83

3-9

6

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l,18

45

-89

Ju

lie S

op

hie

Sch

an

ke

,18

46-?

Re

gn

or F

red

rik L

au

ritz D

ah

l,18

49

-32

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila,

(ii) Ma

rie L

ind

eb

erg

,18

45-8

9

(iii) Ma

rtha

An

dre

a T

ide

ma

nd

,18

62-4

9

Ed

ua

rd C

orn

eliu

s D

ah

l,18

33-1

90

5

(i)Th

ea

, 18

53

(ii)An

na

Do

rthe

a S

trøm

, 18

54

So

ph

ie M

arie

Da

hl,1

83

5-1

90

2

Ele

on

ora

Ditle

fine

Da

hl,1

83

8-1

84

0

Ele

on

ora

An

ne

Ch

ristin

a D

ah

l,18

38

-19

02

Gu

nd

er O

lse

n H

ag

en

,18

26

-19

14

Be

tzy O

lefin

e D

ah

l,18

42

-19

07

An

tho

n J

uliu

s N

iels

en

, 18

44

-18

80

Sim

on

Nic

ola

i Ma

ren

ius D

ah

l,18

43-1

91

4

Fre

drik

ke

Jo

ha

nn

a O

lava

Bru

un,1

84

9-1

94

4

Ma

ren

An

dre

a D

ah

l,18

49

-19

14

Ca

rl Bra

mm

er E

sb

en

se

n,1

84

6-1

91

4

Ha

nsin

e B

erg

itte D

ah

l,18

54

-19

41

Ole

Ch

ristia

n W

old

Da

hl, 1

84

4

Flo

ra J

en

sin

e F

red

ricia

Da

hl, 1

83

8

Jo

ha

n E

mil N

ico

lais

en, 1

83

0-

Ele

n M

arie

Da

hl

Pe

de

r C.K

.Da

hl,

Siv

ert R

eg

no

r With

,18

37

-38

Die

d a

s a

ch

ild

Siv

ert O

din

With

,18

39-4

1

Die

d a

s a

ch

ild

Ed

vin

Ma

ren

ius W

ith,1

84

1-3

3

(i) Je

nsin

e M

arie

rge

nsd

atte

r,18

47

-?

(ii) Ma

ren

Am

un

dse

n

Siv

ert A

nto

n D

ah

l With

,18

44

(i) Jo

ha

nn

e B

ern

ho

ft Kild

al,1

84

7-7

1

(ii) Sa

ra K

aro

line

Kris

tine

Bris

za

ch

, 18

47

-?

Ric

ha

rd B

ern

ha

rd W

ith, 1

84

6-3

0

(i)Olin

e S

op

hie

We

nn

be

rg,1

84

4-7

8

(ii) Au

gu

sta

Se

ptim

a W

en

nb

erg

,18

47

-38

An

na

Su

sa

nn

e W

ith,1

84

9-3

0

An

ton

Ma

rius S

ch

ultz

e,1

84

6-?

Ole

Wo

ld D

ah

l With

,18

51

Em

ma

With

,18

53

Em

ma

Ka

rolin

e,1

85

4-?

Da

nie

l An

dre

as W

ith,1

85

9-3

7

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1807-1874

Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1816-1866

Elis

e D

ah

l

Nik

ola

i Ma

ren

ius W

old

Da

hl

Ha

ns G

eo

rg L

ore

ntz

en

Da

hl,1

83

1

Ka

ren

Do

rthe

a S

tavse

th,1

83

1

Go

lla H

erte

l Da

hl,1

83

8

W. A

nd

ers

en

Lo

ren

tz A

nd

rea

s D

ah

l,18

40

An

ne

Re

gin

e D

ah

l,18

44

-11

Be

rnt T

he

od

or A

as,1

84

0-1

6

Be

tzy K

ristin

e D

ah

l18

46

-93

Th

or S

ole

gla

d,1

82

4-0

0

Elis

e O

tilde

Da

hl,1

84

8-7

3

Be

rnh

ard

Ma

rtin A

cke

rma

nd

,18

44

-16

Th

eo

do

r Fre

drik

Da

hl,1

85

0

Ca

rolin

e J

oh

an

ne

Da

hl,1

85

4

Ha

ns C

hris

tian

Ing

em

an

n Ø

stv

old

,18

47

-32

Page 7: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 7 of 233

2 GENERATION I

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1774(71), d. 1839

Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Hans Rasmussen, 1751-1777

Beret Andersdatter, 1740-1812

(not married)

Rasmus Mathiassen,1725-1770

Maren Pedersdatter,17??-1755Parents unknown

Baard Larsen Wold, 1733-1811

Anne Martha Pedersdatter, 1736-1809

Parents unknown

2.1 OLE HANSEN DAHL120, 1770-1839

2.1.1 Name and age

Ole Hansen Dahl 120 was the first Dahl in the family. He was baptized on March 13th

1774 as

Ole Hansen and he did sometime later add the Dahl to his name. The Dahl name derives of the

farm, Dale, where Ole grew up.

Ole was born at the farm named Dale in Kvæfjord.

Ole’s date of birth is not verified. There are different dates for his birth;

(i) Records of Kvæfjord Church, he was according to the Church records (Kvæfjord) baptized on

March 13th

1774 and he would as normal at that time then be some weeks old.

Ole passed confirmation at the Kvæfjord Church on November 8

th 1789 and he would according

to the traditions then be 15 years old, meaning born in 1774.

(ii) Ole is in the 1801 census for Steigen/Kierringeøe stated to be 31 years old, meaning born in

1770.

Page 8: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 8 of 233

Folden Kierringøe Kierringøe Ole Hansen Dahl 31 år Ugift Skoleholder i præstegjeldets søndre deel

(iii) Ole is in the military register of 1811 stated as 41 years old, meaning born in 1770.

(iv) Ole died June 1st 1839 in Tromsø, buried on June 6

th 1839 and the Tromsø Church records

states him then as 72 years old, meaning born in 1767.

2.1.2 Parents/Grandparents

Ole’s parents were Beret Andersdatter 974, 1740-1812, and Hans Rasmussen 973, 1751-1777.

Beret and Hans did not marry and they both died as single.

There is no verified information about Beret’s background or parents. She was in the 1801-

census stated as the sister of the farm-owner, Nils Pedersen 732, that at that time owned the farm

Dale. Nils was also the local sheriff. Ole lived on the farm together with his mother until he in

the late 1790ties moved to Kierringoey (Kjerringøy).

Hans Rasmussen was the son of Maren Pedersdatter 966, 17??-1755, and Rasmus Mathiassen 719,

1725-1770. The Mathiassen-family lived on Kveøy (a smaller island) in Kvæfjord when Hans

was born. When his mother,Maren, died in 1755, the family moved to the farm Dale on the

Kvæfjord mainland.

Nils Pedersen, half-brother of Ole’s mother Beret Andersdatter, took over the farm when Rasmus

Mathiassen died in 1770.

2.1.3 Spouse-Elen Martha Wold121, 1774-1855

Ole was married to Elen Martha Wold 121 from Strinda, Trondheim, in Bakklandet Church on

August 3rd

1804.

Elen Martha was born at Strinda in 1774 and died in Tromsø in 1855. Elen’s parents were Anne

Martha Pedersdatter 282, 1736-1809, and Baard Larsen Wold 281, 1733-1811. Baard was a

farmer and the local sheriff at Strinda.

2.1.4 Living areas

Childhood; born and grew up at the farm “Dale” in Kvæfjord

About 1800; moved to Kierringøe in Steigen

1809; moved to Vik in Ibestad

1817, moved to Tromsø

Page 9: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 9 of 233

2.1.5 Professional life

Ole was taught to read and write by Johan Lorentz Buchardt, vicar in Kvæfjord from 1780 to

1815, and he became a teacher in Kvæfjord around 1795.

Ole was employed as teacher and parish clerk in Kierringøe in 1800. He lived at the vicar’s farm

and he married Elen Martha and the two elder sons, Baard Nicolai Benjamin, 1805, and Simon

Marenius, 1807, were born here.

Kierringøe and Vik in Ibestad, anno 2010

Tromsø anno 1830 and 1950

Ole’s living house was located here

Page 10: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 10 of 233

In 1808 Ole was recruited as teacher and parish clerk in Vik in Ibestad where he also got a small

farm as part of the remuneration package. Ole was in Vik out of the four teachers, the only one

recognized to be able to both read and write. Three more children were born in Vik, Lorentz

Andreas, 1810, Ole Johan, 1812, and Anne Birgitte, 1814. Ole’s mother, Beret Andersdatter,

moved to Vik and lived together with Ole’s family until 1812 when she died.

In 1818 Ole was headhunted as teacher and parish clerk to Tromsø, the “upcoming” community

of the north at that time and today the capital of Northern Norway. Ole sold the farm in Vik and

in Tromsø he got a bigger farm outside the centre and he also got a site in the main street of the

centre where he built the living house for the family. Ole was highly respected both as teacher

and manager of the parish and he is mentioned in several historical reports and books.

Page 11: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 11 of 233

3 GENERATION II

3.1 BAARD NICOLAI BENJAMIN DAHL53, 1805-1876

Baard Nicolai Benjamin Dahl 53 was born in Steigen on November 5th

1805.

Baard arrived as teenager with the family to Tromsø in 1818, passed confirmation on November

16th

1821 and worked as an assistant in the Tromsø business community.

He was for a period of 2 years employed as manager of the Kjelvika-fishingvillage in Finnmark,

he returned to Tromsø in 1828. He received his own business license in 1829 and joined

partnership with his younger brother Simon Marenius Dahl in 1833.

Married to Maren Anna Klæboe 54 in 1828 and moved to Vadsø in 1838. They had five children

when living in Tromsø and the family was increased by another five children after moving to

Vadsø.

Baard worked in Vadsø as a business partner with his younger brother Lorentz Andreas Dahl 203

that had moved to Vadsø some years earlier. He was from 1838 also managing the postal service

of the area. The volume of post was increasing and when Baard was employed as financial

manager of the local hospital, he was in 1856 dismissed from the postal service.

Baard died in Vadsø on August 12th

1876.

Spouse-Maren Anna Klæboe54, 1808-1880

Maren Anna was born in Skjervøy on June 4th

1808.

Maren Anna Klæboe 54 was the daughter of Susanna Margrethe Hess 660 and Henrik Johan

Klæboe 659 that owned the business centre Straumfjord in Skjervøy. The records of both the

Hess- and the Klæboe-families go back to the vikings in the early days of the Norwegian history.

When Baard died in 1876, Maren Anna moved to Øksnes and lived with her daughter’s family,

Mathilde Susanne Dahl 174 and Niels Anton Hansen Aall 175, until she died on February 27th

1880.

Children

Children of Maren Anna Klæboe54 and Baard Nicolai Benjamin Dahl 53:

1. Oluf Edvard Martin Dahl 146, b.1829, d.1857,

2. Herman Richard Dahl 144, b.1831, d. 1909

3. Anna Nicoline Dahl 247, b.1834, d.1858

4. Baard Nikolai Dahl 72, b.1836,d.1863

5. Rebekka Mathilde Dahl 248, b. 1838

6. Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8, b.1840, d.1894

7. Mathilde Susanne Dahl 174, b.1842, d.1910

8. Carl Anton Reiner Dahl 83, b.1845, d.1889

9. Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl 173, b.1849, d.1932

10. Nikolai Benjamin Dahl 145, b.1852

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Page 12: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 12 of 233

3.2 SIMON MARENIUS DAHL1811, 1807-1874

Simon Marenius Dahl 1811 was born in Steigen on June 11

th 1807.

Simon arrived with the Dahlfamily to Tromsø in 1818 and worked as an assistant in the Tromsø

business community. He was travelling abroad as a sailor for some years and worked also with

the Henrich Aas business in Røros (Southern Norway) for a couple of years. The love to his

youth darling, Sophie Andrea Andersen 661 now a widow from her first marriage with Ole

Andreas Østring 1894 from Bergen, brought Simon back to Tromsø, firstly working at the public

officer’s office and then he got his own business license in 1833 and joined partnership with his

elder brother Baard. Simon continued the business for about another 20 years after Baard moved

to Vadsø and he invested in shipping and transport. Simon and the family moved to Hammerfest

where he in 1855 was employed as the customs officer.

Simon was because of his hair and beard recognized as the “Arab Dahl”.

Simon died in Hammerfest in 1874.

Spouse-Sophie Andrea Andersen661, 1807-1893

Sophie Andrea Andersen 661 was born in Tromsø on November 29th

1807. Sophie was firstly in

1828 married to Ole Andreas Østring 1894 from Bergen, who died in a shipwreck a few weeks

after their marriage. As a widow she married to Simon in 1835. When Simon died Sophie moved

to her son Simon 1816 that was the vicar in Rødøy, Helgeland, and she died there on February 5th

1893.

Children

Sophie’s and Simon’s children;

1. Andrea Ollie (Tilla) Østring 1895, b.1830, d.1867

(daughter of Sophie and Ole Andreas Østring)

2. Eduard Cornelius Dahl 1836, b.1835,

3. Sofie Marie Dahl 1835, b.1837

4. Eleonore Ditlefine Dahl 1834, b.1838

5. Elenore Anne Christina Dahl 1826, b.1840, d.1902,

6. Betzy Olefine Dahl 1824, b.1842,

7. Simon Nikolai Marenius Dahl 1816, b.1843,

8. Maren Andrea Dahl 1810, b.1840, d.1914,

9. Lorentze Olea Dahl1815, b.1846

10. Hansine (Sinus) Bergitte Dahl 1813, b.1854

Page 13: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 13 of 233

3.3 LORENTZ ANDREAS DAHL203, 1810-1860

Lorentz Andreas Dahl 203 was born in Vik, Ibestad, May 6th

1810.

Lorentz arrived with the Dahlfamily to Tromsø in 1818 and worked as an assistant in the Tromsø

business community. He moved to Vadsø in 1833 where he got his own business license and he

was also the Russian consul in Vadsø.

Lorentz died in Vadsø on February 10th

1860.

Spouse-Golla Hansdatter Hertel 205, 1813-1866

Golla Hansdatter Hertel 205 was born in Berg, Tromsø, in 1813 and she died in Vadsø on August

12th

1866. Golla was the daughter of Gurina Mariea Nilsdatter 663 and Hans Henrik Richardsen

Hertel 662 living on Berg in Tromsø. The Hertel family came from Germany to Norway in the

1700 hundred.

Children

Children of Golla Hansdatter Hertel205 and Lorentz Andreas Dahl203:

1. Hans Georg Dahl 124, b.1831,

2. Lorentz Andreas Dahl 221, b.1840

3. Anna Regine Dahl 125, b.1844,

4. Bethie/Betzy Kristine Dahl 224, b.1846, d.1893,

5. Elise (Lisa) Othilde Dahl 109, b.1848, d.1873,

The Simon Dahl family around 1865.

In front: Sophie Andrea Andersen (mother) and Simon Marenius Dahl (father)

From the left: Maren Andrea, Simon Nikolai Marenius, Betzy Olufine, Hans Iversen Krohn, Lorentze Olea

(married to Hans Iversen Krohn), Eduard Cornelius, Eleonora Ane Christine and Sophie Marie. In the middle

between mother and father, Hansine (Sinus) Bergitte.

Page 14: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 14 of 233

6. Theodor Fredrik Dahl 113, b.1850

7. Caroline Johanne Dahl 779, b.1854

8. Elise (2) Dahl 227,

9. Nikolai Marenius Wold Dahl 222,

3.4 OLE JOHAN WOLD DAHL118, 1812-1875

Ole Johan Wold Dahl 118 was born in Vik, Ibestad, on August 2

nd 1812.

Ole Johan followed his father as the parish clerk and teacher at the Tromsø public school that

had been re-organized under his father’s management. Ole Johan was educated as teacher and

parish clerk by his father in law, the Dean in Tromsø.

Ole Johan died in 1875 in Tromsø.

Spouse-Andrea Maria Rasmussen119, 1811-

Andrea Maria Rasmussen 119 born in Stavanger in 1811 and she was the daughter of Christine

Marie Andrup 806 from Denmark and Jens Florup Rasmussen 805, the Dean in Tromsø, and she

was born in Bergen in 1783.

Children

Children of Andrea Marie Rasmussen and Ole Johan:

1. Flora Jensine Fredricia Dahl 242, 1838,

2. Ole Christian Wold Dahl 243, 1844

3. Elen Marie Dahl 244,

4. Peder C. Kj. Dahl 245,

3.5 ANNE BIRGITTE DAHL104, 1812-1871

Anne Birgitte Dahl 104 was born in Vik, Ibestad, on November 5th

1814.

She died in Andenes on December 26th

1871.

Spouse-Sivert Regnor With106, 1810-1897

Sivert Regnor With 106 was born in Trondheim in 1810. He was his wife’s cousin as his mother

Regine Birgitte Wold 810, was Anne Birgitte’s aunt and sister of Anne Birgitte’s mother, Elen

Martha Wold 121. Sivert was a sea-captain and he “went ashore” when he in 1859 employed as

the first lighthouse manager of the new Andenes Lighthouse.

Page 15: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 15 of 233

Children

Children of Anne Birgitte and Sivert Regnor With:

1. Sivert Regnor With 232, b.1837, d.1838

2. Sivert Odin With 233, b.1839, d.1841

3. Edvin Marenius With 234, b.1841, d.1933

4. Sivert Anton Dahl With 235, b.1844

5. Richard Bernhard With 156, b.1846, d.1930,

6. Anna Susanne With 239, b.1849, d.1930,

7. Ole Wold Dahl With 237, b.1851, d.1851

8. Emma With 1037, b.1853, d.1853

9. Emma Karoline With 236, b.1854, died as a child

10. Daniel Andreas With 240, b.1857, d.1937

3.6 DAHL-WOLD-WITH RELATIONS

There were during the 1800ties several relationships between the Dahl-Wold-With families.

Richard With(1) Oline Wennberg

(2).Augusta Wennberg

Ole Simonsen WennbergCaroline Sophie Wold

Sivert RegnorWithAnne Birgitte Dahl

Baard WoldEllen Martha Pedersdatter

Sivert Haandorph WithRegine Birgitte Wold

Simen Baardsen WoldWife-unknown

Ole Hansen DahlEllen Martha Wold

Susanne Dorthea WithSøren Natvig

Regina Natvig(1) Oluf Edvard Martin Dahl

(2) Baard Nikolai Dahl

Baard Nikolai Benjamin DahlMaren Anna Klæboe

Anne Birgitte and

Sivert married in Tromsø in 1835

Page 16: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 16 of 233

4 BAARD NICOLAI BENJAMIN DAHL53-FURTHER

GENERATIONS

4.1 OLUF EDVARD MARTIN DAHL146 AND REGINE NATVIG250

Oluf was born in Tromsø in 1829. He was a sea-captain and he died in a shipwreck outside the

island Røst in Lofoten in January 1857.

Spouse-Regine Birgitte Natvig 250

Regine Birgitte Natvig 250 was born in Trondheim in 1827. Regine and Oluf as well as her

second husband Baard Ncolai Dahl 72 were second-cousins as Regine’s grandmother, Regine

Birgitte Wold 810, that was the sister of Oluf’s and Baard’s grandmother, Ellen Martha Wold 121.

Regine Birgitte Natvig emigrated to the USA about 1885.

Children

Regine and Oluf had the son Sofus Calmeyer Dahl 263 born in 1855 and that died only some

months old.

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Olu

f Ed

va

rd M

artin

Da

hl, 1

82

9-5

7

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-?

?

An

na

Nic

olin

e D

ah

l,18

34

-58

Mic

ha

el J

uliu

s H

øye

m

Mic

ha

els

en

,18

21

-01

He

rma

n R

ich

ard

Klæ

bo

e D

ah

l,18

31

-

19

09

(i) Viv

ikke

Ma

rku

sse

n

Ba

ard

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,1

83

6-6

3

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-?

?

Re

be

cca

Ma

thild

e D

ah

l,18

38

-xx

No

t ma

rried

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,d

ied

as a

ch

ild

Jo

ha

n M

are

niu

s R

asch

Da

hl,1

84

0-9

4

(i) An

dre

a E

rikka

Esb

en

se

n,1

83

9-1

8

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42

-10

Nie

ls A

nto

n H

an

se

n A

all,1

83

3-9

6

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l,18

45

-89

Ju

lie S

op

hie

Sch

an

ke

,18

46

-?

Re

gn

or F

red

rik L

au

ritz D

ah

l,18

49

-32

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila,

Page 17: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 17 of 233

4.2 HERMAN RICHARD KLÆBOE DAHL144

4.2.1 Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl144 and Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen147

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839

Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl,1831-1909

(i) Vivikke Markussen, 1830-

Knut Juel Dahl,1856-1895

Anna Margrete Pettersen,1955-1894

Olaf Georg Dahl, 1858-

Adolph Herman Dahl, 1861

Anton Dahl, 1879

Olaf D

ahl, 1877-

Knut D

ahl, 1879-

Sverre D

ahl, 1880-

Torleif D

ahl, 1881-

Trygve D

ahl, 1883-1884

Borghild D

ahl, 1885-1972

Ragnvald D

ahl, 1887-

Vibeke E

lisabeth Dahl,1889-

Trygve D

ahl, 1892-

Anna M

argrethe Dahl,

Elsa D

ahl, 1914-1998

Aase D

ahl, 1917-1973

Fletcher D

ahl

Oluf E

dvard Martin D

ahl, 1829-57

Regine N

atvig,1832-??

Anna N

icoline Dahl,1834-58

Michael Julius H

øyem

Michaelsen,1821-01

Baard N

icolai Dahl,1836-63

Regine N

atvig,1832-??

Rebecca M

athilde Dahl,1838-xx

Not m

arried

Nicolai D

ahl,died as a child

Johan Marenius R

asch Dahl,1840-94

(i) Andrea E

rikka Esbensen,1839-18

(2)Birthe M

ortensdatter,

Mathilde S

usanne Dahl,1842-10

Niels A

nton Hansen A

all,1833-96

Carl A

nthon Reiner D

ahl,1845-89

Julie Sophie S

chanke,1846-?

Regnor F

redrik Lauritz Dahl,1849-32

(i)Wilhelm

ina Mattila,

(2)Marie Lindeberg,1845-1889

(3)Martha A

ndreaTiedem

and,1862-

1949

Page 18: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 18 of 233

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl 144 Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl 144 was born in Tromsø on April 20th 1831 and he grew up in

Vadsø where to he arrived with the family in 1838.was born on 20 Apr 1831. He died in Seattle,

USA, on 21 Nov 1909. He was the son of Baard Nikolai Benjamin Dahl 53 and of Maren Anna

Henriksdatter Klæboe 54.He was baptised on 3 Aug 1831.

Herman worked as an assistant at the firm A.G. Norvis’ branch in Vadsø, the firm Novis’

headoffice was in Mortensnes, Nesseby. Herman got his own business license in 1860 and

started the development of what became one of the biggest businesses even in today’s history of

Vadsø. The business included several industries and branches around the Varangerfjord. It

covered different activities in trade, shipping, seal hunting, whaling and industrial production.

The downturn in the economy and international financial crisis forced Herman into bankruptcy

in the late 1870-ties and he then worked with a local businessman, Monrad Tvende, in Nesseby

until he emigrated to the USA in 1885. His first wife left the family when Herman’s business

collapsed and Herman travelled alone to the US.

Herman first settled in Hannock, upper Michigan, where he for a short period was involved in

fisheries on Lake Superior. The fishing business failed and he established himself as doctor

moving around in Michigan, Iowa and Wisconsin. In 1890 he moved to Seattle.

In Seattle Herman in 1890 married Regine Olsen Bøe 1648 from Sokndal, Ryfylke, Norway.

Page 19: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 19 of 233

The “Herman Dahl Street” in Vadsø.

Spouse I-Vivikke Markussen 147

Vivikke was born in 1830 in Copenhagen, Denmark. She was married to Herman in Vadsø on

March 24th

1856. There is so far no information about her arrival to Vadsø. Vivikke most

probably left the family and Norway and she moved back to Denmark when Herman’s business

failed around 1880. There is no information about any divorce. There is information indicating

that Vivikke died in Denmark in 1901.

Children of Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen 147 and Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl 144

1. Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl 148 , Birth: 29 Aug 1856, Death: 1895

2. Olaf Georg Martin Hermansen Dahl 149, Birth: 1858, Death:

3. Adolph Herman Hermansen Dahl 150, Birth: 1861, Death: in USA

4. Anton Hermansen Dahl 665, Birth: 1879, Death: in USA

Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl 148 Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl 148 was born on 29 Aug 1856. He died in 1895. He was the son

of Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl 144 and of Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen 147.

Children of Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl 148 and Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164

1. Olaf Dahl 1681, Birth: 7 Dec 1877

2. Knut Dahl 1682 , Birth: 21 May 1879

3. Sverre Dahl 165 , Birth: 6 Apr 1880, Death: in Oslo

4. Thorleif Dahl 166 , Birth: 2 Oct 1881

5. Trygve Dahl 167 , Birth: 31 Aug 1883, Death: 17 Mar 1884

6. Borghild Dahl 168, Birth: 18 Apr 1885, Death: Feb 1972

7. Ragnvald Dahl 169, Birth: 27 Mar 1887

8. Vibeke Elisabeth Dahl 170, Birth: 10 Aug 1889, Death: in Havøysund

9. Trygve Dahl 1683, Birth: 20 Apr 1892

Spouse: Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164

Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164 was born on 30 May 1855. She died on 27 Nov 1894. She

was the daughter of Hans Gievær Petersen 1096.

Olaf Georg Martin Hermansen Dahl 149 Olaf Georg Martin Hermansen Dahl 149 was born in 1858. He was the son of Herman

Richard Klæboe Dahl 144 and of Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen 147.

Page 20: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 20 of 233

Emigrated to Canada in 1902

Adolph Herman Hermansen Dahl 150

Adolph Herman Hermansen Dahl 150 was born in 1861. He died in USA. He was the son of

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl 144 and of Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen 147.Adolph

emigrated to the US and he lost his leg below the knee around 1890.

Fletcher Dahl 2009 Fletcher Dahl 2009 was the son of Adolph Herman Hermansen Dahl and he was married to

Ida 2010.

Anton Hermansen Dahl 665

Anton Hermansen Dahl 665 was born in 1879. He died in USA. He was the son of Herman

Richard Klæboe Dahl 144 and of Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen 147.

He emigrated to the US in 1905.

Olaf Dahl 1681 Olaf Dahl 1681 was born on 7 Dec 1877. He was the son of Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl 148

and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164.

Knut Dahl 1682 Knut Dahl 1682 was born on 21 May 1879. He was the son of Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl

148 and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164.

Sverre Dahl 165 Sverre Dahl 165 was born on 6 Apr 1880. He died in Oslo. He was the son of Knut Juel

Hermansen Dahl 148 and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164.

Children of Sverre Dahl 165 and Ingeborg Marie Henriksen 1087

1. Anna Margrethe Dahl 1090, Birth: in Oslo

2. Elsa Dahl 1088, Birth: in Oslo, 16 Dec 1914, Death: in Oslo, 12 Mar 1998

3. Aase Dahl 1089, Birth: in Oslo, 1 Dec 1917, Death: in Oslo, 17 Sep 1973

Spouse: Ingeborg Marie Henriksen 1087

Ingeborg Marie Henriksen 1087 was born on 31 Aug 1884. She in Oslo on 12 Mar 1967.

Thorleif Dahl 166 Thorleif Dahl 166 was born on 2 Oct 1881. He was the son of Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl

148 and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164.

Trygve Dahl 167 Trygve Dahl 167 was born on 31 Aug 1883. He died on 17 Mar 1884. He was the son of

Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl 148 and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164.

Borghild Dahl 168 Borghild Dahl 168 was born on 18 Apr 1885. She died on Feb 1972. She was the daughter

of Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl 148 and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164.

She emigrated to the US, Chicago, at the beginning of 1900.

Page 21: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 21 of 233

Ragnvald Dahl 169 Ragnvald Dahl 169 was born on 27 Mar 1887. He was the son of Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl

148 and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164.

He emigrated to the US.

Vibeke Elisabeth Dahl 170 Vibeke Elisabeth Dahl 170 was born on 10 Aug 1889. She died in Havøysund kommune.

She was the daughter of Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl 148 and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen

164.

Trygve Dahl 1683 Trygve Dahl 1683 was born on 20 Apr 1892. He was the son of Knut Juel Hermansen Dahl

148 and of Anna Margrethe Pettersen 164.

Anna Margrethe Dahl 1090 Anna Margrethe Dahl 1090 was born in Oslo. She was the daughter of Sverre Dahl 165 and

of Ingeborg Marie Henriksen 1087.

Spouse: Per Aarvig 1091

Elsa Dahl 1088 Elsa Dahl 1088 was born in Oslo on 16 Dec 1914. She died in Oslo on 12 Mar 1998. She was

the daughter of Sverre Dahl 165 and of Ingeborg Marie Henriksen 1087.

Spouse: Einar Aas 1093

Einar Aas 1093 was born on 30 Jun 1915. He died in Oslo on 26 May 1995.

Aase Dahl 1089 Aase Dahl 1089 was born in Oslo on 1 Dec 1917. She died in Oslo on 17 Sep 1973. She was

the daughter of Sverre Dahl 165 and of Ingeborg Marie Henriksen 1087.

Spouse: Jacob Espedalen 1092

Page 22: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 22 of 233

4.2.2 Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl144 and Regine Olsen Bøe1648 Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839

Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl,1831-1909

(ii) Regine Olsen Boe, 1851-1925

Herman Regnold Dahl, 1891-1982

Linda Caldwell Heller, 1895-1981

Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl, 1894-

Charles Clark Eddy,

William James Dahl, 1922-76

Maxime Haas, 1924-2002

Gre

g D

ah

l

Victo

ria D

ah

l

Ch

ristoffe

r Da

hl

Ste

ven

Da

hl

Margareth (Peg) Jane Dahl, 1929

Wayne Richard Henderson,1931-70

Ha

rriet E

dd

y

Virg

inia

Ed

dy

Alb

ert E

dd

y

Nita

Ed

dy

Iren

e E

dd

y

Eric H

en

de

rson

Ma

rk He

nd

erso

n

Da

vid H

en

de

rson

Jaso

n D

ah

l

Jash

ua

Da

hl

Ch

ris Da

hl

Bra

nd

on

Da

hl

An

na

Nico

line

Da

hl,1

83

4-5

8

Mich

ae

l Juliu

s Hø

yem

Mich

ae

lsen

18

21

-01

Ba

ard

Nico

lai D

ah

l,18

36

-63

Re

gin

e N

atvig

,18

32-?

?

Re

be

cca M

ath

ilde

Da

hl,1

83

8-xx

No

t ma

rried

Joh

an

Ma

ren

ius R

asch

Da

hl,1

84

0-9

4

(i) An

dre

a E

rikka E

sbe

nse

n,1

83

9-1

8

(2)B

irthe

Mo

rten

sda

tter

Nico

lai D

ah

l,die

d a

s a ch

ild

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42

-10

Nie

ls An

ton

Ha

nse

n A

all,1

83

3-9

6

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l,18

45-8

9

Julie

So

ph

ie S

cha

nke

,18

46-?

Re

gn

or F

red

rik La

uritz D

ah

l,18

49-3

2

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila,

(2)M

arie

Lin

de

be

rg,

(3)M

arth

a A

nd

rea

Tie

de

ma

nd,

Olu

f Ed

vard

Da

hl,1

82

9-5

7

Re

gin

e N

atvig

,18

32-?

?

Page 23: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 23 of 233

Regine Olsen Bøe 1648 Regine was born in 1851 on the farm Bø (Boe) in Sokndal and died in Seattle on November

26th

1925. Regine was the daughter of Karen Marie Rolfsdatter 2004, 1824-1884, and Andreas

Olsen 2003, 1815-1876. Regines name when living in Norway was Regine Andreasdatter and

she added Bø when she emigrated and when in Seattle she named herself Regine Olsen Boe.

Regine left Norway by ship from Stavanger in 1881 and she came to Coon Prairie, Vernon

County, Wisconsin. She came there in the spring and stayed there until the fall. From there she

went to Minneapolis and worked at the Augsburg Seminary and also managing the household

of Professor Sverdrup, Minneapolis University for three or four years. Then she went to Los

Angeles, California but stayed there only a short time before coming to Seattle together with

her sister in 1889.

Family

Father: Andreas Olsen 2003, b.1815, d. 1876, married in 1846

Mother: Karen Marie Rolfsdatter 2004, b.1824, d.1884, she was from the farm Aa(Å)rrestad

in Sokndal.

Sisters and brothers:

a. Olaus Kristian Andreassen, b.1847

b. Karoline Andreasdatter, b.1847, she married and lived on the farm Stranden, Sokndal

c. Kristine Marie Andreasdatter, b.1849, married in 1873 to Severin Reinertsen, Stavanger

d. Regine Andreasdatter 1648, b. 1851, d. 26.11.1925

e. Anne Elisabeth Andreasdatter, b, 1854, married and lived on the farm Løvik in Sokndal

f. Johan Bernhard Andreassen, b.1856

g. Anton Kristian Andreassen, b. 1859

h. Karen Andreasdatter, b.1861

i. Bine Sofie Andreasdatter, b, 1863, married and lived on the farm Løvik in Sokndal as

did her sister Anne Elisabeth

j. One sister that died during birth, 1868

Regine was married to Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl on June 9th

1890.

Children of Regina Olsen Bøe 1648 and Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl 144

1. Herman Regnold Dahl 1649, Birth: 23 Oct 1891, Death: January 1982

2. Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650, Birth: 19 Oct 1894

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl and family family around 1903.

Page 24: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 24 of 233

Herman Regnold Dahl 1649 Herman Regnold Dahl 1649 was born on 23 Oct 1891. He died on Jan 1982. He was the son

of Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl 144 and of Regina Olsen Bøe 1648.

Children of Herman Regnold Dahl 1649 and Lida Caldwell Heller 1657

1. William James Dahl 1658, Birth: Jul 1922, Death: Feb 1976

2. Margaret (peg) Jane Dahl 1659, Birth: 18 Jun 1929

Spouse: Lida Caldwell Heller 1657

Lida Caldwell Heller 1657 was born on 25 Dec 1895. She died on May 1981.

Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650 Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650 was born on 19 Oct 1894. She is the daughter of Herman

Richard Klæboe Dahl 144 and of Regina Olsen Bøe 1648.

Children of Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650 and Charles Clark Eddy 1651

1. Harriet Eddy 1652

2. Virginia Eddy 1653

3. Albert Eddy 1654 Spouse: Charles Clark Eddy 1651

William James Dahl 1658 William James Dahl 1658 was born on Jul 1922. He died on Feb 1976. He was the son of

Herman Regnold Dahl 1649 and of Lida Caldwell Heller 1657.

Children of William James Dahl 1658 and Maxime Haas 1660

1. Greg Dahl 1662

2. Cristopher Dahl 1664

3. Steven Dahl 1663 4. Victoria Dahl 1661, Birth: 1966

Spouse: Maxime Haas 1660

Maxime Haas 1660 was born on 16 May 1924. She died in 2002.

Margaret (Peg) Jane Dahl 1659

Margaret (Peg) Jane Dahl 1659 was born on 18 Jun 1929. She is the daughter of Herman

Regnold Dahl 1649 and of Lida Caldwell Heller 1657.

Children of Margaret (Peg) Jane Dahl 1659 and Wayne Richard Henderson 1665

1. Eric Henderson 1666

2. Mark Henderson 1667

3. David Henderson 1668 Spouse: Wayne Richard Henderson 1665

Wayne Richard Henderson 1665 was born on 14 Feb 1931. He died on 24 Oct 1970.

Harriet Eddy 1652

She was the daughter of Charles Clark Eddy 1651 and of Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650.

Virginia Eddy 1653 She was the daughter of Charles Clark Eddy 1651 and of Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650.

Page 25: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 25 of 233

Albert Eddy 1654 He was the son of Charles Clark Eddy 1651 and of Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650.

Nita Eddy 1655

She was the daughter of Charles Clark Eddy 1651 and of Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650.

Irene Eddy 1656

She was the daughter of Charles Clark Eddy 1651 and of Dawn Dagny Mathilda Dahl 1650.

Greg Dahl 1662

He was the son of William James Dahl 1658 and of Maxime Haas 1660.

Children of Greg Dahl

1. Jason Dahl 1689

2. Jashua Dahl 1690

Cristopher Dahl 1664

He was the son of William James Dahl 1658 and of Maxime Haas 1660.

Children of Cristopher Dahl

1. Chris Dahl 1691

2. Brandon Dahl 1692

Steven Dahl 1663

He was the son of William James Dahl 1658 and of Maxime Haas 1660.

Victoria Dahl 1661

Victoria Dahl 1661 was born in 1966. She is the daughter of William James Dahl 1658 and of

Maxime Haas 1660.

Eric Henderson 1666

He was the son of Wayne Richard Henderson 1665 and of Margaret (Peg) Jane Dahl 1659.

Mark Henderson 1667

He was the son of Wayne Richard Henderson 1665 and of Margaret (Peg) Jane Dahl 1659.

David Henderson 1668

He was the son of Wayne Richard Henderson 1665 and of Margaret (Peg) Jane Dahl 1659.

Children of David Henderson 1668 and Ann Louise Pence 1669

1. Kendall Henderson 1687

2. Kelsey Henderson 1688 Spouse: Ann Louise Pence 1669

Jason Dahl 1689

He is the son of Greg Dahl 1662.

Jashua Dahl 1690

She is the daughter of Greg Dahl 1662.

Page 26: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 26 of 233

Chris Dahl 1691

He is the son of Cristopher Dahl 1664.

Brandon Dahl 1692

He is the son of Cristopher Dahl 1664.

Kendall Henderson 1687

She was the daughter of David Henderson 1668 and of Ann Louise Pence 1669.

Kelsey Henderson 1688

He was the son of David Henderson 1668 and of Ann Louise Pence 1669.

Page 27: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 27 of 233

4.3 ANNA NICOLINE DAHL247 AND MICHAEL JULIUS HØYEM MICHAELSEN253

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen, 1821-1901

Maren Anna Michaelsen,

Anna Amalie Michaelsen, 1853-

Daniel Skinner, 1848-

Marie Nicoline Fredrikke Michaelsen, 1854-1946

Johan Bjørvig Jacobsen, 1841-1901

Paul Michael Julius Michaelsen, 1855-

Marie Jacobsen, 1886-1963

Otto Andreas Pleym, 1865-1934

He

rma

n R

ich

ard

Klæ

bo

e D

ah

l,18

31

-19

09

(i)Viv

ikke

Elis

ab

eth

Ma

rku

sse

n,1

83

0

(ii) Re

gin

e O

lse

n B

oe

, 18

51

-19

25

Ba

ard

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,1

83

6-6

3

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-?

?

Re

be

cca

Ma

thild

e D

ah

l,18

38

-xx

No

t ma

rried

Jo

ha

n M

are

niu

s R

asch

Da

hl,1

84

0-9

4

(i) An

dre

a E

rikka

Esb

en

se

n,1

83

9-1

8

(ii)Birth

e M

orte

nsd

atte

r,

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,d

ied

as a

ch

ild

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42

-10

Nie

ls A

nto

n H

an

se

n A

all,1

83

3-9

6

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l,18

45

-89

Ju

lie S

op

hie

Sch

an

ke

,18

46

-?

Re

gn

or F

red

rik L

au

ritz D

ah

l,18

49

-32

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila,

(ii)Ma

rie L

ind

eb

erg

,18

45

-18

89

(iii)Ma

rtha

An

dre

a T

ied

em

an

d,1

86

2-1

94

9

Olu

f Ed

va

rd D

ah

l,18

29

-57

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-?

?

Page 28: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 28 of 233

Anna Nicoline Baardsdatter Dahl 247 Anna Nicoline Baardsdatter Dahl 247 was born on 5 Oct 1834. She died on 16 Apr 1858.

She was the daughter of Baard Nikolai Benjamin Dahl 53 and of Maren Anna Henriksdatter

Klæboe 54.She was baptised on 5 Oct 1834 and married to Michael Julius Høyem

Michaelsen in Vadsø on September 25th

1851. Anna Nicoline died in Vadsø on April 16th

1858.

Children of Anna Nicoline Baardsdatter Dahl 247 and Michael Julius Høyem

Michaelsen 253

1. Maren Anna Michaelsen 257

2. Anna Amalie Michaelsen 254 , Birth: 22 Jul 1853

3. Marie Nicoline Fredrikke Michaelsen 255, Birth: 24 May 1854, Death: 11 Jan 1946

4. Paul Mikael Julius Michaelsen 256, Birth: 1855

Spouse: Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen 253

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen was born in Trondheim on August 30th

1821. His father

was Poul Michaelsen 946 born on the Færøyene (Faeroe Islands, today a part of Denmark) in

1787 and his mother was Fredrikke Nicoline Cathrina Bondix 947, born in 1790, from

Trondheim. Fredrikke’s grandmother was Ane Martha Pedersdatter 282 and Fredrikke was

thereby the cousin of Baard Nicolai Benjamin Dahl 53 meaning that Anna Nicoline and her

husband Michael were second cousins.

Anna Nicoline died in 1858 and Michael was re-married to Petrine Pauline Kristensen 1406

in 1867. Petrine and Michael had 11 children. Petrine died in 1883 and Michael was re-

married in 1887 to Anna Oline Kleven 1411, the widow of Hans Petter Esbensen 1413, the

cousin of Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9 that was married to Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8, the

brother of Anna Nicoline (Michael’s first wife). Hans Petter Esbensen 1413 was also the

brother of Carl Brammer Esbensen 1809 that was married to Maren Andrea Dahl 1810, the

daughter of Simon Dahl 1811 that was another cousin of Fredrikke (Michael’s mother).

There were no children in Michael’s marriage with Anna Oline Kleven 1411.

Michael died in Kristiansund on August 30th

1901.

Maren Anna Michaelsen 257 She was the daughter of Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen 253 and of Anna Nicoline

Baardsdatter Dahl 247.

She emigrated to the US and married to Mr Beebe.

Spouse: Mr Beebe 260

Mr Beebe 260 was born in USA.

Anna Amalie Michaelsen 254 Anna Amalie Michaelsen 254 was born on 22 Jul 1853. She was the daughter of Michael

Julius Høyem Michaelsen 253 and of Anna Nicoline Baardsdatter Dahl 247. She emigrated

to the US and married to Mr. Skinner.

Spouse: Daniel Skinner 258

Daniel Skinner 258 was born in 1848.

Marie Nicoline Fredrikke Michaelsen 255 Marie Nicoline Fredrikke Michaelsen 255 was born on 24 May 1854. She died on 11 Jan

1946. She was the daughter of Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen 253 and of Anna Nicoline

Page 29: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 29 of 233

Baardsdatter Dahl 247.

Children of Marie Nicoline Fredrikke Michaelsen 255 and Johan Bjørvig Jacobsen 259

1. Marie Jacobsen 1069 , Birth: 1886, Death: 1963

Spouse: Johan Bjørvig Jacobsen 259

Johan Bjørvig Jacobsen 259 was born on 4 Nov 1841. He died on 24 Dec 1901.

Paul Mikael Julius Michaelsen 256 Paul Mikael Julius Michaelsen 256 was born in 1855. He was the son of Michael Julius

Høyem Michaelsen 253 and of Anna Nicoline Baardsdatter Dahl 247.

Marie Jacobsen 1069 Marie Jacobsen 1069 was born in 1886. She died in 1963. She was the daughter of Johan

Bjørvig Jacobsen 259 and of Marie Nicoline Fredrikke Michalsen 255. They married on

March 17th

1910.

Spouse: Otto Andreas Pleym 1070

Otto Andreas Pleym 1070 was born in 1865. He died in 1934.

Page 30: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 30 of 233

4.4 BAARD NICOLAI DAHL72 AND REGINE BIRGITHE NATVIG250

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836-1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Oluf Dahl, 1859-

Nikolai Dahl, 1859-1945

(i)Henriette Karen Anna Monsdatter,1862-

(ii)Trine Eline Ovidia Ovesdatter, 1865-

(iii)Helene Serinna Hansen, 1866-1943

Ha

ge

rup

Za

kka

æu

s D

ah

l,

Re

gin

e B

erg

itte D

ah

l,18

87

-

Try

gve

Da

hl N

ico

lais

en,1

89

1-

Sa

ra D

ah

l,

An

ath

on

Da

hl

An

ton

Willia

m D

ah

l

Ru

do

lf Da

hl,

Ba

ard

Nic

ola

i Za

ka

rias D

ah

l,

18

94

-19

82

Na

tha

lie D

ah

l, 18

96

-19

80

Ja

ko

b K

ristia

n D

ah

l, 19

08

-19

63

An

na

Do

rthe

a P

ak, 1

90

3-1

99

4

He

rma

n R

ich

ard

Klæ

bo

e D

ah

l,18

31-1

90

9

(i)Viv

ikke

Elis

ab

eth

Ma

rku

sse

n,1

83

0

(ii)Re

gin

a O

lse

n B

oe

,18

51

-19

25

Re

be

cca

Ma

thild

e D

ah

l,18

38

-xx

No

t ma

rried

Jo

ha

n M

are

niu

s R

asch

Da

hl,1

84

0-9

4

(i) An

dre

a E

rikka

Esb

en

se

n,1

83

9-1

8

(ii)Birth

e M

orte

nsd

atte

r

Olu

f Ed

va

rd D

ah

l,18

29

-57

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-?

?

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,d

ied

as a

ch

ild

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42-1

0

Nie

ls A

nto

n H

an

se

n A

all,1

83

3-9

6

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l,18

45

-89

Ju

lie S

op

hie

Sch

an

ke

,18

46

-?

Re

gn

or F

red

rik L

au

ritz D

ah

l,18

49

-32

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila,

(ii)Ma

rie L

ind

eb

erg

,18

45-1

88

9

(iii)Ma

rtha

An

dre

a T

ied

em

an

d,1

86

2-1

94

9

An

na

Nic

olin

e D

ah

l,18

34

-58

Mic

ha

el J

uliu

s H

øye

m M

ich

ae

lse

n 1

82

1-0

1

Page 31: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 31 of 233

Baard Nikolai Baardsen Dahl 72 Baard was born in Tromsø on June 4

th 1836 and he moved to together with the family to

Vadsø in 1838. He was in October 1859 married to Regine Natvig, the widow of his elder

brother Oluf. Baard had his own business in Vadsø. He was killed by a Russian when visiting

his younger brother Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl in Petschenga (Russia) in January 1863.

Children of Baard Nikolai Baardsen Dahl 72 and Regine Birgitte Natvig 250

1. Nikolai Dahl 261, Birth: 30 Dec 1859, Death: 3 Nov 1945

2. Oluf Dahl 262, Birth: 30 Dec 1859

Spouse: Regine Birgitte Natvig 250

Regine Birgitte Natvig 250 was born in 1827. She was the daughter of Søren Natvig 939 and

of Susanna Dorthea With 831. Regine Birgitte Natvig was born in Trondheim in 1829.

Regine and Baard as well her first husband Oluf were secondcousins as Regine’s

grandmother, Regine Birgitte Wold, who was the sister of Baard’s and Oluf’s grandmother,

Ellen Martha Wold.

Nikolai Dahl 261

Nikolai Dahl 261 was born on 30 Dec 1859. He died on 3 Nov 1945. He was the son of

Baard Nikolai Baardsen Dahl 72 and of Regine Birgitte Natvig 250.

Nikolai is in the census of 1865 recorded as fosterson with the Tvende family. Nikolai grew

up with the Tvende family, while the brother Oluf seems to grow up with the mother and

later moved to the USA.

Nikolai Benjamin was 14 years old when he came to Tromsoe as a trainee with the

blacksmith Anton Klaeboe. The skilled blacksmith Klaeboe was of the Klaeboe family at

Skjervoey and was most likely a cousin of Nikolai’s fathers’ mother, Maren Anna Klaeboe

54. Nikolai later returned to Finnmark, and lived as a blacksmith at Kirkenes in Sydvaranger,

where he became very famous. Earlier he had worked in different kinds of workplaces in

Nordland county, where the Swedish “Rallare “ had given him the name “Emperor Dahl”.

Stories are told that the “Rallare” had very deep respect of Emperor Dahl because he was a

man who really seemed to have lived up to his name. There are still people at Kirkenes who

remember Emperor Dahl Street, the path passed the Russian Monument and continued

through the forest up to Nikolai Dahl’s house.

Nikolai was married to Helene Siranna Hansen, born 24.6,1866 from Saltdalen, “Emperor

Dahl” had eight children with Helene and two children before he got married.

Children of Nikolai Dahl 261 and Henriette Karen Anna Monsdatter 959

1. Regine Bergitte Dahl 1351, Birth: 24 Jun 1887

Children of Nikolai Dahl 261 and Trine Eline Ovidia Ovesdatter 960

1. Trygve Dahl Nicolaisen 1350 , Birth: 18 Jan 1891

Children of Nikolai Dahl 261 and Helene Serinna Hansen 958

1. Hagerup Zakkæus Dahl 1368

2. Sara Dahl 1363

3. Anathon Dahl 1364

4. Anton William Dahl 1366

5. Rudolf Dahl 1365 6. Bård Nicolai Zakarias Dahl 1369, Birth: 1894, Death: 12 Dec 1982

7. Nathalie Dahl 1367, Birth: 7 Sep 1896, Death: 25 Dec 1980

Page 32: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 32 of 233

8. Jakob Kristian Dahl 1326, Birth: 19 Jul 1908, Death: 19 Jul 1963

Spouse 1: Henriette Karen Anna Monsdatter 959

Henriette Karen Anna Monsdatter 959 was born on 29 Sep 1862.

Spouse 2: Trine Eline Ovidia Ovesdatter 960

Trine Eline Ovidia Ovesdatter 960 was born in Rødøy Helgeland on 6 Oct 1865.

Spouse 3: Helene Serinna Hansen 958

Helene Serinna Hansen 958 was born on 24 Jun 1866. She died in 1943. She was the

daughter of Hans Michael Kristoffersen 1327 and of Sara Dorthea Kristensdatter 1328.

The “Emperor Dahl” family around 1915.

From the left;in front; Helene(mother), Jakob, Anton

behind; Hagerup, Baard, Nikolai (the “Emperor”), Natalie

Oluf Dahl 262 Oluf Dahl 262 was born on 30 Dec 1859. He was the son of Baard Nikolai Baardsen Dahl 72

and of Regine Birgitte Natvig 250.

Hagerup Zakkæus Dahl 1368 He was the son of Nikolai Dahl 261 and of Helene Serinna Hansen 958.

Sara Dahl 1363 She was the daughter of Nikolai Dahl 261 and of Helene Serinna Hansen 958.

Anathon Dahl 1364 He was the son of Nikolai Dahl 261 and of Helene Serinna Hansen 958.

Anton William Dahl 1366 He was the son of Nikolai Dahl 261 and of Helene Serinna Hansen 958.

Page 33: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 33 of 233

Rudolf Dahl 1365 He was the son of Nikolai Dahl 261 and of Helene Serinna Hansen 958.

Bård Nicolai Zakarias Dahl 1369 Bård Nicolai Zakarias Dahl 1369 was born in 1894. He died on 12 Dec 1982. He was the

son of Nikolai Dahl 261 and of Helene Serinna Hansen 958.

Nathalie Dahl 1367 Nathalie Dahl 1367 was born on 7 Sep 1896. She died on 25 Dec 1980. She was the

daughter of Nikolai Dahl 261 and of Helene Serinna Hansen 958.

Jakob Kristian Dahl 1326 Jakob Kristian Dahl 1326 was born on 19 Jul 1908. He died on 19 Jul 1963. He was the son

of Nikolai Dahl 261 and of Helene Serinna Hansen 958.

Spouse: Anna Dorthea Pak 1353

Anna Dorthea Pak 1353 was born on 12 Aug 1903. She died on 4 Nov 1994. She was the

daughter of Nils Jon Olsen Pak 1354 and Bigga Gunhild Andersdatter Ram 1355.

Regine Bergitte Dahl 1351 119 Regine Bergitte Dahl 1351 was born on 24 Jun 1887. She was the daughter of Nikolai Dahl

261 and of Henriette Karen Anna Monsdatter 959.

Trygve Dahl Nicolaisen 1350 11A Trygve Dahl Nicolaisen 1350 was born on 18 Jan 1891. He is the son of Nikolai Dahl 261

and of Trine Eline Ovidia Ovesdatter 960.

4.5 REBEKKA MATHILDE DAHL248

Rebekka died as a child.

Page 34: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 34 of 233

4.6 JOHAN MARENIUS RASCH DAHL8

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl.1840-1894

(1) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849-1916

(2) Birthe Mortensdatter (not married)

Gustav Dahl,b,1875,d,1970

(1) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876-1932

(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen, 1902-1956

Rolf Eng Dahl,b.1867

Thora Dahl,b.1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl,b.1870

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl,b.1874

Evald Dahl,b.1880

Johan Nocolai Dahl, b.1872

Maren Baastad,

Inger Dahl,b1879

Anders Leonard SarreJohan R

asch Dahl,b.1906

Trygve D

ahl,b.1909

Andrea E

rikka Dahl,

b.1896,d.1997

Dagm

ar Karoline D

ahl,

b.1898-1996

Johan Edvard D

ahl,

b.1900-1977

George S

igmund D

ahl,

1904-1971

Olga E

ugenie Dahl,

1906-1977

Leif Albert D

ahl,

1908,died as child

Karl G

ustav Dahl,

1910,died as child

Thora A

gnete Dahl

1914-1996

Anna Ida M

athilde Dahl

1916-2006

Gudrun D

ahl

1919-2008

Ragnvald M

attis Dahl

1931

Laila Gunhild D

ahl, 1934

Thea D

ahl, 1935

Gustav H

arald Dahl,1937

Aase Ingvalda D

ahl,1938

Nils A

slak Dahl,1938,

twins

Mathis O

le Sarre

Kaisa B

igga Sarre

Johan SarreI

Isak Leonhard Sarre

Inga Aleta S

arre, b.1917

(2) (1)

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Baard N

icolai Dahl, 1836-1863

Regine N

atvig, 1827-

Herm

an Richard K

læboe D

ahl,1831-1909

(i)Vivikke E

lisabeth Markussen,1830

(ii)Regina O

lsen Boe,1851-1925

Rebecca M

athilde Dahl,1838-xx

Not m

arried

Oluf E

dvard Dahl,1829-57

Regine N

atvig,1832-??

Nicolai D

ahl,died as a child

Mathilde S

usanne Dahl,1842-10

Niels A

nton Hansen A

all,1833-96

Carl A

nthon Reiner D

ahl,1845-89

Julie Sophie S

chanke,1846-?

Regnor F

redrik Lauritz Dahl,1849-32

(i)Wilhelm

ina Mattila,

(ii)Marie Lindeberg,1845-1889

(iii)Martha A

ndrea Tiedem

and,1862-1949

Anna N

icoline Dahl,1834-58

Michael Julius H

øyem

Michaelsen

1821-01

(1)(2)

Page 35: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 35 of 233

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8 and Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8

Johan was born in Vadsø on August 5th 1840. His middle name, Rasch, was adopted from his

mother’s family. Johan worked as an assistant with Andreas Esbensen, the owner of the

H.F.Esbensen company, and he ended up being married to his boss’ daughter, Erikka Andrea

Esbensen, in 1865. He took over the business of his father-in-law and developed it into the

biggest business in the region.

The downturn in the economy in the last quarter of the century combined with Johan’s alcoholic

problems resulted in his financial collapse in the late 1880ties.

Johan died in Vadsø on August 22nd

1894.

Spouse-Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9

Erikka Andrea was born in Vadsø on January 2nd

1839. She was the daughter of Erikka Lorenze

Kloch 68 and Andreas Esbensen 50 that owned the company H.F.Esbensen. It was a rich family

and Erikka Andrea was left with a wealthy heritage. Erikka Andrea died in Vadsø on March 17th

1918.

Erikka Andrea and Johan

Marenius Rasch Dahl on their

engagement or marriage

The Esbensen family from left;

Erica Lorenze Kloch, Erikka Andrea, Grethe Sophie and Andreas Esbensen

Erikka Andrea when she married Johan The old lady visiting her

family in Copenhagen

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl Erikka Andrea and Johan

Marenius Rasch Dahl as

adult married couple

Page 36: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 36 of 233

Johan had, during his marriage to Erikka Andrea, also a relationship to Birthe Mortensdatter

which resulted in a daughter, Inger Mathisdatter Dahl 1072, born in 1879. The middle name,

Mathisdatter, is after her stepfather, Bekkonen Mathis 1269, that later married her mother.

Children of Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9 and Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8

1. Rolf Engh Johansen Dahl 67, Birth: 18 Feb 1867

2. Thora Johansdatter Dahl 152, Birth: 7 Dec 1868, Death: 1944

3. Erikka Andrea Johansdatter Dahl 153, Birth: 25 Jul 1870

4. Johan Nicolai Dahl 154, Birth: 28 Jun 1872, Death: Tysvær, 15 May 1949

5. Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 155, Birth: 10 Jul 1874

6. Gustav Johansen Dahl 3, Birth: 3 Nov 1875, Death: 2 Jan 1970

7. Evald Dahl 196, Birth: 5 Jun 1880, Death: 11 Dec 1880

Birthe Mortensdatter 1071

Children of Birthe Mortensdatter 1071 and Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8

1. Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl 1072 , Birth: 28 Aug 1879

4.6.1 Rolf Engh Johansen Dahl 67

Rolf Engh Johansen Dahl 67 was born on 18 Feb 1867. He was the son of Johan Marenius

Rasch Dahl 8 and of Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9. He was Confirmed on 19 Mar 1883.

4.6.2 Thora Johansdatter Dahl 152

Thora Johansdatter Dahl 152 was born on 7 Dec 1868. She died in 1944. She was the daughter of

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8 and of Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9.

Thora never married.

4.6.3 Erikka Andrea Johansdatter Dahl 153

Erikka Andrea Johansdatter Dahl 153 was born on 25 Jul 1870. She was the daughter of Johan

Marenius Rasch Dahl 8 and of Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9.

Erikka never married.

4.6.4 Johan Nicolai Dahl 154

Johan Nicolai Dahl 154 was born on 28 Jun 1872. He died in Tysvær on 15 May 1949. He was

the son of Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8 and of Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9.He was buried in

Tysvær in 1949.

Children of Johan Nicolai Dahl 154 and Maren Baastad 264

1. Johan Rasch Dahl 936 , Birth: 23 Sep 1906, Death:

2. Trygve Dahl 1095, Birth: 2 Dec 1909, Death: 24 Apr 1987

Spouse: Maren Baastad 264

Maren Baastad 264 was born on 30 Dec 1878. She died in Tysvær on 13 Oct 1977.

Johan Rasch Dahl 936 Johan Rasch Dahl 936 was born on 23 Sep 1906. He was the son of Johan Nicolai Dahl 154 and of Maren

Baastad 264.

Trygve Dahl 1095 Trygve Dahl 1095 was born on 2 Dec 1909. He died on 24 Apr 1987. He was the son of Johan Nicolai

Dahl 154 and of Maren Baastad 264.

Spouse: Grethe (Dahl) 2001

Page 37: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 37 of 233

Grethe (Dahl) 2001 was born on 10 Nov 1909. She died on 18 Apr 1999.

4.6.5 Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 155

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 155 was born on 10 Jul 1874. She was the daughter of Johan Marenius

Rasch Dahl 8 and of Erikka Andrea Esbensen 9.

Anna never married.

4.6.6 Evald Dahl 196, 1880-1880

Evald died as a child.

Page 38: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 38 of 233

4.6.7 Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and Anna Eugenie Hansen 4

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl.1840-1894

(1) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849-1916

(2) Birthe Mortensdatter (not married)

Gustav Dahl,b,1875,d,1970

(1) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876-1932

(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen, 1902-1956

Rolf Eng Dahl,b.1867

Thora Dahl,b.1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl,b.1870

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl,b.1874

Evald Dahl,b.1880

Johan Nocolai Dahl, b.1872

Maren Baastad,

Inger Dahl,b1879

Anders Leonard SarreJo

ha

n R

asch

Da

hl,b

.19

06

Tryg

ve D

ah

l,b.1

90

9

An

dre

a E

rikka D

ah

l,

b.1

89

6,d

.19

97

Da

gm

ar K

aro

line

Da

hl,

b.1

89

8-1

99

6

Joh

an

Ed

vard

Da

hl,

b.1

90

0-1

97

7

Ge

org

e S

igm

un

d D

ah

l,

19

04

-19

71

Olg

a E

ug

en

ie D

ah

l,

19

06

-19

77

Le

if Alb

ert D

ah

l,

19

08

,die

d a

s child

Ka

rl Gu

stav D

ah

l,

19

10

,die

d a

s child

Th

ora

Ag

ne

te D

ah

l

19

14

-19

96

An

na

Ida

Ma

thild

e D

ah

l

19

16

-20

06

Gu

dru

n D

ah

l

19

19

-20

08

Ra

gn

vald

Ma

ttis Da

hl

19

31

La

ila G

un

hild

Da

hl, 1

93

4

Th

ea

Da

hl, 1

93

5

Gu

stav H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Aa

se In

gva

lda

Da

hl,1

93

8

Nils A

slak D

ah

l,19

38

,

twin

s

Ma

this O

le S

arre

Ka

isa B

igg

a S

arre

Joh

an

Sa

rreI

Isak L

eo

nh

ard

Sa

rre

Ing

a A

leta

Sa

rre, b

.19

17

(2) (1)

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ba

ard

Nico

lai D

ah

l, 18

36

-18

63

Re

gin

e N

atvig

, 18

27

-

He

rma

n R

icha

rd K

læb

oe

Da

hl,1

83

1-1

90

9

(i)Vivikke

Elisa

be

th M

arku

ssen

,18

30

(ii)Re

gin

a O

lsen

Bo

e,1

85

1-1

92

5

Re

be

cca M

ath

ilde

Da

hl,1

83

8-xx

No

t ma

rried

Olu

f Ed

vard

Da

hl,1

82

9-5

7

Re

gin

e N

atvig

,18

32-?

?

Nico

lai D

ah

l,die

d a

s a ch

ild

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42-1

0

Nie

ls An

ton

Ha

nse

n A

all,1

83

3-9

6

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l,18

45

-89

Julie

So

ph

ie S

cha

nke

,18

46

-?

Re

gn

or F

red

rik La

uritz D

ah

l,18

49-3

2

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila,

(ii)Ma

rie L

ind

eb

erg

,18

45

-18

89

(iii)Ma

rtha

An

dre

a T

ied

em

an

d,1

86

2-1

94

9

An

na

Nico

line

Da

hl,1

83

4-5

8

Mich

ae

l Juliu

s Hø

yem

Mich

ae

lsen

18

21

-01

(1)(2)

Page 39: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 39 of 233

Gustav Johansen Dahl 3

Gustav Johansen Dahl was born in Vadsø on November 3

rd 1875 and he died in Vadsø on

January 2nd

1970.

Gustav fell in love with a girl in the neighbourhood, Anna Eugenie Hansen 4. Anna`s parents

were Eva Korbi 6 and Ole Edvart Hansen 5. Eva came from Torneå and Ole Edvart from

Balsfjord. He was a carpenter, a fisherman and an odd-job-man. Both belonged to the religious

movement Læstadianism, and so did their daughter Anna. This probably was not very popular

with the distinguished Esbensen family, see Gustav Dahl`s remembrance essay, chpt 5. But

Gustav had made up his mind. In later history members of the Esbensen family have come

forward as leaders of the Læstadianism movement in Norway.

For many reasons, his choice of spouse being one of them, Gustav did not get much from his

parents upon which to build his life as an adult. But, as he himself told Mr. Hans Kr Eriksen :

…” he didn`t need money or wordly goods. He had inherited a quick head and two strong hands,

with which he could fight his way through life.” And so he did. He supposedly inherited 25-

35.000 kroner when his mother died, this amount shall have been put into Gustav`s bank account

immediately. After this Gustav`s time as a successful business man started.

Gustav was a hard-working man, he did what had to be done. He supported himself and his

family by, to begin with, working in his father`s shop. Through this he learnt the trade and

obtained business connections necessary to start his own business, which he did eventually.

While his ancestors from Kvæfjord had busied themselves with school, education, faith and other

cultural activities, Gustav was more like his grandfather, Baard Benjamin, and most of his

brothers. This was also the case with Gustav`s own father, Johan Rasch – trade and all sorts of

commercial activities were their world.

Transport early became Gustav`s passion. Round 1898 he was given the commission to transport

mail along the distance from Tana to Krampenes. He himself claims that he had this commission

for more than 30 years. To begin with, the job was done by using horses, and his sons had to start

assisting their father at an early age. His son Edvart was particularly involved in the mail

transport. This mail transport really became the foundation of Gustav`s financial world.

Ole Nilsen was the first person in Vadsø to get himself a motorized vehicle, a car, this was in

1919. Gustav quickly realized that here lay the future of transport as business. During 1922

Gustav invested in two T-Fords, at the price of 6000 kroner altogether. In winter, however, Ole

Nilsen as well as Gustav had to make do with their horses.

Page 40: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 40 of 233

As already mentioned, Gustav inherited 25 000 or 35 000 kroner from his mother. To begin with

nobody, at least just a very few, were told about this inheritance. The money was, after some

time, put to work. Gustav invested in freighters, but the sea scared him and the project soon came

to an end. Then money was invested in automobiles, first the two T-Fords, then a lorry and in

1924 a Buick with four seats. The Buick became the pride of the town.

Gustav`s oldest son, Edvart, also got interested in the “new time”. Together with his friend, Ole

Andreassen, Edvart got a loan from the local Vadsø bank, and the boys left for Trondheim to

attend a driving school and a car mechanic college. One month later Edvart got driver`s license

no. 480. After another four months ` training as a mechanic at Gaden & Larsen, they came back

north to Vadsø and went into business with Gustav. Gustav himself never got a driver`s license,

this he left to the younger men of the family.

Children of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and Anna Eugenie Hansen 4

1. Andrea Erikka Dahl 24, Birth: 26 May 1896, Death: 23 May 1997

2. Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38, Birth: 22 Jan 1898, Death: 2 Jan 1992

3. Johan Edvard Dahl 10, Birth: 31 Mar 1900, Death: 17 Sep 1977

4. Georg Sigmund Dahl 7, Birth: 14 Apr 1904, Death: 9 Nov 1971

5. Olga Eugenie Dahl 28, Birth: 3 Feb 1906, Death: 11 Jan 1977

6. Leif Albert Dahl 1098, Birth: 14 Apr 1908

7. Karl Gustav Dahl 1099, Birth: 22 Jun 1910

8. Thora Agnete Dahl 22, Birth: 19 Jan 1914, Death: 10 Mar 1996

9. Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 2, Birth: 22 Jun 1916, Død: 19 Nov 2006

10. Gudrun Dahl 48, Birth: 31 Oct 1919, Death: 22 Mar 2008

Page 41: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 41 of 233

4.6.7.1 Andrea Erikka Dahl 24, 1896-1997

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813- 1866

Gustav Dahl, b,1875 , d,1970(1) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876 -1932

Rolf Eng Dahl,1867Johan Nocolai Dahl, b.1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b1879Anders Leonard Sarre

Thora Dahl,b.1868 -1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl,1870 -

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl,1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840-1894

(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836-1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl,1831-1909

(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen,1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe,1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl,1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a childRebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl,1842-10

Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833-96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845-89

Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl,1849-32(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg,1845-1889

(iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand,1862-1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl,1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen

1821-01

Rag

nvald

Mattis

Da

hl

193

1

Laila

Gu

nhild

Da

hl,

19

34

The

a D

ahl,

19

35

Gusta

v H

arald

Da

hl,1

93

7

Aase

Ingvald

a D

ahl,1

93

8

Nils

Asla

k D

ahl,1

93

8,

twin

s

Dagm

ar Karoline D

ahl, b.1898-1996

Johan Edvard

Dahl,

b.1900-1977

George

Sigmund

Dahl,

1904-1971

Olga

Eugenie D

ahl,1906-1977

Leif Albert D

ahl,1908,died

as child

Karl Gustav

D

ahl,1910,died as child

Thora

Agnete

Dahl,1914-

1996

Anna

Ida M

athilde D

ahl1916-2006

Gudrun

Dahl,1919-2008

Rolf R

okseth,1923-2009Pricilla H

erd,1925-1979

Rolf Christian Rokseth

Olav William Rokseth,1955 Rocio Paez Sanchez,1963

Tamia Cam

illa Paez R

okseth,1992

Emilie A

ylin Paez R

okseth,2002

David Sebian Paez

Rokseth,2004

Andrea Erikka Dahl, 1896-1997Olav Rokseth

Page 42: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 42 of 233

Andrea Erikka Dahl 24 1

Andrea Erikka Dahl 24 was born on 26 May 1896. She died on 23 May 1997. She was the

daughter of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Anna Eugenie Hansen 4.

Children of Andrea Erikka Dahl 24 and Olav Rokseth 25

1. Rolf Rokseth 26, Birth: 16 Oct 1923, Death: ved plassen Trondheim, 14 Apr 2009

Spouse: Olav Rokseth 25

Rolf Rokseth 26 Rolf Rokseth 26 was born on 16 Oct 1923. He died on 14 Apr 2009. He was the son of Olav

Rokseth 25 and of Andrea Erikka Dahl 24.

Children of Rolf Rokseth 26 and Priscilla Gabrielle Constance Herd 315

1. Christian Rolf Rokseth 99

2. Olav William Rokseth 100, Birth: 16 Jul 1955

Spouse: Priscilla Gabrielle Constance Herd 315

Priscilla Gabrielle Constance Herd 315 was born on 4 Feb 1925. She died on 4 Jun 1979.

Christian Rolf Rokseth 99 He is the son of Rolf Rokseth 26 and of Priscilla Gabrielle Constance Herd 315.

Olav William Rokseth 100 Olav William Rokseth 100 was born on 16 Jul 1955. He is the son of Rolf Rokseth 26 and of

Priscilla Gabrielle Constance Herd 315.

Children of Olav William Rokseth 100 and Rocio Paez Sanchez 318

1. Tamia Camila Paez Rokseth 319, Birth: 4 Jan 1992

2. Emilie Aylin Paez Rokseth 320, Birth: 4 Mar 2002

3. David Sebian Paez Rokseth 321, Birth: 22 Jul 2004

Spouse: Rocio Paez Sanchez 318

Rocio Paez Sanchez 318 was born on 28 Sep 1963.

Tamia Camila Paez Rokseth 319 Tamia Camila Paez Rokseth 319 was born on 4 Jan 1992. She is the daughter of Olav William

Rokseth 100 and of Rocio Paez Sanchez 318.

Emilie Aylin Paez Rokseth 320 Emilie Aylin Paez Rokseth 320 was born on 4 Mar 2002. She is the daughter of Olav William

Rokseth 100 and of Rocio Paez Sanchez 318.

David Sebian Paez Rokseth 321 David Sebian Paez Rokseth 321 was born on 22 Jul 2004. He is the son of Olav William Rokseth

100 and of Rocio Paez Sanchez 318.

Page 43: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 43 of 233

4.6.7.2 Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38, 1898-1992

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Gustav Dahl, b,1875, d,1970(1) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876-1932

Rolf Eng Dahl,1867

Johan Nocolai Dahl, b.1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b1879 Anders Leonard Sarre

Thora Dahl,b.1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl,1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl,1880

An

drea Erikka D

ahl, .1

89

6,d

.19

97

Dagmar Karoline Dahl, 1898-1996 Nils Andreas Larsson Foldal, 1888-1964

Joh

an Ed

vard D

ahl,b

.19

00

-19

77

Geo

rge Sigmu

nd

Dah

l,19

04

-19

71

Olga Eu

genie D

ahl,1

90

6-1

97

7 Leif A

lbert D

ahl,1

90

8,d

ied as

child

Karl G

ustav D

ahl,1

91

0,d

ied as

child

Tho

ra Agn

ete Dah

l,19

14

-19

96

Gu

dru

n D

ahl,1

91

9-2

00

8

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894

(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909

(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842-10

Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833-96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845-89

Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845-1889

(iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862-1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen

1821-01

Ra

gn

va

ld M

attis

Da

hl

19

31

La

ila G

un

hild

Da

hl, 1

93

4

Th

ea

Da

hl,

19

35

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Aa

se

Ing

va

lda

Da

hl,1

93

8

Nils

Asla

k D

ah

l,19

38

,

twin

s

An

na Id

a Math

ilde D

ahl,1

91

6-

20

06

Dagmar Foldal, 1921-89Peder Julius Sandvig, 1916-2003

Elna Foldal,1923-1998Carl Wilhelm Taxbro,1910-1994

Liv Muriel Foldal 1925-Joachim Rønneberg,1919

Reidun Foldal, 1927Hans H.Nørve, 1921

Nils Asbjørn Foldal, 1928Dorothy H.Ireland, 1926-2003

Grete Sandvig, 1950Henry Knudsen, 1950

Dagmar Foldal Sandvig, 1953Egil Sponland,

Gudrun Sandvig, 1955

Carl Erik Taxbro, 1957Margaret Grønninsæther,1960

Liv Birthe Rønneberg,Lars Audun Gåsemyr

Åse Dorthe RønnebergKarl Emil Samuelsen

Jostein Rønneberg, 1951Karen Rossebø,1953

Anne Foldal Nørve, 1957

Knud Hans Nørve,1964Nina Jutkvam,1963

Dorothy H. Foldal, 1956-1999

Nils Andreas Foldal, 1960Torhild Solbak, 1960

Ped

er Juliu

s Sp

on

land

Margreth

e Spo

nlan

d

19

73

Hen

riette G

røn

nin

gsæth

er Taxb

ro,1

98

9

Liv Gåsem

yr

Bjø

rn G

åsemyr

An

na G

åsemyr

Kristin

nn

eberg

Samu

elsen

Joach

im R

øn

neb

erg Sam

uelsen

Hen

nin

g Ro

ssebø

R

øn

neb

erg,19

91

Trygve Joach

im

Ro

ssebø

nn

eberg,

19

93

Marth

e Eidsvik,1

98

5

Ole A

lexand

er Eid

svik, 19

95

Linn

Ch

arlotte

rve,19

92

Han

s Ch

ristian

rve, 19

96

Julia N

icolin

e Nø

rve, 2

00

4

Rasm

us Fo

ldal, 1

99

5

Nils A

nd

reas Fold

al, 1

99

1

Maria Lo

rentze

Fold

al,19

88

Erik Grø

nn

ingsæ

ther

Taxbro

,19

84

Elisabeth

Ro

ssebø

R

øn

neb

erg,19

95

Page 44: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 44 of 233

Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38 Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38 was born on 22 Jan 1898. She died on 2 Jan 1992. She was the daughter of

Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Anna Eugenie Hansen 4.

Children of Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38 and Nils Andreas Larsson Foldal 507

1. Dagmar Foldal 517 , Birth: 8 Jul 1921, Death: 1 Nov 1989

2. Elna Foldal 515, Birth: 1 Dec 1923, Death: 16 Aug 1998

3. Liv Muriel Foldal 510 , Birth: 25 May 1925

4. Reidun Foldal 516, Birth: 2 Jul 1927

5. Nils Asbjørn Foldal 508, Birth: 9 Mar 1928

Spouse: Nils Andreas Larsson Foldal 507 Nils Andreas Larsson Foldal 507 was born on 1 Jan 1888. He died on 27 Mar 1964. He was the son of

Lars Larsson 827 and of Dorte Karine Ellingsdatter 828.

Dagmar Foldal 517 Dagmar Foldal 517 was born on 8 Jul 1921. She died on 1 Nov 1989. She was the daughter of Nils

Andreas Larsson Foldal 507 and of Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38.

Children of Dagmar Foldal 517 and Peder Julius Sandvig 518

1. Grete Sandvig 519, Birth: 27 May 1950

2. Dagmar Foldal Sandvig 520, Birth: 23 Aug 1953

3. Gudrun Sandvig 521, Birth: 12 Apr 1955

Spouse: Peder Julius Sandvig 518 Peder Julius Sandvig 518 was born on 2 Jun 1916. He died on 6 Sep 2003.

Elna Foldal 515 Elna Foldal 515 was born on 1 Dec 1923. She died on 16 Aug 1998. She was the daughter of Nils

Andreas Larsson Foldal 507 and of Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38.

Children of Elna Foldal 515 and Carl Wilhelm Taxbro 533

1. Carl Erik Taxbro 534, Birth: 26 Aug 1957

Spouse: Carl Wilhelm Taxbro 533 Carl Wilhelm Taxbro 533 was born on 17 Jul 1910. He died on 21 Feb 1994.

Liv Muriel Foldal 510 Liv Muriel Foldal 510 was born on 25 May 1925. She is the daughter of Nils Andreas Larsson Foldal 507

and of Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38.

Children of Liv Muriel Foldal 510 and Joachim H. Rønneberg 538

1. Liv Birthe Rønneberg 541

2. Åse Dorthe Rønneberg 540

3. Jostein Rønneberg 539, Birth: 7 Feb 1951

Spouse: Joachim H. Rønneberg 538 Joachim H. Rønneberg 538 was born in August 1919.

Reidun Foldal 516 Reidun Foldal 516 was born on 2 Jul 1927. She is the daughter of Nils Andreas Larsson Foldal 507 and of

Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38.

Children of Reidun Foldal 516 and Hans H. Nørve 553

1. Anne Foldal Nørve 554, Birth: 8 Jan 1957

2. Knud Hans Nørve 555, Birth: 19 Jan 1964

Spouse: Hans H. Nørve 553

Page 45: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 45 of 233

Hans H. Nørve 553 was born on 27 Aug 1921.

Nils Asbjørn Foldal 508 Nils Asbjørn Foldal 508 was born on 9 Mar 1928. He is the son of Nils Andreas Larsson Foldal 507 and

of Dagmar Karoline Dahl 38.

Children of Nils Asbjørn Foldal 508 and Dorothy H. Ireland 526

1. Dorothy H. Foldal 527, Birth: 22 May 1956, Death: 28 Mar 1999

2. Nils Andreas Foldal 528, Birth: 31 Jul 1960

Spouse: Dorothy H. Ireland 526 Dorothy H. Ireland 526 was born on 3 Feb 1926. She died on 20 May 2003.

Grete Sandvig 519 Grete Sandvig 519 was born on 27 May 1950. She is the daughter of Peder Julius Sandvig 518 and of

Dagmar Foldal 517.

Spouse: Henry Knudsen 522 Henry Knudsen 522 was born on 31 Jan 1950.

Dagmar F. Sandvig 520 Dagmar F. Sandvig 520 was born on 23 Aug 1953. She is the daughter of Peder Julius Sandvig 518 and of

Dagmar Foldal 517.

Children of Dagmar F. Sandvig 520 and Egil Sponland 523

1. Peder Julius Sponland 525

2. Margrete Sponland 524, Birth: 3 Jul 1979

Spouse: Egil Sponland 523

Gudrun Sandvig 521 Gudrun Sandvig 521 was born on 12 Apr 1955. She is the daughter of Peder Julius Sandvig 518 and of

Dagmar Foldal 517.

Carl Erik Taxbro 534 Carl Erik Taxbro 534 was born on 26 Aug 1957. He is the son of Carl Wilhelm Taxbro 533 and of Elna

Foldal 515.

Children of Carl Erik Taxbro 534 and Margaret Grønningsæter 535

1. Erik Grønningsæter Taxbro 536, Birth: 20 Aug 1984

2. Henriette Grønningsæter Taxbro 537, Birth: 18 Jan 1989

Spouse: Margaret Grønningsæter 535 Margaret Grønningsæter 535 was born on 20 Sep 1960.

Liv Birthe Rønneberg 541 She was the daughter of Joachim H. Rønneberg 538 and of Liv Muriel Foldal 510.

Children of Liv Birthe Rønneberg 541 and Lars Audun Gåsemyr 549

1. Liv Gåsemyr 550

2. Bjørn Gåsemyr 551

3. Anna Gåsemyr 552

Spouse: Lars Audun Gåsemyr 549

Åse Dorthe Rønneberg 540 She was the daughter of Joachim H. Rønneberg 538 and of Liv Muriel Foldal 510.

Children of Åse Dorthe Rønneberg 540 and Karl Emil Samuelsen 546

Page 46: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 46 of 233

1. Kristin Rønneberg Samuelsen 547

2. Joachim Rønneberg Samuelsen 548

Spouse: Karl Emil Samuelsen 546

Jostein Rønneberg 539 Jostein Rønneberg 539 was born on 7 Feb 1951. He is the son of Joachim H. Rønneberg 538 and of Liv

Muriel Foldal 510.

Children of Jostein Rønneberg 539 and Karen Rossebø 542

1. Henning Rossebø Rønneberg 543, Birth: 3 Sep 1991

2. Trygve Joachim Rossebø Rønneberg 544, Birth: 3 Nov 1993

3. Elisabeth Rosse Rønneberg 545, Birth: 9 Dec 1995

Spouse: Karen Rossebø 542 Karen Rossebø 542 was born on 22 Aug 1953.

Anne Foldal Nørve 554 Anne Foldal Nørve 554 was born on 8 Jan 1957. She is the daughter of Hans H. Nørve 553 and of Reidun

Foldal 516.

Children of Anne Foldal Nørve 554

1. Marte Eidsvik 556, Birth: 10 Sep 1985

2. Ole Alexander Eidsvik 557, Birth: 15 Jan 1990

Knud Hans Nørve 555 Knud Hans Nørve 555 was born on 19 Jan 1964. He is the son of Hans H. Nørve 553 and of Reidun

Foldal 516.

Children of Knud Hans Nørve 555 and Nina Jutkvam 558

1. Linn Charlotte Nørve 559, Birth: 14 Nov 1992

2. Hans Christian Nørve 560, Birth: 11 Jan 1996

3. Julia Nicoline Nørve 561, Birth: 19 Jul 2004

Spouse: Nina Jutkvam 558 Nina Jutkvam 558 was born on 23 Oct 1963.

Dorothy H. Foldal 527 Dorothy H. Foldal 527 was born on 22 May 1956. She died on 28 Mar 1999. She was the daughter of

Nils Asbjørn Foldal 508 and of Dorothy H. Ireland 526.

Nils Andreas Foldal 528 Nils Andreas Foldal 528 was born on 31 Jul 1960. He is the son of Nils Asbjørn Foldal 508 and of

Dorothy H. Ireland 526.

Children of Nils Andreas Foldal 528 and Torhild Solbak 529

1. Maria Lorentze Foldal 532, Birth: 28 Aug 1988

2. Nils Andreas Foldal 530, Birth: 9 Jul 1991

3. Rasmus Foldal 531, Birth: 29 May 1995

Spouse: Torhild Solbak 529 Torhild Solbak 529 was born on 23 Sep 1960.

Peder Julius Sponland 525 He was the son of Egil Sponland 523 and of Dagmar F. Sandvig 520.

Page 47: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 47 of 233

Margrete Sponland 524 Margrete Sponland 524 was born on 3 Jul 1979. She is the daughter of Egil Sponland 523 and of Dagmar

F. Sandvig 520.

Erik Grønningsæter Taxbro 536 Erik Grønningsæter Taxbro 536 was born on 20 Aug 1984. He is the son of Carl Erik Taxbro 534 and of

Margaret Grønningsæter 535.

Henriette Grønningsæter Taxbro 537 Henriette Grønningsæter Taxbro 537 was born on 18 Jan 1989. She is the daughter of Carl Erik Taxbro

534 and of Margaret Grønningsæter 535.

Liv Gåsemyr 550 She is the daughter of Lars Audun Gåsemyr 549 and of Liv Birthe Rønneberg 541.

Bjørn Gåsemyr 551 He is the son of Lars Audun Gåsemyr 549 and of Liv Birthe Rønneberg 541.

Anna Gåsemyr 552 She is the daughter of Lars Audun Gåsemyr 549 and of Liv Birthe Rønneberg 541.

Kristin Rønneberg Samuelsen 547 She is the daughter of Karl Emil Samuelsen 546 and of Åse Dorthe Rønneberg 540.

Joachim Rønneberg Samuelsen 548 He is the son of Karl Emil Samuelsen 546 and of Åse Dorthe Rønneberg 540.

Henning Rossebø Rønneberg 543 Henning Rossebø Rønneberg 543 was born on 3 Sep 1991. He is the son of Jostein Rønneberg 539 and of

Karen Rossebø 542.

Trygve Joachim Rossebø Rønneberg 544 Trygve Joachim Rossebø Rønneberg 544 was born on 3 Nov 1993. He is the son of Jostein Rønneberg

539 and of Karen Rossebø 542.

Elisabeth Rosse Rønneberg 545 Elisabeth Rosse Rønneberg 545 was born on 9 Dec 1995. She is the daughter of Jostein Rønneberg 539

and of Karen Rossebø 542.

Marte Eidsvik 556 Marte Eidsvik 556 was born on 10 Sep 1985. She is the daughter of Anne Foldal Nørve 554.

Ole Alexander Eidsvik 557 Ole Alexander Eidsvik 557 was born on 15 Jan 1990. He is the son of Anne Foldal Nørve 554.

Linn Charlotte Nørve 559 Linn Charlotte Nørve 559 was born on 14 Nov 1992. She is the daughter of Knud Hans Nørve 555 and of

Nina Jutkvam 558.

Page 48: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 48 of 233

Hans Christian Nørve 560 Hans Christian Nørve 560 was born on 11 Jan 1996. He is the son of Knud Hans Nørve 555 and of Nina

Jutkvam 558.

Julia Nicoline Nørve 561 Julia Nicoline Nørve 561 was born on 19 Jul 2004. She is the daughter of Knud Hans Nørve 555 and of

Nina Jutkvam 558.

Maria Lorentze Foldal 532 Maria Lorentze Foldal 532 was born on 28 Aug 1988. She is the daughter of Nils Andreas Foldal 528 and

of Torhild Solbak 529.

Nils Andreas Foldal 530 Nils Andreas Foldal 530 was born on 9 Jul 1991. He is the son of Nils Andreas Foldal 528 and of Torhild

Solbak 529.

Rasmus Foldal 531 Rasmus Foldal 531 was born on 29 May 1995. He is the son of Nils Andreas Foldal 528 and of Torhild

Solbak 529.

Page 49: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 49 of 233

4.6.7.3 Johan Edvard Dahl10, 1900-1977

Heading

Heading

Heading

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894

(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909

(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842-10

Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833-96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845-89

Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845-1889

(iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862-1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen

1821-01

Gustav Dahl,b,1875,d,1970(1) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876-1932(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen,1902-1956

Rolf Eng Dahl,1867

Johan Nocolai Dahl, b.1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b1879 Anders Leonard Sarre

Thora Dahl,b.1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl,1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl,1880

Andre

a E

rikka D

ahl,

b.1

896

,d.1

997

Dagm

ar K

aro

line D

ahl,

b.1

898

-1996

Johan E

dva

rd D

ahl,

b.1

900

-1977

Georg

e S

igm

und

Dahl,

1904-1

971

Olg

a E

ugenie

Dahl,

1906-1

977

Leif A

lbert D

ahl,

1908,d

ied a

s child

Karl G

usta

v Dahl,

1910,d

ied a

s child

Thora

Agnete

Dahl

1914-1

996

Anna Id

a M

ath

ilde D

ahl

1916-2

006

Gudru

n D

ahl

1919-2

008

Rag

nvald

Mattis

Da

hl

193

1

Laila

Gun

hild

Da

hl, 1

934

The

a D

ahl, 1

935

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ahl,1

937

Aa

se

Ing

vald

a D

ahl,1

938

Nils

Asla

k D

ahl,1

938,

twin

s

Johan Edvard Dahl,1900-1977Gyda Pettersen,1906-1993

Johan Fridtjof Dahl,1928Elin Margrethe Dervola,1929-2007

Rolf Gustav Dahl,1930Solveig Bergersen, 1926

Eugenie Dahl, 1932Åsmund Falch, 1930-2010

Leif Dahl, 1933-1990Gerd Tove Ananasiassen

Gerd Dahl, 1936Arne Paul Nikolaisen, 1924

Nils Erling Dahl, 1938Kari Ann Økland, 1944-2001

Mimmi Gyda Dahl, 1939-39

Liv Elise Dahl,1947

Karl Fredrik Dahl,1949

Jan Helge Dahl,1958

Svein Roar Dahl,1964

Alf Berge Dahl,1967

Unni Lucie Falch,1955

Anita Eugenie Falch,1960

Merete Gyda Falch,1965

Leif Tore Dahl,1963

Arnfinn Dahl,1964

Øystein Dahl,1969

Kaleb Økland Dahl,1964

Rita Dahl,1966Mai Bente Dahl,1968

Joh

an M

orten

Bo

yle

Maiken

Karo

lina

Bo

yle

Kath

elin M

. Bo

yle

Eila Suzan

na B

oyle

Liv Elisabeth

Bo

yle

Tamin

a Helen

a Dah

l

Tom

Fredrik D

ahl

Heid

i Vib

eke Dah

l

Ole Ed

vard D

ahl

Tanja Liv B

oyle

No

rdlu

nd

Jane R

ita Mu

den

ia

Fredrik Skred

e Dah

l

An

drea Skred

e Dah

l

Stine D

ahl

Marcello

An

dre Falch

P

ovea

Leand

ro C

hristian

Falch

Po

vea

Ram

on

a Dah

l

Håvard

Dah

l

Helen

e Dah

l

Han

nah

Dah

l

Raym

on

d D

ahl

Ch

ristian D

ahl

Malin

Kn

ud

sen

Ko

rvanen

Sun

niva K

orvan

en

Lena D

ahl

Ton

je Dah

l

Mo

nica D

ahl

Ped

ersen

Tron

d A

tle Dah

l P

edersen

Petter Jo

achim

Dah

l A

nd

ersen

Tine D

ahl A

nd

ersen

Tor Erik D

ahl

Ren

ata Dah

l

ril Dah

l

Stian Falch

Bekken

Lasse Falch B

ekken

Han

nah

Ton

ette Lu

nd

Ton

je Eugen

ie Lun

d

Karen

Tho

rbekk

Magn

us Th

orb

ekk

Dan

iel Bo

yle Vist

Pern

ille Bo

yle Vist

Ida B

oyle V

ist

Jacob

Bish

op

B

oyle

Fredrik D

ahl

Mad

elen

rmen

en

Birgitte

rmen

en

Hen

rik Dø

rmen

en

Else Olea D

ahl

Kristian

Pd

ersen

Math

eo G

allein

Po

vea

Lukas San

dvik

Seline San

dvik

Page 50: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 50 of 233

Johan Edvard Dahl 10 Johan Edvard Dahl 10 was born on 31 Mar 1900. He died on 17 Sep 1977. He was the son of

Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Anna Eugenie Hansen 4.

Children of Johan Edvard Dahl 10 and Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30

1. Johan Fridtjof Dahl 31, Birth: 15 Nov 1928

2. Rolf Gustav Dahl 32, Birth: 25 Oct 1930

3. Eugenie Dahl 35, Birth: 14 Feb 1932

4. Leif Dahl 33, Birth: 10 May 1933, Death: 14 Jun 1990

5. Gerd Dahl 36, Birth: 10 Apr 1936

6. Nils Erling Dahl 34, Birth: 5 Apr 1938

7. Mimmi Gyda Dahl 1722, Birth: 15 Jun 1939, Death: 24 Sep 1939

Spouse: Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30

Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30 was born on 20 May 1906. She died on 16 Feb 1993. She was the

daughter of Fridtjof Georg Pettersen 816 and of Sofie Pettersen 817.

Johan Fridtjof Dahl 31 Johan Fridtjof Dahl 31 was born on 15 Nov 1928. He is the son of Johan Edvard Dahl 10 and

of Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30.

Children of Johan Fridtjof Dahl 31 and Eila Margrethe Dervola 417

1. Liv Else Dahl 418, Birth: 25 Oct 1947

2. Karl Fredrik Dahl 419, Birth: 10 Jun 1949

Spouse: Eila Margrethe Dervola 417

Eila Margrethe Dervola 417 was born on 9 Sep 1929. She died on 12 Mar 2007.

Rolf Gustav Dahl 32 Rolf Gustav Dahl 32 was born on 25 Oct 1930. He is the son of Johan Edvard Dahl 10 and of

Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30.

Children of Rolf Gustav Dahl 32 and Solveig Bergesen 448

1. Jan Helge Dahl 449, Birth: 10 Oct 1958

2. Svein Roar Dahl 450, Birth: 31 Jan 1964

3. Alf Berge Dahl 451, Birth: 26 Feb 1967

Spouse: Solveig Bergesen 448

Solveig Bergesen 448 was born on 27 Feb 1926.

Eugenie Dahl 35 Eugenie Dahl 35 was born on 14 Feb 1932. She is the daughter of Johan Edvard Dahl 10 and of

Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30.

Children of Eugenie Dahl 35 and Åsmund Falch 492

1. Unni Lucie Falch 493, Birth: 15 Oct 1955

2. Anita Eugenie Falch 494, Birth: 27 Dec 1960

3. Merete Gyda Falch 495, Birth: 26 May 1965

Spouse: Åsmund Falch 492

Åsmund Falch 492 was born on 19 Jan 1930. He died on 18 Jun 2010.

Leif Dahl 33 Leif Dahl 33 was born on 10 May 1933. He died on 14 Jun 1990. He was the son of Johan

Page 51: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 51 of 233

Edvard Dahl 10 and of Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30.

Children of Leif Dahl 33 and Gerd Tove Ananiassen 1734

1. Leif - Tore Dahl 459, Birth: 5 Apr 1963

2. Arnfinn Dahl 460, Birth: 3 Jul 1964

3. Øystein Dahl 461, Birth: 7 Jan 1969

Spouse: Gerd Tove Ananiassen 1734

Gerd Dahl 36 Gerd Dahl 36 was born n 10 Apr 1936. She is the daughter of Johan Edvard Dahl 10 and of

Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30.

Spouse: Arne Paul Nikolaisen 506

Arne Paul Nikolaisen 506 was born on 7 Oct 1924.

Nils Erling Dahl 34 Nils Erling Dahl 34 was born on 5 Apr 1938. He is the son of Johan Edvard Dahl 10 and of

Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30.

Children of Nils Erling Dahl 34 and Kari Ann Økland 476

1. Kaleb Økland Dahl 477, Birth: 2 Jul 1964

2. Rita Dahl 478, Birth: 2 Jan 1966

3. Mai Bente Dahl 479, Birth: 20 Sep 1968

Spouse: Kari Ann Økland 476 16-1

Kari Ann Økland 476 was born on 8 Mar 1944. She died on 7 Mar 2001.

Mimmi Gyda Dahl 1722 Mimmi Gyda Dahl 1722 was born on 15 Jun 1939. She died on 24 Sep 1939. She was the

daughter of Johan Edvard Dahl 10 and of Gyda Mimmi Pettersen 30.

Liv Else Dahl 418 Liv Else Dahl 418 was born on 25 Oct 1947. She is the daughter of Johan Fridtjof Dahl 31 and

of Eila Margrethe Dervola 417.

Children of Liv Else Dahl 418 and Mats Sundin 420

1. John Morten Boyle 421, Birth: 16 Nov 1966, Death: 25 Sep 2002

2. Tamina Helena Sundin Dahl 425, Birth: 28 Feb 1987

Children of Liv Else Dahl 418 and Johan Peter Boyle 1723

1. Kathleen Margrethe Boyle 422, Birth: 8 Jan 1968

2. Eila Suzanne Boyle 423, Birth: 24 Feb 1970

3. Liv Elisabeth Boyle 424, Birth: 22 Aug 1972

Spouse 1: Mats Sundin 420

Spouse 2: Johan Peter Boyle 1723

Johan Peter Boyle 1723 was born on 27 Aug 1942.

Karl Fredrik Dahl 419 Karl Fredrik Dahl 419 was born on 10 Jun 1949. He is the son of Johan Fridtjof Dahl 31 and of

Eila Margrethe Dervola 417.

Children of Karl Fredrik Dahl 419 and Harriet Charlotte Iversen 437

1. Tom Fredrik Dahl 438, Birth: 8 May 1968

Page 52: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 52 of 233

2. Heidi Vibeke Dahl 439, Birth: 7 Apr 1969

3. Ole Edvard Dahl 440, Birth: 5 Nov 1971

Spouse: Harriet Charlotte Iversen 437

Harriet Charlotte Iversen 437 was born on 3 Nov 1946.

Jan Helge Dahl 449 Jan Helge Dahl 449 was born on 10 Oct 1958. He is the son of Rolf Gustav Dahl 32 and of

Solveig Bergesen 448.

Children of Jan Helge Dahl 449 and Ranveig Mudenia 1730

1. Jane Rita Mudenia 452, Birth: 17 Jul 1980

Children of Jan Helge Dahl 449 and Nina Skrede Skrede 1731

1. Fredrik Skrede Dahl 453, Birth: 25 Jul 1986

2. Andrea Skrede Dahl 454, Birth: 23 May 1999

Spouse 1: Ranveig Mudenia 1730

Spouse 2: Nina Skrede Skrede 1731

Svein Roar Dahl 450 Svein Roar Dahl 450 was born on 31 Jan 1964. He is the son of Rolf Gustav Dahl 32 and of

Solveig Bergesen 448.

Alf Berge Dahl 451 Alf Berge Dahl 451 was born on 26 Feb 1967. He is the son of Rolf Gustav Dahl 32 and of

Solveig Bergesen 448.

Children of Alf Berge Dahl 451 and Anne Lise Reitan 457

1. Stine Dahl 458, Birth: 5 Aug 2000

Spouse: Anne Lise Reitan 457

Unni Lucie Falch 493 Unni Lucie Falch 493 was born on 15 Oct 1955. She is the daughter of Åsmund Falch 492 and

of Eugenie Dahl 35.

Children of Unni Lucie Falch 493 and Gustavo Povea 1737

1. Marcello Andre Falch Povea 496, Birth: 3 Jan 1983

2. Leandro Christopher Falch Povea 497, Birth: 7 Jul 1987

Spouse: Gustavo Povea 1737

Anita Eugenie Falch 494 Anita Eugenie Falch 494 was born on 27 Dec 1960. She is the daughter of Åsmund Falch 492

and of Eugenie Dahl 35.

Children of Anita Eugenie Falch 494 and Jan Erik Lund 500

1. Tonje Eugenie Lund 501, Birth: 28 Dec 1994

2. Hannah Tonette Lund 502, Birth: 12 May 1997

Spouse: Jan Erik Lund 500

Merete Gyda Falch 495 Merete Gyda Falch 495 was born on 26 May 1965. She is the daughter of Åsmund Falch 492

and of Eugenie Dahl 35.

Page 53: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 53 of 233

Children of Merete Gyda Falch 495 and Andre Bekken 503

1. Lasse Falch Bekken 504, Birth: 14 Sep 1991

2. Stian Falch Bekken 505, Birth: 12 Apr 1996

Spouse: Andre Bekken 503

Leif - Tore Dahl 459 Leif - Tore Dahl 459 was born on 5 Apr 1963. He is the son of Leif Dahl 33 and of Gerd Tove

Ananiassen 1734.

Children of Leif - Tore Dahl 459 and Oddbjørg Simonsen 462

1. Tor Erik Dahl 463, Birth: 20 Dec 1991

2. Renate Dahl 465, Birth: 2 Jun 1994

3. Gøril Dahl 464, Birth: 2 Jun 1994

Spouse: Oddbjørg Simonsen 462

Arnfinn Dahl 460 Arnfinn Dahl 460 was born on 3 Jul 1964. He is the son of Leif Dahl 33 and of Gerd Tove

Ananiassen 1734.

Children of Arnfinn Dahl 460 and Anne - Mona Aikio 467

1. Helene Dahl 468, Birth: 23 Dec 1986

2. Håvard Dahl 471, Birth: 29 Oct 1988

3. Ramona Dahl 472, Birth: 11 Sep 1996

Spouse: Anne - Mona Aikio 467

Anne - Mona Aikio 467 was born on 16 Mar 1964.

Øystein Dahl 461 Øystein Dahl 461 was born on 7 Jan 1969. He is the son of Leif Dahl 33 and of Gerd Tove

Ananiassen 1734.

Children of Øystein Dahl 461 and Ann Kristin Kilen 1735

1. Christian Dahl 473 , Birth: 8 Nov 1990

2. Raymond Dahl 474, Birth: 23 Nov 1992

Children of Øystein Dahl 461 and Marit Dahl 284

1. Hannah Christine Dahl 475, Birth: 1 Oct 2001

Spouse 1: Ann Kristin Kilen 1735

Spouse 2: Marit Dahl 284

Marit Dahl 284 was born on 18 Mar 1975. She is the daughter of Bjørn Albert Dahl 21 and of

Turid Solveig Niemi 200.

Kaleb Økland Dahl 477 Kaleb Økland Dahl 477 was born on 2 Jul 1964. He is the son of Nils Erling Dahl 34 and of

Kari Ann Økland 476.

Children of Kaleb Økland Dahl 477 and Jill Knudsen 480

1. Tonje Dahl 481, Birth: 3 Jun 1993

2. Lena Dahl 482, Birth: 22 Jul 1995

3. Sunniva Korvanen 483, Birth: 24 Jul 1996

4. Malin Knudsen Korvanen 484, Birth: 18 Jul 1999

Spouse: Jill Knudsen 480

Page 54: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 54 of 233

Rita Dahl 478 Rita Dahl 478 was born on 2 Jan 1966. She is the /daughter of Nils Erling Dahl 34 and of Kari

Ann Økland 476.

Children of Rita Dahl 478 and Atle Pedersen 485

1. Trond - Atle Dahl Pedersen 486, Birth: 9 May 1987

2. Monica Dahl Pedersen 487, Birth: 15 Jan 1995

Spouse: Atle Pedersen 485

Mai Bente Dahl 479 Mai Bente Dahl 479 was born on 20 Sep 1968. She is the daughter of Nils Erling Dahl 34 and

of Kari Ann Økland 476.

Children of Mai Bente Dahl 479 and Per Oscar Andersen 489

1. Tine Dahl Andersen 490 , Birth: 23 Sep 1993

2. Petter Joacim Dahl Andersen 491, Birth: 2 Sep 1997

Spouse: Per Oscar Andersen 489

Per Oscar Andersen 489 was born on 27 Jun 1961.

John Morten Boyle 421 John Morten Boyle 421 was born on 16 Nov 1966. He died on 25 Sep 2002. He was the son of

Mats Sundin 420 and of Liv Else Dahl 418.

Children of John Morten Boyle 421 and Sylvia Karoline Falk 1725

1. Maiken Karolina Boyle 426, Birth: 11 Apr 1996

Children of John Morten Boyle 421 and Maria Kristina Elisaberth Nordlund 1726

1. Tanja Liv Elisabeth Boyle Nordlund 427, Birth: 2 Apr 2002

Spouse 1: Sylvia Karoline Falk 1725

Sylvia Karoline Falk 1725 was born on 17 Jun 1972.

Spouse 2: Maria Kristina Elisaberth Nordlund 1726

Tamina Helena Sundin Dahl 425 Tamina Helena Sundin Dahl 425 was born on 28 Feb 1987. She is the daughter of Mats Sundin

420 and of Liv Else Dahl 418.

Kathleen Margrethe Boyle 422 Kathleen Margrethe Boyle 422 was born on 8 Jan 1968. She is the daughter of Johan Peter

Boyle 1723

and of Liv Else Dahl 418.

Children of Kathleen Margrethe Boyle 422 and Arne Thorsbekk 428

1. Karen Thorbekk 429

2. Magnus Thorbekk 430

Spouse: Arne Thorsbekk 428

Eila Suzanne Boyle 423 Eila Suzanne Boyle 423 was born on 24 Feb 1970. She is the daughter of Johan Peter Boyle

1723 and of Liv Else Dahl 418.

Children of Eila Suzanne Boyle 423 and Jarle Vist 1727

1. Daniel Boyle Vist 431

Page 55: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 55 of 233

2. Pernille Boyle Vist 432

3. Ida Boyle Vist 433

Spouse: Jarle Vist 1727

Liv Elisabeth Boyle 424 Liv Elisabeth Boyle 424 was born on 22 Aug 1972. She is the daughter of Johan Peter Boyle

1723 and of Liv Else Dahl 418.

Children of Liv Elisabeth Boyle 424 and Jason Bishop 1728

1. Jacob Bishop Boyle 435

Spouse 1: Grant Sculler 434

Spouse 2: Jason Bishop 1728

Jason Bishop 1728 was born on 11 Nov 1996.

Tom Fredrik Dahl 438 Tom Fredrik Dahl 438 was born on 8 May 1968. He is the son of Karl Fredrik Dahl 419 and of

Harriet Charlotte Iversen 437.

Children of Tom Fredrik Dahl 438 and Ingjerd Haugen 1729

1. Fredrik Dahl 442 Birth: 8 Jan 2001

Spouse 1: Ingrid Rossen Haavik 441

Ingrid Rossen Haavik 441 was born on 27 Apr 1981.

Spouse 2: Ingjerd Haugen 1729

Heidi Vibeke Dahl 439 Heidi Vibeke Dahl 439 was born on 7 Apr 1969. She is the daughter of Karl Fredrik Dahl 419

and of Harriet Charlotte Iversen 437.

Children of Heidi Vibeke Dahl 439 and Svein Tore Dørmænen 443

1. Madelen Dørmænen 444, Birth: 23 Dec 1993

2. Birgitte Dørmænen 445, Birth: 7 Jul 1998

3. Henrik Dørmænen 446, Birth: 30 Jun 2003

Spouse: Svein Tore Dørmænen 443

Svein Tore Dørmænen 443 was born on 11 Apr 1966.

Ole Edvard Dahl 440 Ole Edvard Dahl 440 was born on 5 Nov 1971. He is the son of Karl Fredrik Dahl 419 and of

Harriet Charlotte Iversen 437.

Children of Ole Edvard Dahl 440 and Trine Andersen 447

1. Else Olea Dahl 1560, Birth: Oslo, 15 Oct 2010

Spouse: Trine Andersen 447

Trine Andersen 447 was born on 21 Aug 1972.

Jane Rita Mudenia 452 Jane Rita Mudenia 452 was born on 17 Jul 1980. She is the daughter of Jan Helge Dahl 449

and of Ranveig Mudenia 1730.

Children of Jane Rita Mudenia 452 and John Christer Pedersen 455

1. Kristian Pedersen 456, Birth: 3 Aug 2007

Spouse: John Christer Pedersen 455

Page 56: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 56 of 233

John Christer Pedersen 455 was born on 16 May 1979.

Fredrik Skrede Dahl 453 Fredrik Skrede Dahl 453 was born on 25 Jul 1986. He is the son of Jan Helge Dahl 449

and of Nina Skrede Skrede 1731.

Children of Fredrik Skrede Dahl 453 and Ann Elisabeth Opdahl 1732

1. Chris Alvin Opdahl 1733 , Birth: 28 Jun 2009

Spouse: Ann Elisabeth Opdahl 1732

Andrea Skrede Dahl 454 Andrea Skrede Dahl 454 was born on 23 May 1999. She is the daughter of Jan Helge Dahl 449

and of Nina Skrede Skrede 1731.

Stine Dahl 458 Stine Dahl 458 was born on 5 Aug 2000. She is the daughter of Alf Berge Dahl 451 and of

Anne Lise Reitan 457.

Marcello Andre Falch Povea 496 Marcello Andre Falch Povea 496 was born on 3 Jan 1983. He is the son of Gustavo Povea 1737

and of Unni Lucie Falch 493.

Children of Marcello Andre Falch Povea 496 and Eva Kristin Gellein 498

1. Matheo Gellein Povea 499, Birth: 6 Jan 2008

Spouse: Eva Kristin Gellein 498

Eva Kristin Gellein 498 was born on 25 May 1981.

Leandro Christopher Falch Povea 497 Leandro Christopher Falch Povea 497 was born on 7 Jul 1987. He is the son of Gustavo Povea

1737 and of Unni Lucie Falch 493.

Tonje Eugenie Lund 501 Tonje Eugenie Lund 501 was born on 28 Dec 1994. She is the daughter of Jan Erik Lund 500

and of Anita Eugenie Falch 494.

Hannah Tonette Lund 502 Hannah Tonette Lund 502 was born on 12 May 1997. She is the daughter of Jan Erik Lund 500

and of Anita Eugenie Falch 494.

Lasse Falch Bekken 504 Lasse Falch Bekken 504 was born on 14 Sep 1991. He is the son of Andre Bekken 503 and of

Merete Gyda Falch 495.

Stian Falch Bekken 505 Stian Falch Bekken 505 was born on 12 Apr 1996. He is the son of Andre Bekken 503 and of

Merete Gyda Falch 495.

Page 57: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 57 of 233

Tor Erik Dahl 463 Tor Erik Dahl 463 was born on 20 Dec 1991. He is the son of Leif-Tore Dahl 459 and of

Oddbjørg Simonsen 462.

Renate Dahl 465 Renate Dahl 465 was born on 2 Jun 1994. She is the daughter of Leif-Tore Dahl 459

and of Oddbjørg Simonsen 462.

Gøril Dahl 464 Gøril Dahl 464 was born on 2 Jun 1994. She is the daughter of Leif-Tore Dahl 459

and of Oddbjørg Simonsen 462.

Helene Dahl 468 Helene Dahl 468 was born on 23 Dec 1986. She is the daughter of Arnfinn Dahl 460

and of Anne - Mona Aikio 467.

Children of Helene Dahl 468 and Steinar Sandvik,jr 469

1. Lukas Sandvik 470, Birth: 2 Aug 2006

2. Seline Sandvik 1736, Birth: 28 Jun 2009

Spouse: Steinar Sandvik,jr 469

Håvard Dahl 471 Håvard Dahl 471 was born on 29 Oct 1988. He is the son of Arnfinn Dahl 460 and of Anne -

Mona Aikio 467.

Ramona Dahl 472 Ramona Dahl 472 was born on 11 Sep 1996. She is the daughter of Arnfinn Dahl 460 and of

Anne - Mona Aikio 467.

Christian Dahl 473 Christian Dahl 473 was born on 8 Nov 1990. He is the son of Øystein Dahl 461 and of Ann

Kristin Kilen 1735.

Raymond Dahl 474 Raymond Dahl 474 was born on 23 Nov 1992. He is the son of Øystein Dahl 461 and of Ann

Kristin Kilen 1735.

Hannah Christine Dahl 475 Hannah Christine Dahl 475 was born on 1 Oct 2001. She is the daughter of Øystein Dahl 461

and of Marit Dahl 284.

Tonje Dahl 481 Tonje Dahl 481 was born on 3 Jun 1993. She is the daughter of Kaleb Økland Dahl 477 and of

Jill Knudsen 480.

Lena Dahl 482 Lena Dahl 482 was born on 22 Jul 1995. She is the daughter of Kaleb Økland Dahl 477 and of

Page 58: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 58 of 233

Jill Knudsen 480.

Sunniva Korvanen 483 Sunniva Korvanen 483 was born on 24 Jul 1996. She is the daughter of Kaleb Økland Dahl 477

and of Jill Knudsen 480.

Malin Knudsen Korvanen 484 Malin Knudsen Korvanen 484 was born on 18 Jul 1999. She is the daughter of Kaleb Økland

Dahl 477 and of Jill Knudsen 480.

Trond - Atle Dahl Pedersen 486 Trond - Atle Dahl Pedersen 486 was born on 9 May 1987. He is the son of Atle Pedersen 485

and of Rita Dahl 478.

Monica Dahl Pedersen 487 Monica Dahl Pedersen 487 was born on 15 Jan 1995. She is the daughter of Atle Pedersen 485

and of Rita Dahl 478.

Tine Dahl Andersen 490 Tine Dahl Andersen 490 was born on 23 Sep 1993. She is the daughter of Per Oscar Andersen

489 and of Mai Bente Dahl 479.

Petter Joacim Dahl Andersen 491 Petter Joacim Dahl Andersen 491 was born on 2 Sep 1997. He is the son of Per Oscar Andersen

489 and of Mai Bente Dahl 479.

Maiken Karolina Boyle 426 Maiken Karolina Boyle 426 was born on 11 Apr 1996. She is the daughter of John Morten

Boyle 421 and of Sylvia Karoline Falk 1725.

Tanja Liv Elisabeth Boyle Nordlund 427 Tanja Liv Elisabeth Boyle Nordlund 427 was born on 2 Apr 2002. She is the daughter of John

Morten Boyle 421 and of Maria Kristina Elisaberth Nordlund 1726.

Karen Thorbekk 429 She is the daughter of Arne Thorsbekk 428 and of Kathleen Margrethe Boyle 422.

Magnus Thorbekk 430 He is the son of Arne Thorsbekk 428 and of Kathleen Margrethe Boyle 422.

Daniel Boyle Vist 431 He is the son of Jarle Vist 1727 and of Eila Suzanne Boyle 423.

Children of Daniel Boyle Vist 431 and Kristine 1559

1. Felix Lund Vist 1558, Birth: Drammen

Spouse: Kristine 1559

Page 59: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 59 of 233

Pernille Boyle Vist 432 She is the daughter of Jarle Vist 1727 and of Eila Suzanne Boyle 423.

Ida Boyle Vist 433 She is the daughter of Jarle Vist 1727 and of Eila Suzanne Boyle 423.

Jacob Bishop Boyle 435 He is the son of Jason Bishop 1728 and of Liv Elisabeth Boyle 424.

Fredrik Dahl 442 Fredrik Dahl 442 was born on 8 Jan 2001. He is the son of Tom Fredrik Dahl 438 and of

Ingjerd Haugen 1729.

Madelen Dørmænen 444 Madelen Dørmænen 444 was born on 23 Dec 1993. She is the daughter of Svein Tore

Dørmænen 443 and of Heidi Vibeke Dahl 439.

Birgitte Dørmænen 445 Birgitte Dørmænen 445 was born on 7 Jul 1998. She is the daughter of Svein Tore Dørmænen

443 and of Heidi Vibeke Dahl 439.

Henrik Dørmænen 446 Henrik Dørmænen 446 was born on 30 Jun 2003. He is the son of Svein Tore Dørmænen 443

and of Heidi Vibeke Dahl 439.

Else Olea Dahl 1560 Else Olea Dahl 1560 was born in Oslo on 15 Oct 2010. She is the daughter of Ole Edvard Dahl

440 and of Trine Andersen 447.

Kristian Pedersen 456 Kristian Pedersen 456 was born on 3 Aug 2007. He is the son of John Christer Pedersen 455

and of Jane Rita Mudenia 452.

Chris Alvin Opdahl 1733 Chris Alvin Opdahl 1733 was born on 28 Jun 2009. He is the son of Fredrik Skrede Dahl 453

and of Ann Elisabeth Opdahl 1732.

Matheo Gellein Povea 499 Matheo Gellein Povea 499 was born on 6 Jan 2008. He is the son of Marcello Andre Falch

Povea 496 and of Eva Kristin Gellein 498.

Lukas Sandvik 470 Lukas Sandvik 470 was born on 2 Aug 2006. He is the son of Steinar Sandvik,jr 469 and of

Helene Dahl 468.

Page 60: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 60 of 233

Seline Sandvik 1736 Seline Sandvik 1736 was born on 28 Jun 2009. She is the daughter of Steinar Sandvik,jr 469

and of Helene Dahl 468.

Felix Lund Vist 1558 Felix Lund Vist 1558 was born in Drammen. He is the son of Daniel Boyle Vist 431 and of

Kristine 1559.

Page 61: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 61 of 233

4.6.7.4 Georg Sigmund Dahl7, 1904-1971

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894

(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909

(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842-10

Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833-96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845-89

Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845-1889

(iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862-1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen

1821-01

Ragnvald

Mattis D

ahl

1931

Laila G

unhild D

ahl, 1934

Thea D

ahl, 1935

Gustav H

arald D

ahl,1937

Aase

Ingvalda D

ahl,1938

Nils A

slak Dahl,1938,

twins

Gustav Dahl,b,1875,d,1970(1) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876-1932(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen,1902-1955

Rolf Eng Dahl,1867

Johan Nocolai Dahl, b.1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b1879 Anders Leonard Sarre

Thora Dahl,b.1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl,1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl,1880

Andrea Erikka Dahl, b.1896,d.1997 Dagm

ar Karoline Dahl, b.1898-1996 Johan Edvard Dahl,b.1900-1977

George Sigmund Dahl,1904-1971Lembi Natalie Kalliainen,1908-1992

Olga Eugenie Dahl,1906-1977 Leif Albert Dahl,1908,died as child

Karl Gustav Dahl,1910,died as child Thora Agnete Dahl,1914-1996 Anna Ida M

athilde Dahl1916-2006

Gudrun Dahl,1919-2008

Reidun Dahl, 1932Eilif Henriksen,1932

Olaf Dahl,1934-1960

Erna Dahl,1935Andreas Kvien,1932

Dankert Erik Dahl,1937Haldis Kaldestad,1946

Gunvor Margrete

Dahl,1939Jan Helge Næ

ss,1928-1989

Bjørg Vilgunn Dahl, 1942Kolbjørn Arne Vilseth, 1942-

Ruth Inger Dahl,1945Jon Christian Kaspersen,1948

Ester Elisabeth Dahl, 1947Leif M

athisen,1945

Bjørn Albert Dahl,1949Turid Niem

i,1952

Anna Dahl,1940Idar Karlsen,1931-2010

Anne G-Henriksen, 1961

Heidi Irene Henriksen, 1963Kjell Arne Høyer,1956

Daniel Henriksen, 1984

Alexander Henriksen, 1985

Bjørn Are Kvien,1955Eli Iversen,1954

Tove Karin Næss,1963

Kjell Hansen,1959

Sindre Næss1969

Birgit Engesæther,1976

Ronald Karlsen,1963

Trond Inge Karlsen, 1967Eva H. Ottesen,1965

Bjørn Erik Dahl,1973Katrine G.Pettersen, 1978

Thomas M

athisen,1975Nina Elisabeth Holsve,

Rune Georg Mathisen,

1971M

ette Meier,1963

Linda Irene Mathisen,

1970

Frank Arne Kaspersen, 1977Janne Gundersen,1977

Hilde Mari Kaspersen,

1972Egil Salam

onsen,1962

Tom Harald Graven,

1977

Vilgunn Bigseth,1972Julio C.M

agallanes, 1965

Kjetil Bigseth,1971Anita Pedersen,1976

Georg M. Karlsen, 1981

Mari L. Solheim

, 1978

Håvard Karlsen,1969Vibeke R. Ludvigsen,1973

Geir Olav Næss,1967

Ann Karin Dahl,1970

Tone Dahl,1967Rune Kjæ

r,1969

Marit Dahl,1975

Anders Dahl Erga,1974

Elisabeth Dahl,1984

Alvilde Kaspersen,2007

Herman Gaustad Dahl,

2009

Christoffer Mathisen, 1990

Henrik Mathisen,1994

Emily Tom

ine M

athisen,2004

Sondre Salamonsen,2001

Eskil Salamaonsen,2003

Vebjørn Salamonsen,2004

Sigrid Salamonsen, 2008

HannahChristine Dahl, 2001

Mille Andrea Bigseth,2005

Mathias Bigseth,2007

Gabriel Bigseth,2007Rebekka Bigseth,2005

Michael Jarle Ottesen,1984

Isak AlexanderKarlsen,2002David Esaias Karlsen,2004

Marita Karlsen,1994

Isabel Karlsen,2006

Helena Solheim Karlsen,

2009

Trym Engesæ

ther Næss,

2007

Jone Engesæther Næ

ss, 2007

Lydia Næss, 2005

Mathilde Næ

ss, 1996

Otilie Næss, 1999

Elida Næss, 2001

Sandra Hansen, 1988Kenneth Harila

Joakim Hansen, 1994

Julie Kjær, 1994

Siri KJær, 1995

Hanna Josefine KJær, 1998

Stian Kvien, 1978Line Haag Sem

b,1974

Cathrine Iversen Kvien, 1986

Mia Elise Haag Kvien,2001

Page 62: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 62 of 233

Georg Sigmund Dahl 7 Georg Sigmund Dahl 7 was born on 14 Apr 1904. He died on 9 Nov 1971. He was the son of

Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Anna Eugenie Hansen 4.

Children of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7 and Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11

1. Reidun Andrea Dahl 12 , Birth: 8 Jul 1932

2. Olaf Dahl 13 , Birth: 7 Mar 1934, Death: 1 May 1960

3. Erna Dahl 14 , Birth: 10 Jul 1935

4. Dankert Erik Dahl 15 , Birth: 16 Jun 1937

5. Gunvor Margrethe Dahl 16 , Birth: 27 Feb 1939

6. Anna Dahl 17 , Birth: 8 Oct 1940

7. Bjørg Vilgunn Dahl 18 , Birth: 17 Mar 1942

8. Ruth Inger Dahl 19 , Birth: 12 Jun 1945

9. Ester Elisabeth Dahl 20 , Birth: 17 Nov 1947

10. Bjørn Albert Dahl 21 , Birth: 15 Dec 1949

Spouse: Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11

Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11 was born on 4 Oct 1908. She died on 20 Oct 1992.

Reidun Andrea Dahl 12 Reidun Andrea Dahl 12 was born on 8 Jul 1932. She is the daughter of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7

and of Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Reidun Andrea Dahl 12 and Eilif Henriksen 351

1. Anne Grethe Henriksen 352 , Birth: 11 Oct 1961

2. Heidi Irene Henriksen 353 , Birth: 12 Jul 1963

Spouse: Eilif Henriksen 351

Eilif Henriksen 351 was born on 31 Jul 1932.

Olaf Dahl 13 Olaf Dahl 13 was born on 7 Mar 1934. He died on 1 May 1960. He was the son of Georg

Sigmund Dahl 7 and of Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Erna Dahl 14 Erna Dahl 14 was born on 10 Jul 1935. She is the daughter of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7 and of

Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Erna Dahl 14 and Andreas Halvor Kvien 360

1. Bjørn Are Kvien 361, Birth: 20 Jan 1955

Spouse: Andreas Halvor Kvien 360

Andreas Halvor Kvien 360 was born on 28 Feb 1932.

Dankert Erik Dahl 15 Dankert Erik Dahl 15 was born on 16 Jun 1937. He is the son of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7 and of

Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Dankert Erik Dahl 15 and Haldis Kaldestad 411

1. Tone Dahl 412 , Birth: 13 Apr 1967

Spouse: Haldis Kaldestad 411

Haldis Kaldestad 411 was born on 8 Feb 1946.

Page 63: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 63 of 233

Gunvor Margrethe Dahl 16 Gunvor Margrethe Dahl 16 was born on 27 Feb 1939. She is the daughter of Georg Sigmund

Dahl 7 and of Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Gunvor Margrethe Dahl 16 and Jan Helge Næss 336

1. Tove Karin Næss 337, Birth: 30 Oct 1963

2. Geir Olav Næss 338, Birth: 28 Aug 1967

3. Sindre Næss 339, Birth: 10 Nov 1969

Spouse: Jan Helge Næss 336

Jan Helge Næss 336 was born on 8 Mar 1928. He died on 31 Aug 1989.

Anna Dahl 17 Anna Dahl 17 was born on 8 Oct 1940. She is the daughter of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7 and of

Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Anna Dahl 17 and Idar Karlsen 367

1. Ronald Karlsen 368, Birth: 29 Mar 1963

2. Trond Inge Karlsen 369, Birth: 19 May 1967

3. Håvard Karlsen 370, Birth: 4 Jul 1969

4. Georg Martin Karlsen 371, Birth: 15 Jul 1981

Spouse: Idar Karlsen 367

Idar Karlsen 367 was born on 18 Sep 1931. He died on 4 Aug 2010.

Bjørg Vilgunn Dahl 18 Bjørg Vilgunn Dahl 18 was born on 17 Mar 1942. She is the daughter of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7

and of Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Bjørg Vilgunn Dahl 18 and Kolbjørn Arne Bigset 392

1. Kjetil Bigseth 394 , Birth: 26 Mar 1971

2. Vilgunn Bigseth 393, Birth: 26 Jul 1972

3. Tom Harald Graven 395, Birth: 7 Oct 1977

Spouse: Kolbjørn Arne Bigset 392

Kolbjørn Arne Bigset 392 was born on 17 Dec 1942.

Ruth Inger Dahl 19 Ruth Inger Dahl 19 was born on 12 Jun 1945. She is the daughter of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7 and

of Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Ruth Inger Dahl 19 and Jon Christian Kaspersen 382

1. Hilde Mari Kaspersen 383, Birth: 6 Oct 1972

2. Frank Arne Kaspersen 384, Birth: 11 Jan 1977

Spouse: Jon Christian Kaspersen 382

Jon Christian Kaspersen 382 was born on 17 Jan 1948.

Ester Elisabeth Dahl 20 Ester Elisabeth Dahl 20 was born on 17 Nov 1947. She is the daughter of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7

and of Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Ester Elisabeth Dahl 20 and Ernst Leif Mathisen 402

1. Linda Irene Mathisen 403, Birth: 3 May 1970

2. Rune Georg Mathisen 404, Birth: 8 Oct 1971

Page 64: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 64 of 233

3. Thomas Mathisen 405, Birth: 10 Feb 1975

Spouse: Ernst Leif Mathisen 402

Ernst Leif Mathisen 402 was born on 25 Jan 1945.

Bjørn Albert Dahl 21

Bjørn Albert Dahl 21 was born on 15 Dec 1949. He is the son of Georg Sigmund Dahl 7 and of

Lembi Natalie Kalliainen 11.

Children of Bjørn Albert Dahl 21 and Turid Solveig Niemi 200

1. Bjørn-Erik Dahl 283, Birth: 21 Feb 1973

2. Marit Dahl 284, Birth: 18 Mar 1975

3. Elisabeth Dahl 287, Birth: 16 Aug 1984

Spouse: Turid Solveig Niemi 200

Turid Solveig Niemi 200 was born on 21 Aug 1952.

Anne Grethe Henriksen 352 Anne Grethe Henriksen 352 was born on 11 Oct 1961. She is the daughter of Eilif Henriksen

351 and of Reidun Andrea Dahl 12.

Children of Anne Grethe Henriksen 352

1. Daniel Henriksen 354, Birth: 30 Jan 1984

2. Alexander Henriksen 355, Birth: 22 Jun 1985

Heidi Irene Henriksen 353 Heidi Irene Henriksen 353 was born on 12 Jul 1963. She is the daughter of Eilif Henriksen 351

and of Reidun Andrea Dahl 12.

Children of Heidi Irene Henriksen 353 and Kjell Arne Høyer 357

1. Morten Henriksen 358, Birth: 7 Jan 1983

2. Thomas Henriksen 359, Birth: 6 Jan 1988

Spouse: Kjell Arne Høyer 357

Kjell Arne Høyer 357 was born on 26 Jan 1956.

Bjørn Are Kvien 361

Bjørn Are Kvien 361 was born on 20 Jan 1955. He is the son of Andreas Halvor Kvien 360 and

of Erna Dahl 14.

Children of Bjørn Are Kvien 361 and Eli Iversen 362

1. Stian Kvien 363, Birth: 5 Apr 1978

2. Catherine Iversen Kvien 366, Birth: 29 May 1986

Spouse: Eli Iversen 362

Eli Iversen 362 was born on 13 Oct 1954.

Tone Dahl 412 Tone Dahl 412 was born on 13 Apr 1967. She is the daughter of Dankert Erik Dahl 15 and of

Haldis Kaldestad 411.

Children of Tone Dahl 412 and Rune Kjær 413

1. Julie Kjær 414, Birth: 19 May 1994

2. Siri Kjær 415, Birth: 23 Oct 1995

3. Hanna Josefine Kjær 416, Birth: 10 Sep 1998

Page 65: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 65 of 233

Spouse: Rune Kjær 413

Rune Kjær 413 was born on 18 Jan 1969.

Tove Karin Næss 337

Tove Karin Næss 337 was born on 30 Oct 1963. She is the daughter of Jan Helge Næss 336 and

of Gunvor Margrethe Dahl 16.

Children of Tove Karin Næss 337 and Kjell Hansen 340

1. Sandra Hansen 341, Birth: 1 Nov 1988

2. Joakim Hansen 342, Birth: 24 Nov 1994

Spouse: Kjell Hansen 340

Kjell Hansen 340 was born on 21 Dec 1959. Divorced.

Geir Olav Næss 338 Geir Olav Næss 338 was born on 28 Aug 1967. He is the son of Jan Helge Næss 336 and of

Gunvor Margrethe Dahl 16.

Children of Geir Olav Næss 338 and Ann Karin Dahl 343

1. Mathilde Næss 344, Birth: 10 Aug 1996

2. Otilie Næss 345, Birth: 4 Jun 1999

3. Elida Næss 346, Birth: 17 Feb 2001

4. Lydia Næss 347 1524 , Birth: 28 Dec 2005

Spouse: Ann Karin Dahl 343

Ann Karin Dahl 343 was born on 8 Jul 1970. She is the daughter of Dag Agnar Dahl 1122 and

of Britt Mathisen 1123.

Sindre Næss 339 Sindre Næss 339 was born on 10 Nov 1969. He is the son of Jan Helge Næss 336 and of Gunvor

Margrethe Dahl 16.

Children of Sindre Næss 339 and Birgit Engesæther 348

1. Trym Engesæther Næss 349, Birth: ved plassen Oslo, 19 Oct 2007

2. Jone Engesæther Næss 350, Birth: ved plassen Oslo, 19 Oct 2007

Spouse: Birgit Engesæther 348

Birgit Engesæther 348 was born on 31 Jan 1976.

Ronald Karlsen 368 Ronald Karlsen 368 was born on 29 Mar 1963. He is the son of Idar Karlsen 367 and of Anna

Dahl 17.

Trond Inge Karlsen 369 Trond Inge Karlsen 369 was born on 19 May 1967. He is the son of Idar Karlsen 367 and of

Anna Dahl 17.

Children of Trond Inge Karlsen 369 and Eva Helen Ottesen 372

1. Michael Jarle Ottesen 375, Birth: 18 Jan 1984

2. Isak Alexander Ottesen Karlsen 373, Birth: 12 Nov 2002

3. David Esaias Ottesen Karlsen 374, Birth: 11 Nov 2005

Spouse: Eva Helen Ottesen 372

Eva Helen Ottesen 372 was born on 6 Aug 1965.

Page 66: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 66 of 233

Håvard Karlsen 370

Håvard Karlsen 370 was born on 4 Jul 1969. He is the son of Idar Karlsen 367 and of Anna Dahl

17.

Children of Håvard Karlsen 370 and Vibeke Renate Ludvigsen 377

1. Marita Karlsen 379, Birth: i Bardu kommune, 8 Nov 1994

2. Isabel Karlsen 378, Birth: i Bardu kommune, 23 Jul 2006

Spouse: Vibeke Renate Ludvigsen 377

Vibeke Renate Ludvigsen 377 was born i Bardu kommune on 23 May 1973.

Georg Martin Karlsen 371 Georg Martin Karlsen 371 was born on 15 Jul 1981. He is the son of Idar Karlsen 367 and of

Anna Dahl 17.

Children of Georg Martin Karlsen 371 and Mari Lynn Solheim 380

1. Helena Solheim Karlsen 381, Birth: 19 Nov 2009

Spouse: Mari Lynn Solheim 380

Mari Lynn Solheim 380 was born on 22 Nov 1978.

Kjetil Bigseth 394 Kjetil Bigseth 394 was born on 26 Mar 1971. He is the son of Kolbjørn Arne Bigset 392 and of

Bjørg Vilgunn Dahl 18.

Children of Kjetil Bigseth 394 and Anita Pedersen 399

1. Mille Andrea Bigseth 400, Birth: 18 Nov 2005

2. Mathias Bigseth 401, Birth: 15 Oct 2007

Spouse: Anita Pedersen 399

Anita Pedersen 399 was born on 10 Nov 1976.

Vilgunn Bigseth 393 Vilgunn Bigseth 393 was born on 26 Jul 1972. She is the daughter of Kolbjørn Arne Bigset 392

and of Bjørg Vilgunn Dahl 18.

Children of Vilgunn Bigseth 393 and Julio Cesar Magallanes 396

1. Rebekka Bigseth 397, Birth: ved plassen Oslo, 18 Nov 2005

2. Gabriel Bigseth 398, Birth: ved plassen Oslo, 8 Apr 2007

Spouse: Julio Cesar Magallanes 396

Julio Cesar Magallanes 396 was born on 28 Jul 1965.

Tom Harald Graven 395

Tom Harald Graven 395 was born on 7 Oct 1977. He is the son of Kolbjørn Arne Bigset 392 and

of Bjørg Vilgunn Dahl 18.

Hilde Mari Kaspersen 383 Hilde Mari Kaspersen 383 was born on 6 Oct 1972. She is the daughter of Jon Christian

Kaspersen 382 and of Ruth Inger Dahl 19.

Children of Hilde Mari Kaspersen 383 and Egil Salamonsen 385

1. Sondre Salamonsen 386, Birth: 4 May 2001

2. Eskil Salamonsen 387, Birth: 9 Feb 2003

3. Vebjørn Salamonsen 388, Birth: 30 Aug 2004

Page 67: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 67 of 233

4. Sigrid Salamonsen 389, Birth: 3 Nov 2008

Spouse: Egil Salamonsen 385

Egil Salamonsen 385 was born on 22 Mar 1962.

Frank Arne Kaspersen 384 Frank Arne Kaspersen 384 was born on 11 Jan 1977. He is the son of Jon Christian Kaspersen

382 and of Ruth Inger Dahl 19.

Children of Frank Arne Kaspersen 384 and Janne Gundersen 390

1. Alvilde Kaspersen 391, Birth: 9 Nov 2007

Spouse: Janne Gundersen 390

Janne Gundersen 390 was born on 24 Sep 1977.

Linda Irene Mathisen 403 Linda Irene Mathisen 403 was born on 3 May 1970. She is the daughter of Ernst Leif Mathisen

402 and of Ester Elisabeth Dahl 20.

Children of Linda Irene Mathisen 403

1. Christoffer Mathisen 406, Birth: 22 Dec 1990

2. Henrik Mathisen 407, Birth: 26 Dec 1994

Rune Georg Mathisen 404 Rune Georg Mathisen 404 was born on 8 Oct 1971. He is the son of Ernst Leif Mathisen 402

and of Ester Elisabeth Dahl 20.

Spouse: Mette Meier 408

Mette Meier 408 was born on 20 Sep 1963.

Thomas Mathisen 405 Thomas Mathisen 405 was born on 10 Feb 1975. He is the son of Ernst Leif Mathisen 402 and

of Ester Elisabeth Dahl 20.

Children of Thomas Mathisen 405 and Nina Elisabeth Holsve 409

1. Emily Tomine Mathisen 410, Birth: 9 Dec 2004

Spouse: Nina Elisabeth Holsve 409

Bjørn-Erik Dahl 283 Bjørn-Erik Dahl 283 was born on 21 Feb 1973. He is the son of Bjørn Albert Dahl 21 and of

Turid Solveig Niemi 200.

Children of Bjørn-Erik Dahl 283 and Katrine Gaustad Pettersen 285

1. Herman Gaustad Dahl 334, Birth: Oslo, 2 May 2009

Spouse: Katrine Gaustad Pettersen 285

Katrine Gaustad Pettersen 285 was born on 1 Nov 1978.

Marit Dahl 284 Marit Dahl 284 was born on 18 Mar 1975. She is the {son of/daughter of} Bjørn Albert Dahl 21

and of Turid Solveig Niemi 200.

Children of Marit Dahl 284 and Øystein Dahl 461

1. Hannah Christine Dahl 475, Birth: 1 Oct 2001

Spouse 1: Anders Dahl Erga 335

Page 68: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 68 of 233

Anders Dahl Erga 335 was born on 9 Jul 1974.

Spouse 2: Øystein Dahl 461

Øystein Dahl 461 was born on 7 Jan 1969. He is the son of Leif Dahl 33 and of Gerd Tove

Ananiassen 1734.

Elisabeth Dahl 287 Elisabeth Dahl 287 was born on 16 Aug 1984. She is the daughter of Bjørn Albert Dahl 21 and

of Turid Solveig Niemi 200.

Daniel Henriksen 354 Daniel Henriksen 354 was born on 30 Jan 1984. He is the son of Anne Grethe Henriksen 352.

Alexander Henriksen 355 Alexander Henriksen 355 was born on 22 Jun 1985. He is the son of Anne Grethe Henriksen 352.

Spouse: Ida Elise Hartvigsen 356

Ida Elise Hartvigsen 356 was born on 18 Mar 1988.

Morten Henriksen 358

Morten Henriksen 358 was born on 7 Jan 1983. He is the son of Kjell Arne Høyer 357 and of

Heidi Irene Henriksen 353.

Thomas Henriksen 359 Thomas Henriksen 359 was born on 6 Jan 1988. He is the son of Kjell Arne Høyer 357 and of

Heidi Irene Henriksen 353.

Stian Kvien 363 Stian Kvien 363 was born on 5 Apr 1978. He is the son of Bjørn Are Kvien 361 and of Eli

Iversen 362.

Children of Stian Kvien 363 and Line Haag Semb 364

1. Mia Elise Haag Kvien 365, Birth: 17 Aug 2001

Spouse: Line Haag Semb 364

Line Haag Semb 364 was born on 23 Aug 1974.

Catherine Iversen Kvien 366 Catherine Iversen Kvien 366 was born on 29 May 1986. She is the daughter of Bjørn Are Kvien

361 and of Eli Iversen 362.

Julie Kjær 414 Julie Kjær 414 was born on 19 May 1994. She is the daughter of Rune Kjær 413 and of Tone

Dahl 412.

Siri Kjær 415 Siri Kjær 415 was born on 23 Oct 1995. She is the daughter of Rune Kjær 413 and of Tone Dahl

412.

Page 69: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 69 of 233

Hanna Josefine Kjær 416 Hanna Josefine Kjær 416 was born on 10 Sep 1998. She is the daughter of Rune Kjær 413 and

of Tone Dahl 412.

Sandra Hansen 341 Sandra Hansen 341 was born on 1 Nov 1988. She is the daughter of Kjell Hansen 340 and of

Tove Karin Næss 337.

Spouse: Kenneth Harila 839

Joakim Hansen 342 Joakim Hansen 342 was born on 24 Nov 1994. He is the son of Kjell Hansen 340 and of Tove

Karin Næss 337.

Mathilde Næss 344 Mathilde Næss 344 was born on 10 Aug 1996. She is the daughter of Geir Olav Næss 338 and of

Ann Karin Dahl 343.

Otilie Næss 345 Otilie Næss 345 was born on 4 Jun 1999. She is the daughter of Geir Olav Næss 338 and of Ann

Karin Dahl 343.

Elida Næss 346 Elida Næss 346 was born on 17 Feb 2001. She is the daughter of Geir Olav Næss 338 and of

Ann Karin Dahl 343.

Lydia Næss 347 Lydia Næss 347 was born on 28 Dec 2005. She is the daughter of Geir Olav Næss 338 and of

Ann Karin Dahl 343.

Trym Engesæther Næss 349 Trym Engesæther Næss 349 was born in Oslo on 19 Oct 2007. He is the son of Sindre Næss 339

and of Birgit Engesæther 348.

Jone Engesæther Næss 350 Jone Engesæther Næss 350 was born in Oslo on 19 Oct 2007. He is the son of Sindre Næss 339

and of Birgit Engesæther 348.

Michael Jarle Ottesen 375 Michael Jarle Ottesen 375 was born on 18 Jan 1984. He is the son of Trond Inge Karlsen 369

and of Eva Helen Ottesen 372.

Spouse: Tamara Lorentzen 376

Isak Alexander Ottesen Karlsen 373 Isak Alexander Ottesen Karlsen 373 was born on 12 Nov 2002. He is the son of Trond Inge

Karlsen 369 and of Eva Helen Ottesen 372.

Page 70: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 70 of 233

David Esaias Ottesen Karlsen 374 David Esaias Ottesen Karlsen 374 was born on 11 Nov 2005. He is the son of Trond Inge

Karlsen 369 and of Eva Helen Ottesen 372.

Marita Karlsen 379 Marita Karlsen 379 was born i Bardu kommune on 8 Nov 1994. She is the daughter of Håvard

Karlsen 370 and of Vibeke Renate Ludvigsen 377.

Isabel Karlsen 378 Isabel Karlsen 378 was born i Bardu kommune on 23 Jul 2006. She is the daughter of Håvard

Karlsen 370 and of Vibeke Renate Ludvigsen 377.

Helena Solheim Karlsen 381

Helena Solheim Karlsen 381 was born on 19 Nov 2009. She is the daughter of Georg Martin

Karlsen 371 and of Mari Lynn Solheim 380.

Mille Andrea Bigseth 400 Mille Andrea Bigseth 400 was born on 18 Nov 2005. She is the daughter of Kjetil Bigseth 394

and of Anita Pedersen 399.

Mathias Bigseth 401 Mathias Bigseth 401 was born on 15 Oct 2007. He is the son of Kjetil Bigseth 394 and of Anita

Pedersen 399.

Rebekka Bigseth 397 Rebekka Bigseth 397 was born in Oslo on 18 Nov 2005. She is the daughter of Julio Cesar

Magallanes 396 and of Vilgunn Bigseth 393.

Gabriel Bigseth 398 Gabriel Bigseth 398 was born in Oslo on 8 Apr 2007. He is the son of Julio Cesar Magallanes

396 and of Vilgunn Bigseth 393.

Sondre Salamonsen 386 Sondre Salamonsen 386 was born on 4 May 2001. He is the son of Egil Salamonsen 385 and of

Hilde Mari Kaspersen 383.

Eskil Salamonsen 387 Eskil Salamonsen 387 was born on 9 Feb 2003. He is the son of Egil Salamonsen 385 and of

Hilde Mari Kaspersen 383.

Vebjørn Salamonsen 388 Vebjørn Salamonsen 388 was born on 30 Aug 2004. He is the son of Egil Salamonsen 385 and

of Hilde Mari Kaspersen 383.

Sigrid Salamonsen 389 Sigrid Salamonsen 389 was born on 3 Nov 2008. She is the daughter of Egil Salamonsen 385

Page 71: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 71 of 233

and of Hilde Mari Kaspersen 383.

Alvilde Kaspersen 391 Alvilde Kaspersen 391 was born on 9 Nov 2007. She is the daughter of Frank Arne Kaspersen

384 and of Janne Gundersen 390.

Christoffer Mathisen 406 Christoffer Mathisen 406 was born on 22 Dec 1990. He is the son of Linda Irene Mathisen 403.

Henrik Mathisen 407 Henrik Mathisen 407 was born on 26 Dec 1994. He is the son of Linda Irene Mathisen 403.

Emily Tomine Mathisen 410 Emily Tomine Mathisen 410 was born on 9 Dec 2004. She is the daughter Thomas Mathisen

405 and of Nina Elisabeth Holsve 409.

Herman Gaustad Dahl 334 Herman Gaustad Dahl 334 was born in Oslo on 2 May 2009. He is the son of Bjørn-Erik Dahl

283 and of Katrine Gaustad Pettersen 285.

Hannah Christine Dahl 475 Hannah Christine Dahl 475 was born on 1 Oct 2001. She is the daughter of Øystein Dahl 461

and of Marit Dahl 284.

Mia Elise Haag Kvien 365 Mia Elise Haag Kvien 365 was born on 17 Aug 2001. She is the daughter of Stian Kvien 363

and of Line Haag Semb 364.

Page 72: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 72 of 233

4.6.7.5 Olga Eugenie Dahl28, 1906-1977

Page 73: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 73 of 233

Olga Eugenie Dahl 28 Olga Eugenie Dahl 28 was born on 3 feb 1906. She died on 11 jan 1977. She was the

daughter of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Anna Eugenie Hansen 4.

Children of Olga Eugenie Dahl 28 and Osvald Birger Bye 43

1. Odd Bye 44, Birth: 18 mai 1941

Spouse: Osvald Birger Bye 43

Osvald Birger Bye 43 was born den 19 nov 1908. He died den 27 sep 1973.

Odd Bye 44 Odd Bye 44 was born on 18 mai 1941. He is the son of Osvald Birger Bye 43 and of Olga

Eugenie Dahl 28.

Spouse: Unni 1094

Unni 1094 was born in Andenes in1942. She died in 1976.

4.6.7.6 Leif Albert Dahl1098, 1908-

Died as a child.

4.6.7.7 Karl Gustav Dahl1099, 1910-

Died as a child.

4.6.7.8 Thora Agnete Dahl22, 1914-1996

Thora never married.

Page 74: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 74 of 233

4.6.7.9 Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl2, 1916-2006

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774- 1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810- 93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812- 75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71Sivert Regnor With, 1810- 97

Lorentz Andreasrsen, 1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Gustav Dahl, b, 1875, d, 1970(1 ) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876- 1932

Rolf Eng Dahl, 1867Johan Nocolai Dahl,

b. 1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b 1879Anders Leonard

Sarre

Thora Dahl,b. 1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl, 1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl, 1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894

(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909

(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842-10

Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833-96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845-89

Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845- 1889

(iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862- 1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen

1821-01

Andrea Erikka D

ahl, .1896,d.1997 D

agmar Karoline D

ahl, 1898-1996 Johan Edvard D

ahl,b.1900-1977 G

eorge Sigmund D

ahl,1904-1971 O

lga Eugenie Dahl,1906-1977

Leif Albert D

ahl,1908, Karl G

ustav Dahl,1910

Thora Agnete D

ahl,1914-1996 G

udrun Dahl,1919-2008

Ra

gn

va

ld M

attis

Da

hl

19

31

La

ila G

un

hild

Da

hl, 1

93

4

Th

ea

Da

hl, 1

93

5

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Aa

se

Ing

va

lda

Da

hl,1

93

8

Nils

Asla

k D

ah

l,19

38

,

twin

s

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl,1916-2006 John Schjelderup Olaisen, 1906-1979

Anne Margrete Olaisen, 1942Jan Torseter. 1941

John Steinar Schjelderup Olaisen, 1945Maren-Mette Johnsen, 1945

Turid Olaisen, 1947Masahide Kashio, 1947

Solveig Olaisen, 1955

Margrete Torseter, 1971Pål Hansen,1968

Jostein Torseter,1975

John Arthur Schjelderup Olaisen, 1971Fabienne Bore, 1970

Mette Schjelderup Olaisen, 1974Bjørn Eirik Hervik, 1973

Tor Hideki Kashio, 1976Rumi Kashio,1977

Erik Kashio, 1979 Etsuko Kashio,1975??? Kashio, 1982

Makoto Kashio, 1986

Svein Håkon Thrane Olaisen, 1978

Marius

Torseter,2010 A

rthur Sang Olaisen,

2007 Kristoffer O

laisen H

ervik, 2007 R

asmus O

laisen H

ervik, 2009 R

yunosuke Kashio, 2006 SoonouskeKashio, 2010 Sakura Kashio, 2002 A

drian Schjelderup O

laisen Brattsti,

1999

Page 75: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 75 of 233

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 2 Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 2 was born on 22 Jun 1916. She died i Kvæfjord kommune on 19 Nov

2006. She was the daughter of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Anna Eugenie Hansen 4.

Children of Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 2 and John Røst Schjelderup Olaisen 27

1. Anne Margrete Olaisen 45 , Birth: 27 Aug 1942

2. John Steinar Schjelderup Olaisen 1, Birth: 28 Mar 1945

3. Turid Olaisen 46, Birth: 31 Jan 1947

4. Solveig Olaisen 47, Birth: i Kvæfjord kommune, 11 Nov 1955

Spouse: John Røst Schjelderup Olaisen 27

John Røst Schjelderup Olaisen 27 was born on 2 Dec 1906. He died i Kvæfjord kommune on 25

Feb 1979.

Anne Margrete Olaisen 45 Anne Margrete Olaisen 45 was born on 27 Aug 1942. She is the daughter of John Røst

Schjelderup Olaisen 27 and of Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 2.

Children of Anne Margrete Olaisen 45 and Jan Torseter 59

1. Margrete Torseter 60, Birth: 10 Nov 1971

2. Jostein Torseter 61, Birth: 29 Sep 1975

Spouse: Jan Torseter 59

Jan Torseter 59 was born i Hamar kommune on 1 Feb 1941.

John Steinar Schjelderup Olaisen 1 John Steinar Schjelderup Olaisen 1 was born on 28 Mar 1945. He is the son of John Røst

Schjelderup Olaisen 27 and of Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 2.

Children of John Steinar Schjelderup Olaisen 1 and Maren-Mette Johnsen 62

1. John Arthur Schjelderup Olaisen 63, Birth: 1 Jun 1971

2. Mette Schjelderup Olaisen 64, Birth: 29 Dec 1974

Spouse: Maren-Mette Johnsen 62

Maren-Mette Johnsen 62 was born on 6 Nov 1945. She is the daughter of Arthur Aa Johnsen

197 and of Marit Eliassen 198.

Turid Olaisen 46 Turid Olaisen 46 was born on 31 Jan 1947. She is the daughter of John Røst Schjelderup

Olaisen 27 and of Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 2.

Children of Turid Olaisen 46 and Masahide Kashio 288

1. Tor Hideki Kashio 290, Birth: i Bangkok i Thailand, 6 Sep 1976

2. Erik Kashio 291, Birth: i Bangkok kommune, i Thailand, 20 Apr 1979

3. Makoto Kashio 289, Birth: i Bangkok kommune, i Thailand, 9 Jun 1986

Spouse: Masahide Kashio 288

Masahide Kashio 288 was born on 2 Apr 1947.

Solveig Olaisen 47 Solveig Olaisen 47 was born i Kvæfjord kommune on 11 Nov 1955. She is the daughter of

John Røst Schjelderup Olaisen 27 and of Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl 2.

Children of Solveig Olaisen 47

1. Svein Håkon Thrane Olaisen 316, Birth: 17 Oct 1978

Page 76: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 76 of 233

Margrete Torseter 60 Margrete Torseter 60 was born on 10 Nov 1971. She is the daughter of Jan Torseter 59 and

of Anne Margrete Olaisen 45.

Children of Margrete Torseter 60 and Pål Hansen 295

1. Marius Torseter 957, Birth: 26 Sep 2010

Spouse: Pål Hansen 295

Pål Hansen 295 was born on 2 Oct 1968.

Jostein Torseter 61 Jostein Torseter 61 was born on 29 Sep 1975. He is the son of Jan Torseter 59 and of Anne

Margrete Olaisen 45.

John Arthur Schjelderup Olaisen 63 John Arthur Schjelderup Olaisen 63 was born on 1 Jun 1971. He is the son of John Steinar

Schjelderup Olaisen 1 and of Maren-Mette Johnsen 62.

Children of John Arthur Schjelderup Olaisen 63 and Fabienne Bore 97

1. Arthur Sang Olaisen 98, Birth: 17 Feb 2007

Spouse: Fabienne Bore 97

Fabienne Bore 97 was born on 4 Nov 1970.

Mette Schjelderup Olaisen 64 Mette Schjelderup Olaisen 64 was born on 29 Dec 1974. She is the daughter of John Steinar

Schjelderup Olaisen 1 and of Maren-Mette Johnsen 62.

Children of Mette Schjelderup Olaisen 64 and Bjørn Eirik Hervik 65

1. Kristoffer Olaisen Hervik 66, Birth: ved plassen Oslo, 10 Dec 2007

2. Rasmus Olaisen Hervik 838, Birth: ved plassen Oslo, 9 Mar 2009

Spouse: Bjørn Eirik Hervik 65

Bjørn Eirik Hervik 65 was born on 19 Jan 1973. He is the son of Erik Kristoffer Hervik 2019

and Mart Rognsvaag 2020.

Tor Hideki Kashio 290 Tor Hideki Kashio 290 was born in Bangkok in Thailand on 6 Sep 1976. He is the son of

Masahide Kashio 288 and of Turid Olaisen 46.

Children of Tor Hideki Kashio 290 and Rumi Kashio 292

1. Ryunosuke Kashio 293, Birth: 5 Jul 2006

2. Soonouske Kashio 941, Birth: 14 Sep 2010

Spouse: Rumi Kashio 292

Rumi Kashio 292 was born on 25 Jun 1977.

Erik Kashio 291 Erik Kashio 291 was born in Bangkok in Thailand on 20 Apr 1979. He is the son of Masahide

Kashio 288 and of Turid Olaisen 46.

Children of Erik Kashio 291 and Etsuko Kashio 312

1. Sakura Kashio 294, Birth: 6 Aug 2002

Spouse: Etsuko Kashio 312

Etsuko Kashio 312 was born on 29 Jan 1975. Divorced.

Page 77: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 77 of 233

Makoto Kashio 289 Makoto Kashio 289 was born in Bangkok, in Thailand on 9 Jun 1986. He is the son of

Masahide Kashio 288 and of Turid Olaisen 46.

Svein Håkon Thrane Olaisen 316 Svein Håkon Thrane Olaisen 316 was born on 17 Oct 1978. He is the son of Solveig Olaisen

47.

Children of Svein Håkon Thrane Olaisen 316

1. Adrian Schjelderup Olaisen Brattsti 317, Birth: 7 Sep 1999

Marius Torseter 957 Marius Torseter 957 was born on 26 Sep 2010. He is the son of Pål Hansen 295 and of

Margrete Torseter 60.

Arthur Sang Olaisen 98 Arthur Sang Olaisen 98 was born on 17 Feb 2007. He is the son of John Arthur Schjelderup

Olaisen 63 and of Fabienne Bore 97.

Kristoffer Olaisen Hervik 66 Kristoffer Olaisen Hervik 66 was born, Oslo on 10 Dec 2007. He is the son of Bjørn Eirik

Hervik 65 and of Mette Schjelderup Olaisen 64.

Rasmus Olaisen Hervik 838 Rasmus Olaisen Hervik 838 was born, Oslo on 9 Mar 2009. He is the son of Bjørn Eirik

Hervik 65 and of Mette Schjelderup Olaisen 64.

Ryunosuke Kashio 293 Ryunosuke Kashio 293 was born on 5 Jul 2006. She is the daughter of Tor Hideki Kashio

290 and of Rumi Kashio 292.

Soonouske Kashio 941 Soonouske Kashio 941 was born on 14 Sep 2010. She is the daughter of Tor Hideki Kashio

290 and of Rumi Kashio 292.

Sakura Kashio 294 Sakura Kashio 294 was born on 6 Aug 2002. She is the daughter of Erik Kashio 291 and of

Etsuko Kashio 312.

Adrian Schjelderup Olaisen Brattsti 317 Adrian Schjelderup Olaisen Brattsti 317 was born on 7 Sep 1999. He is the son of Svein

Håkon Thrane Olaisen 316.

Page 78: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 78 of 233

4.6.7.10 Gudrun Dahl48,1919-2008

Ole Hansen Dahl,b 1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774- 1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812- 75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71

Sivert Regnor With, 1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen, 1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Gustav Dahl, b,1875 , d,1970(1 ) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876-1932

Rolf Eng Dahl, 1867Johan Nocolai Dahl,

b. 1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b1879Anders Leonard

Sarre

Thora Dahl,b. 1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl,1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl,1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894

(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909

(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a childRebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842-10

Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833-96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845-89

Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845- 1889

( iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862- 1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen

1821-01

An

drea Erikka D

ahl, .1

89

6,d

.19

97

Dagm

ar Karo

line D

ahl, 1

89

8-

19

96

Joh

an Ed

vard D

ahl,b

.19

00

-19

77

Geo

rge Sigmu

nd

Dah

l,19

04

-19

71

Olga Eu

genie D

ahl,1

90

6-1

97

7 Leif A

lbert D

ahl,1

90

8,

Karl G

ustav D

ahl,1

91

0 Th

ora A

gnete D

ahl,1

91

4-1

99

6

Gudrun Dahl,1919-2008 Nikolai Eidem, 1903-1977

Ra

gn

va

ld M

attis

Da

hl

19

31

La

ila G

un

hild

Da

hl, 1

93

4

Th

ea

Da

hl,

19

35

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Aa

se

Ing

va

lda

Da

hl,1

93

8

Nils

Asla

k D

ah

l,19

38

,

twin

s

An

na Id

a Math

ilde D

ahl,1

91

6-

20

06

Randi Eidem, 1951Jens Kristian Lervik,1952

Kristian Lervik, 1978Sanny Therese Gaup,1984

Ragnhild Lervik, 1981

Anders Lervik, 1983

Marit Lervik, 1987

Noa Nikolai Gaup, 2008

Page 79: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 79 of 233

Gudrun Dahl 48 1 Gudrun Dahl 48 was born on 31 Oct 1919. She died on 22 Mar 2008. She was the daughter of

Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Anna Eugenie Hansen 4.

Children of Gudrun Dahl 48 and Nikolai Eidem 49

1. Randi Eidem 201, Birth: 16 Feb 1951

Spouse: Nikolai Eidem 49 Nikolai Eidem 49 was born on 1 Feb 1903. He died in Trondheim on 29 May 1977.

Randi Eidem 201 Randi Eidem 201 was born on 16 Feb 1951. She is the daughter of Nikolai Eidem 49 and of Gudrun

Dahl 48.

Children of Randi Eidem 201 and Jens Kristian Lervik 323

1. Kristian Lervik 322 Birth: 1 Mar 1978

2. Ragnhild Lervik 324, Birth: 12 Jul 1981

3. Anders Lervik 325, Birth: 9 Dec 1983

4. Marit Lervik 326, Birth: 16 Mar 1987

Spouse: Jens Kristian Lervik 323 Jens Kristian Lervik 323 was born on 19 Jun 1952.

Kristian Lervik 322 Kristian Lervik 322 was born on 1 Mar 1978. He is the son of Jens Kristian Lervik 323 and of Randi

Eidem 201.

Children of Kristian Lervik 322 and Sanny Therese Gaup 327

1. Noah Nikolai Gaup - Lervik 328, Birth: 29 May 2008

Spouse: Sanny Therese Gaup 327 Sanny Therese Gaup 327 was born on 12 May 1984.

Ragnhild Lervik 324 Ragnhild Lervik 324 was born on 12 Jul 1981. She is the daughter of Jens Kristian Lervik 323 and of

Randi Eidem 201.

Anders Lervik 325 Anders Lervik 325 was born on 9 Dec 1983. He is the son of Jens Kristian Lervik 323 and of Randi

Eidem 201.

Marit Lervik 326 Marit Lervik 326 was born on 16 Mar 1987. She is the daughter of Jens Kristian Lervik 323 and of

Randi Eidem 201.

Noah Nikolai Gaup - Lervik 328 Noah Nikolai Gaup - Lervik 328 was born on 29 May 2008. He is the son of Kristian Lervik 322 and

of Sanny Therese Gaup 327.

Page 80: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 80 of 233

4.6.8 Gustav Johansen Dahl3 and Elen Kristine Aslaksen296

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl.1840-1894

(1) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849-1916

(2) Birthe Mortensdatter (not married)

Gustav Dahl,b,1875,d,1970

(1) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876-1932

(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen, 1902-1956

Rolf Eng Dahl,b.1867

Thora Dahl,b.1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl,b.1870

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl,b.1874

Evald Dahl,b.1880

Johan Nocolai Dahl, b.1872

Maren Baastad,

Inger Dahl,b1879

Anders Leonard SarreJohan R

asch Dahl,b.1906

Trygve D

ahl,b.1909

Andrea E

rikka Dahl,

b.1896,d.1997

Dagm

ar Karoline D

ahl,

b.1898-1996

Johan Edvard D

ahl,

b.1900-1977

George S

igmund D

ahl,

1904-1971

Olga E

ugenie Dahl,

1906-1977

Leif Albert D

ahl,

1908,died as child

Karl G

ustav Dahl,

1910,died as child

Thora A

gnete Dahl

1914-1996

Anna Ida M

athilde Dahl

1916-2006

Gudrun D

ahl

1919-2008

Ragnvald M

attis Dahl

1931

Laila Gunhild D

ahl, 1934

Thea D

ahl, 1935

Gustav H

arald Dahl,1937

Aase Ingvalda D

ahl,1938

Nils A

slak Dahl,1938,

twins

Mathis O

le Sarre

Kaisa B

igga Sarre

Johan SarreI

Isak Leonhard Sarre

Inga Aleta S

arre, b.1917

(2) (1)

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Baard N

icolai Dahl, 1836-1863

Regine N

atvig, 1827-

Herm

an Richard K

læboe D

ahl,1831-1909

(i)Vivikke E

lisabeth Markussen,1830

(ii)Regina O

lsen Boe,1851-1925

Rebecca M

athilde Dahl,1838-xx

Not m

arried

Oluf E

dvard Dahl,1829-57

Regine N

atvig,1832-??

Nicolai D

ahl,died as a child

Mathilde S

usanne Dahl,1842-10

Niels A

nton Hansen A

all,1833-96

Carl A

nthon Reiner D

ahl,1845-89

Julie Sophie S

chanke,1846-?

Regnor F

redrik Lauritz Dahl,1849-32

(i)Wilhelm

ina Mattila,

(ii)Marie Lindeberg,1845-1889

(iii)Martha A

ndrea Tiedem

and,1862-1949

Anna N

icoline Dahl,1834-58

Michael Julius H

øyem

Michaelsen

1821-01

(1)(2)

Page 81: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 81 of 233

Children of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and Elen Kristine Aslaksen 296

1. Ragnvald Mathis K. Dahl 297, Birth: 20 Jan 1931

2. Laila Gunhild Dahl 298, Birth: 31 Oct 1934

3. Thea Dahl 300, Birth: 3 Dec 1935

4. Gustav Harald Dahl 302, Birth: 28 Mar 1937

5. Åse Ingvarda Dahl 299, Birth: 21 Oct 1938

6. Nils Aslak Dahl 301, Birth: 21 Oct 193

Page 82: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 82 of 233

4.6.8.1 Ragnvald Mathis Dahl297, 1931

Ole Hansen Dahl,b 1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774- 1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810- 93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812- 75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71Sivert Regnor With, 1810- 97

Lorentz Andreasrsen, 1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Rolf Eng Dahl, 1867Johan Nocolai Dahl,

b. 1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b 1879Anders Leonard

Sarre

Thora Dahl,b. 1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl, 1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl, 1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894

(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909

(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829- 57

Regine Natvig, 1832- ??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842- 10

Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833- 96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845- 89

Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849- 32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845- 1889

(iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862- 1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834- 58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen

1821- 01

An

drea Erikka D

ahl, .1

89

6,d

.19

97

Dagm

ar Karo

line D

ahl, 1

89

8-

19

96

Joh

an Ed

vard D

ahl,b

.19

00

-19

77

Geo

rge Sigmu

nd

Dah

l,19

04

-19

71

Olga Eu

genie D

ahl,1

90

6-1

97

7 Leif A

lbert D

ahl,1

90

8,

Karl G

ustav D

ahl,1

91

0 Th

ora A

gnete D

ahl,1

91

4-1

99

6 G

ud

run

Dah

l,19

19

-20

08

La

ila G

un

hild

Da

hl, 1

93

4

Th

ea

Da

hl,

19

35

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Aa

se

Ing

va

lda

Da

hl,1

93

8

Nils

Asla

k D

ah

l,19

38

,

twin

s

An

na Id

a Math

ilde D

ahl,1

91

6-

20

06

Ragnvald Mathis Dahl, 1931 Liv Sundfær,Rannveig Heggtveit

Per Ragnvald Dahl, 1956 Torill Steinsvik, 1959

Stig J.R.Dahl, 1958-2002Rannveig Dahl

Anne Kristine Dahl,1963 Petter Møller

Frode Dahl, 1966 Inger A.Sudgaarden, 1967

Marianne Dahl, 1988

Celine Møller, 1999

William Møller,2000

Sebastian Dahl,1997

Timian Dahl,1999

Gustav Johansen Dahl,1875-1970(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen,1902-1955

Page 83: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 83 of 233

Ragnvald Mathis K. Dahl 297 Ragnvald Mathis K. Dahl 297 was born on 20 Jan 1931. He is the son and of Elen Kristine Aslaksen

296 and adobted by Gustav Johansen Dahl 3.

Children of Ragnvald Mathis K. Dahl 297 and Liv Hansen Sundfær 641

1. Per Ragnvald Dahl 642 , Birth: 9 Dec 1956

Children of Ragnvald Mathis K. Dahl 297 and Rannveig Heggtveit 1765

1. Stig J. R. Dahl 643 , Birth: 21 Dec 1958, Death: 17 Oct 2002

2. Anne Kristine Dahl 644, Birth: 5 Mar 1963

3. Frode Dahl 645, Birth: 12 Jun 1966

Spouse 1: Liv Hansen Sundfær 641

Liv Hansen Sundfær 641 was born on 6 Nov 1938.

Spouse 2: Rannveig Heggtveit 1765

Per Ragnvald Dahl 642 Per Ragnvald Dahl 642 was born on 9 Dec 1956. He is the son of Ragnvald Mathis K. Dahl 297 and

of Liv Hansen Sundfær 641.

Children of Per Ragnvald Dahl 642 and Torill Steinsvik 646

1. Marianne Dahl 647 , Birth: 31 Mar 1988

Spouse: Torill Steinsvik 646

Torill Steinsvik 646 was born on 23 May 1959.

Stig J. R. Dahl 643 Stig J. R. Dahl 643 was born on 21 Dec 1958. He died on 17 Oct 2002. He was the son of Ragnvald

Mathis K. Dahl 297 and of Rannveig Heggtveit 1765.

Spouse: Rannveig Dahl 648

Anne Kristine Dahl 644 Anne Kristine Dahl 644 was born on 5 Mar 1963. She is the daughter of Ragnvald Mathis K. Dahl

297 and of Rannveig Heggtveit 1765.

Children of Anne Kristine Dahl 644 and Petter Møller 649

1. Celine Møller 650, Birth: ved plassen Oslo, 27 Mar 1999

2. William Møller 651, Birth: ved plassen Oslo, 6 Aug 2000

Spouse: Petter Møller 649

Frode Dahl 645 Frode Dahl 645 was born on 12 Jun 1966. He is the son of Ragnvald Mathis K. Dahl 297 and of

Rannveig Heggtveit 1765.

Children of Frode Dahl 645 and Inger A. Sudgarden 652

1. Sebastian Dahl 653, Birth: 10 Mar 1997

2. Timian Dahl 654, Birth: 12 Nov 1999

Spouse: Inger A. Sudgarden 652

Inger A. Sudgarden 652 was born on 16 Sep 1967.

Marianne Dahl 647 Marianne Dahl 647 was born on 31 Mar 1988. She is the daughter of Per Ragnvald Dahl 642 and of

Torill Steinsvik 646.

Page 84: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 84 of 233

Celine Møller 650 Celine Møller 650 was born ved plassen Oslo on 27 Mar 1999. She is the son of Petter Møller 649

and of Anne Kristine Dahl 644.

William Møller 651 William Møller 651 was born in Oslo on 6 Aug 2000. He is the son of Petter Møller 649 and of Anne

Kristine Dahl 644.

Sebastian Dahl 653 Sebastian Dahl 653 was born on 10 Mar 1997. He is the son of Frode Dahl 645 and of Inger A.

Sudgarden 652.

Timian Dahl 654 Timian Dahl 654 was born on 12 Nov 1999. He is the son of Frode Dahl 645 and of Inger A.

Sudgarden 652.

Page 85: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 85 of 233

4.6.8.2 Laila Gunhild Dahl298, 1934

Ole Hansen Dahl,b 1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774- 1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810- 93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812- 75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71

Sivert Regnor With, 1810- 97Lorentz Andreasrsen, 1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Rolf Eng Dahl, 1867Johan Nocolai Dahl,

b. 1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b 1879Anders Leonard

Sarre

Thora Dahl,b. 1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl, 1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl, 1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842- 10Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833- 96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845- 89Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845- 1889( iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862- 1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen 1821- 01

Gustav Johansen Dahl,1875-1970(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen ,1902 -1955

An

dre

a E

rikk

a D

ah

l, .18

96

,d.1

99

7 D

ag

ma

r Ka

rolin

e D

ah

l, 18

98

-1

99

6 Jo

ha

n E

dva

rd D

ah

l,b.1

90

0-1

97

7 G

eo

rge

Sig

mu

nd

Da

hl,1

90

4-1

97

1 O

lga

Eu

ge

nie

Da

hl,1

90

6-1

97

7 Le

if Alb

ert D

ah

l,19

08

, K

arl G

usta

v D

ah

l,19

10

Th

ora

Ag

ne

te D

ah

l,19

14

-19

96

Gu

dru

n D

ah

l,19

19

-20

08

Th

ea

Da

hl,

19

35

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Aa

se

Ing

va

lda

Da

hl,1

93

8

Nils

Asla

k D

ah

l,19

38

,

twin

s

An

na

Ida

Ma

thild

e D

ah

l,19

16

-2

00

6 R

ag

nva

ld M

ath

is Da

hl, 1

93

1

Laila Gunhild Dahl, 1934 Erke,

Elisabeth Blaser Erke,1962

Randolf Dahl, 1964

Frank Dahl Erke, 1969Reidun Johansen, 1965

Tor Gustav Dahl, 1972

Alexandra Blaser Erke, 1993

Amalie Blaser Erke, 1994

Sophie Blaser Erke, 1999

Runar Rasmussen, 1990

Vilde Rasmusen, 1996

Katrine Johansen Erke, 1996

Dina Alise Erke, 2006

Page 86: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 86 of 233

Laila Gunhild Dahl 298 Laila Gunhild Dahl 298 was born on 31 Oct 1934. She is the daughter of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3

and of Elen Kristine Aslaksen 296.

Children of Laila Gunhild Dahl 298 and Erke Erke 841

1. Elisabeth Blaser Erke 564, Birth: 8 Sep 1962

2. Randolf Dahl 565, Birth: 6 Oct 1964

3. Frank Dahl Erke 566, Birth: 2 Jan 1969

4. Tor Gustav Dahl 567, Birth: 2 Oct 1972

Spouse: Erke Erke 841

Elisabeth Blaser Erke 564 Elisabeth Blaser Erke 564 was born on 8 Sep 1962. She is the daughter of Erke Erke 841 and of

Laila Gunhild Dahl 298.

Children of Elisabeth Blaser Erke 564

1. Alexandra Blaser Erke 568, Birth: 18 Nov 1993

2. Amalie Blaser Erke 569, Birth: 16 Dec 1994

3. Sophie Blaser Erke 570, Birth: 28 Apr 1999

Randolf Dahl 565 Randolf Dahl 565 was born on 6 Oct 1964. He is the son of Erke Erke 841 and of Laila Gunhild

Dahl 298.

Children of Randolf Dahl 565

1. Runar Rasmussen 571, Birth: 28 Oct 1990

2. Vilde Rasmussen 572, Birth: 15 Dec 1996

Frank Dahl Erke 566 Frank Dahl Erke 566 was born on 2 Jan 1969. He is the son of Erke Erke 841 and of Laila Gunhild

Dahl 298.

Children of Frank Dahl Erke 566 and Reidun Johansen 573

1. Katrine Johansen Erke 574, Birth: 27 Feb 1996

2. Dina Alise Erke 575, Birth: 25 Aug 2006

Spouse: Reidun Johansen 573

Reidun Johansen 573 was born on 22 Jan 1965.

Tor Gustav Dahl 567 Tor Gustav Dahl 567 was born on 2 Oct 1972. He is the son of Erke Erke 841 and of Laila Gunhild

Dahl 298.

Alexandra Blaser Erke 568 Alexandra Blaser Erke 568 was born on 18 Nov 1993. She is the daughter of Elisabeth Blaser Erke

564.

Amalie Blaser Erke 569 Amalie Blaser Erke 569 was born on 16 Dec 1994. She is the daughter of Elisabeth Blaser Erke

564.

Page 87: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 87 of 233

Sophie Blaser Erke 570 Sophie Blaser Erke 570 was born on 28 Apr 1999. She is the daughter of Elisabeth Blaser Erke

564.

Runar Rasmussen 571 Runar Rasmussen 571 was born on 28 Oct 1990. He is the son of Randolf Dahl 565.

Vilde Rasmussen 572 Vilde Rasmussen 572 was born on 15 Dec 1996. She is the daughter of Randolf Dahl 565.

Katrine Johansen Erke 574 Katrine Johansen Erke 574 was born on 27 Feb 1996. She is the daughter of Frank Dahl Erke 566

and of Reidun Johansen 573.

Dina Alise Erke 575 Dina Alise Erke 575 was born on 25 Aug 2006. She is the daughter of Frank Dahl Erke 566 and of

Reidun Johansen 573.

Page 88: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 88 of 233

4.6.8.3 Thea Dahl300, 1935

Ole Hansen Dahl,b 1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774- 1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810- 93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812- 75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71

Sivert Regnor With, 1810- 97Lorentz Andreasrsen, 1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Rolf Eng Dahl, 1867Johan Nocolai Dahl,

b. 1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b 1879Anders Leonard

Sarre

Thora Dahl,b. 1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl, 1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl, 1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842- 10Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833- 96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845- 89Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845- 1889( iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862- 1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen 1821- 01

Gustav Johansen Dahl,1875-1970(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen ,1902 -1955

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Ragn

vald M

athis D

ahl, 1

93

1 Laila G

un

hild

Dah

l, 19

34

An

dre

a Erikka Dah

l, .1896

,d.19

97

Dagm

ar Karo

line Da

hl, 1898-

1996

Johan

Edvard

Dah

l,b.1900

-1977

Geo

rge Sigmu

nd D

ahl,19

04-1971

Olga Eu

genie

Dahl,190

6-197

7

Leif Albe

rt Dah

l,1908,

Karl G

ustav D

ahl,1

910

Tho

ra Agn

ete Dah

l,1914-199

6

Gu

drun D

ahl,19

19-2008

An

na Ida M

athilde D

ahl,19

16-

2006Thea Dahl, 1935

Ingvald Henriksen,1927-2005

Åse In

gvalda D

ahl, 1

93

8 N

ils Aslak, D

ahl, 1

93

8

Hallgeir Henriksen 1956Greta Kristiansen, 1957-2001

Elin Kristin Henriksen, 1960

Trond Magne Henriksen, 1962 Ingjerd Tjelle, 1966

Ingar Gustav Henriksen, 1967Vigdis, Sotkajærvi,

Gustav Henrik Sotkajærvi, 2002

Jonas Henriksen Tjelle, 2001

Magnus Henriksen Tjelle, 1991

Irina Henriksen Tjelle, 1988

Henrik Rafaelsen, 1992

Christina Henriksen, 1983

Tarjei Henriksen, 1987

Page 89: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 89 of 233

Thea Dahl 300 Thea Dahl 300 was born on 3 Dec 1935. She is the daughter of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Elen

Kristine Aslaksen 296.

Children of Thea Dahl 300 and Ingvald Henriksen 331

1. Hallgeir Henriksen 583, Birth: 25 Oct 1956

2. Elin Kristin Henriksen 584, Birth: 17 Sep 1960

3. Trond Magne Henriksen 585, Birth: 29 Jun 1962

4. Ingar Gustav Henriksen 586, Birth: 2 Sep 1967

Spouse: Ingvald Henriksen 331

Ingvald Henriksen 331 was born on 24 Sep 1927. He died on 6 May 2005.

Hallgeir Henriksen 583 Hallgeir Henriksen 583 was born on 25 Oct 1956. He is the son of Ingvald Henriksen 331 and of

Thea Dahl 300.

Children of Hallgeir Henriksen 583 and Greta Kristiansen 587

1. Tarjei Kristian Henriksen 588, Birth: 23 Oct 1987

Spouse: Greta Kristiansen 587

Greta Kristiansen 587 was born on 1 Apr 1957. She died on 12 Feb 2001.

Elin Kristin Henriksen 584 Elin Kristin Henriksen 584 was born on 17 Sep 1960. She is the daughter of Ingvald Henriksen 331

and of Thea Dahl 300.

Children of Elin Kristin Henriksen 584

1. Christina Henriksen 589, Birth: 4 Jan 1983

2. Henrik Rafaelsen 590, Birth: 13 Jun 1992

Trond Magne Henriksen 585 Trond Magne Henriksen 585 was born on 29 Jun 1962. He is the son of Ingvald Henriksen 331 and

of Thea Dahl 300.

Children of Trond Magne Henriksen 585 and Ingjerd Tjelle 591

1. Irina Henriksen Tjelle 592, Birth: 21 Oct 1988

2. Magnus Henriksen Tjelle 593, Birth: 6 Apr 1991

3. Jonas Henriksen Tjelle 594, Birth: 21 Jun 2001

Spouse: Ingjerd Tjelle 591

Ingjerd Tjelle 591 was born on 31 Dec 1966.

Ingar Gustav Henriksen 586 Ingar Gustav Henriksen 586 was born on 2 Sep 1967. He is the son of Ingvald Henriksen 331 and of

Thea Dahl 300.

Children of Ingar Gustav Henriksen 586 and Vigdis Sotkajærvi 595

1. Gustav Henrik Sotkajærvi 596, Birth: 9 Feb 2002

Spouse: Vigdis Sotkajærvi 595

Tarjei Kristian Henriksen 588 Tarjei Kristian Henriksen 588 was born on 23 Oct 1987. He is the son of Hallgeir Henriksen 583 and

of Greta Kristiansen 587.

Page 90: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 90 of 233

Christina Henriksen 589 Christina Henriksen 589 was born on 4 Jan 1983. She is the daughter ofElin Kristin Henriksen 584.

Henrik Rafaelsen 590 Henrik Rafaelsen 590 was born on 13 Jun 1992. He is the son of Elin Kristin Henriksen 584.

Irina Henriksen Tjelle 592 Irina Henriksen Tjelle 592 was born on 21 Oct 1988. She is the daughter of Trond Magne Henriksen

585 and of Ingjerd Tjelle 591.

Magnus Henriksen Tjelle 593 Magnus Henriksen Tjelle 593 was born on 6 Apr 1991. He is the son of Trond Magne Henriksen 585

and of Ingjerd Tjelle 591.

Jonas Henriksen Tjelle 594 Jonas Henriksen Tjelle 594 was born on 21 Jun 2001. He is the son of Trond Magne Henriksen 585

and of Ingjerd Tjelle 591.

Gustav Henrik Sotkajærvi 596 Gustav Henrik Sotkajærvi 596 was born on 9 Feb 2002. He is the son of Ingar Gustav Henriksen 586

and of Vigdis Sotkajærvi 595.

Page 91: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 91 of 233

4.6.8.4 Gustav Harald Dahl302, 1937

Ole Hansen Dahl,b 1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774- 1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810- 93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812- 75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71

Sivert Regnor With, 1810- 97Lorentz Andreasrsen, 1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Rolf Eng Dahl, 1867Johan Nocolai Dahl,

b. 1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b 1879Anders Leonard

Sarre

Thora Dahl,b. 1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl, 1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl, 1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842- 10Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833- 96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845- 89Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845- 1889( iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862- 1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen 1821- 01

Gustav Johansen Dahl,1875-1970(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen ,1902 -1955

An

dre

a Erikka Dah

l, .1896

,d.19

97

Dagm

ar Karo

line Da

hl, 1898-

1996

Johan

Edvard

Dah

l,b.1900

-1977

Geo

rge Sigmu

nd D

ahl,19

04-1971

Olga Eu

genie

Dahl,190

6-197

7

Leif Albe

rt Dah

l,1908,

Karl G

ustav D

ahl,1

910

Tho

ra Agn

ete Dah

l,1914-199

6

Gu

drun D

ahl,19

19-2008

An

na Ida M

athilde D

ahl,19

16-

2006

Ragn

vald M

athis D

ahl, 1

93

1 Laila G

un

hild

Dah

l, 19

34

Thea D

ahl, 1

93

5 Å

se Ingvald

a Dah

l, 19

38

Nils A

slak, Dah

l, 19

38

Gustav Harald Dahl, 1937 Ida Dagfryd Henninen, 1937

Marion Dahl, 1963Leif Erik Olaussen, 1959

Hege Dahl, 1965Svein Larsen, 1965

Karin Dahl, 1968Terje Barlien, 1966

Liv Dahl, 1970Bjørnar Pedersen, 1970

Mads Dahl Pedersen, 2006

Nina Isabell Dahl Pedersen, 1999

Preben Dahl Pedersen, 1996

Ingrid Nanna Barlien, 2003

Johannes Barlien, 1999

Harald Barlien, 1995

Espen Larsen, 2000

Fredrik Larsen, 1992

Eskil Dahl Olaussen, 1990

Kine Dahl Olaussen,1987Bjørn Håkon Joki,1981

Nikolai Olaussen Joki, 2008

Page 92: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 92 of 233

Gustav Harald Dahl 302 Gustav Harald Dahl 302 was born on 28 Mar 1937. He is the son of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of

Elen Kristine Aslaksen 296.

Children of Gustav Harald Dahl 302 and Ida Dagfryd Henninen 330

1. Marion Dahl 597, Birth: 3 Aug 1963

2. Hege Dahl 598, Birth: 12 May 1965

3. Karin Dahl 599, Birth: 16 Feb 1968

4. Liv Dahl 600, Birth: 18 Jun 1970

Spouse: Ida Dagfryd Henninen 330 Ida Dagfryd Henninen 330 was born on 29 Jan 1941.

Marion Dahl 597 Marion Dahl 597 was born on 3 Aug 1963. She is the daughter of Gustav Harald Dahl 302 and of

Ida Dagfryd Henninen 330.

Children of Marion Dahl 597 and Leif Erik Olaussen 601

1. Kine Dahl Olaussen 602, Birth: 19 Jul 1987

2. Eskil Dahl Olaussen 603, Birth: 4 Sep 1990

Spouse: Leif Erik Olaussen 601 Leif Erik Olaussen 601 was born on 18 Nov 1959.

Hege Dahl 598 Hege Dahl 598 was born on 12 May 1965. She is the daughter of Gustav Harald Dahl 302 and of Ida

Dagfryd Henninen 330.

Children of Hege Dahl 598 and Svein Larsen 606

1. Fredrik Larsen 607, Birth: 11 May 1992

2. Espen Larsen 608, Birth: 25 Sep 2000

Spouse: Svein Larsen 606 Svein Larsen 606 was born on 11 Apr 1965.

Karin Dahl 599 Karin Dahl 599 was born on 16 Feb 1968. She is the daughter of Gustav Harald Dahl 302 and of Ida

Dagfryd Henninen 330.

Children of Karin Dahl 599 and Terje Barlien 609

1. Harald Barlien 610, Birth: 17 Sep 1995

2. Johannes Barlien 611, Birth: 5 Feb 1999

3. Ingrid Nanna Barlien 612, Birth: 27 Jan 2003

Spouse: Terje Barlien 609 Terje Barlien 609 was born on 15 Jan 1966.

Liv Dahl 600 Liv Dahl 600 was born on 18 Jun 1970. She is the daughter of Gustav Harald Dahl 302 and of Ida

Dagfryd Henninen 330.

Children of Liv Dahl 600 and Bjørnar Pedersen 613

1. Preben Dahl Pedersen 614, Birth: 10 May 1996

2. Ninni Isabell Dahl Pedersen 615, Birth: 9 Sep 1999

3. Mads Dahl Pedersen 616, Birth: 14 Nov 2006

Spouse: Bjørnar Pedersen 613 Bjørnar Pedersen 613 was born on 17 Apr 1970.

Page 93: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 93 of 233

Kine Dahl Olaussen 602 Kine Dahl Olaussen 602 was born on 19 Jul 1987. She is the daughter of Leif Erik Olaussen 601 and

of Marion Dahl 597.

Children of Kine Dahl Olaussen 602 and Bjørn Håkon Joki 604

1. Nikolai Olaussen Joki 605, Birth: 6 Aug 2008

Spouse: Bjørn Håkon Joki 604 Bjørn Håkon Joki 604 was born on 13 Oct 1981.

Eskil Dahl Olaussen 603 Eskil Dahl Olaussen 603 was born on 4 Sep 1990. He is the son of Leif Erik Olaussen 601 and of

Marion Dahl 597.

Fredrik Larsen 607 Fredrik Larsen 607 was born on 11 May 1992. He is the son of Svein Larsen 606 and of Hege Dahl

598.

Espen Larsen 608 Espen Larsen 608 was born on 25 Sep 2000. He is the son of Svein Larsen 606 and of Hege Dahl

598.

Harald Barlien 610 Harald Barlien 610 was born on 17 Sep 1995. He is the son of Terje Barlien 609 and of Karin Dahl

599.

Johannes Barlien 611 Johannes Barlien 611 was born on 5 Feb 1999. He is the son of Terje Barlien 609 and of Karin Dahl

599.

Ingrid Nanna Barlien 612 Ingrid Nanna Barlien 612 was born on 27 Jan 2003. She is the daughter of Terje Barlien 609 and of

Karin Dahl 599.

Preben Dahl Pedersen 614 Preben Dahl Pedersen 614 was born on 10 May 1996. He is the son of Bjørnar Pedersen 613 and of

Liv Dahl 600.

Ninni Isabell Dahl Pedersen 615 Ninni Isabell Dahl Pedersen 615 was born on 9 Sep 1999. She is the daughter of Bjørnar Pedersen

613 and of Liv Dahl 600.

Mads Dahl Pedersen 616 Mads Dahl Pedersen 616 was born on 14 Nov 2006. He is the son of Bjørnar Pedersen 613 and of

Liv Dahl 600.

Nikolai Olaussen Joki 605 Nikolai Olaussen Joki 605 was born on 6 Aug 2008. He is the son of Bjørn Håkon Joki 604 and of

Kine Dahl Olaussen 602.

Page 94: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 94 of 233

4.6.8.5 Åse Invarda Dahl299, 1938

Ole Hansen Dahl,b 1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774- 1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810- 93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812- 75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71

Sivert Regnor With, 1810- 97Lorentz Andreasrsen, 1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Rolf Eng Dahl, 1867Johan Nocolai Dahl,

b. 1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b 1879Anders Leonard

Sarre

Thora Dahl,b. 1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl, 1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl, 1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842- 10Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833- 96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845- 89Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845- 1889( iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862- 1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen 1821- 01

Gustav Johansen Dahl,1875-1970(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen ,1902 -1955

An

dre

a Erikka Dah

l, .1896

,d.19

97

Dagm

ar Karo

line Da

hl, 1898-

1996

Johan

Edvard

Dah

l,b.1900

-1977

Geo

rge Sigmu

nd D

ahl,19

04-1971

Olga Eu

genie

Dahl,190

6-197

7

Leif Albe

rt Dah

l,1908,

Karl G

ustav D

ahl,1

910

Tho

ra Agn

ete Dah

l,1914-199

6

Gu

drun D

ahl,19

19-2008

An

na Ida M

athilde D

ahl,19

16-

2006

Ra

gn

vald

Ma

this D

ah

l, 19

31

Laila

Gu

nh

ild D

ah

l, 19

34

Th

ea

Da

hl, 1

93

5 N

ils Asla

k, Da

hl, 1

93

8

Åse Ingvarda Dahl, 1938Hilbert Sigmunn Monsen, 1935-2002

Sigmund Monsen, 1968Elisabeth Kras, 1978

Bodil Monsen,1969Ozaka Osimili, 1975

Eril Chinedu Osimili, 2005

Mathie Rødal, 1997

Christofer Monsen Kras, 2006

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Page 95: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 95 of 233

Åse Ingvarda Dahl 299 Åse Ingvarda Dahl 299 was born on 21 Oct 1938. She is the daughter of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and

of Elen Kristine Aslaksen 296.

Children of Åse Ingvarda Dahl 299 and Hilbert Sigmunn Monsen 332

1. Sigmund Monsen 576, Birth: 26 Apr 1968

2. Bodil Monsen 577, Birth: 28 Jul 1969

Spouse: Hilbert Sigmunn Monsen 332 Hilbert Sigmunn Monsen 332 was born on 10 Aug 1935. He died in Oslo on 3 Apr 2002.

Sigmund Monsen 576 Sigmund Monsen 576 was born on 26 Apr 1968. He is the son of Hilbert Sigmunn Monsen 332 and of

Åse Ingvarda Dahl 299.

Children of Sigmund Monsen 576 and Elisabeth Kras 578

1. Christopher Monsen Kras 579, Birth: Oslo, 12 Aug 2006

Spouse: Elisabeth Kras 578 Elisabeth Kras 578 was born on 4 Mar 1976.

Bodil Monsen 577 Bodil Monsen 577 was born on 28 Jul 1969. She is the daughter of Hilbert Sigmunn Monsen 332 and

of Åse Ingvarda Dahl 299.

Children of Bodil Monsen 577 and Ozaka Osimili 580

1. Mathie Rødal 581, Birth: 13 May 1997

2. Erik Chinedu Osimili 582 , Birth: 19 Jan 2005

Spouse: Ozaka Osimili 580 Ozaka Osimili 580 was born on 15 Jul 1975.

Christopher Monsen Kras 579 Christopher Monsen Kras 579 was born in Oslo on 12 Aug 2006. He is the son of Sigmund Monsen

576 and of Elisabeth Kras 578.

Mathie Rødal 581 Mathie Rødal 581 was born on 13 May 1997. She is the daughter of Ozaka Osimili 580 and of Bodil

Monsen 577.

Erik Chinedu Osimili 582 Erik Chinedu Osimili 582 was born on 19 Jan 2005. He is the son of Ozaka Osimili 580 and of Bodil

Monsen 577.

Page 96: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 96 of 233

4.6.8.6 Nils Aslak Dahl301, 1938

Ole Hansen Dahl,b 1770, d . 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774- 1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl, 1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe, 1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl, 1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen, 1810- 93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl, 1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen, 1812- 75

Anne Birgithe Dahl, 1814-71

Sivert Regnor With, 1810- 97Lorentz Andreasrsen, 1810- 1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1813- 1866

Rolf Eng Dahl, 1867Johan Nocolai Dahl,

b. 1872Maren Baastad

Inger Dahl,b 1879Anders Leonard

Sarre

Thora Dahl,b. 1868-1944

Erikka Andrea Dahl, 1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl, 1880

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl. 1840- 1894(1 ) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849- 1916

(2 ) Birthe Mortensdatter ( not married)

Baard Nicolai Dahl, 1836- 1863

Regine Natvig, 1827-

Herman Richard Klæboe Dahl, 1831- 1909(i) Vivikke Elisabeth Markussen, 1830

(ii) Regina Olsen Boe, 1851- 1925

Oluf Edvard Dahl, 1829-57

Regine Natvig, 1832-??

Nicolai Dahl, died as a child

Rebecca Mathilde

Dahl, 1838-, not married

Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842- 10Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833- 96

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl, 1845- 89Julie Sophie Schanke, 1846-?

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i) Wilhelmina Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845- 1889( iii) Martha Andrea Tiedemand, 1862- 1949

Anna Nicoline Dahl, 1834-58

Michael Julius Høyem Michaelsen 1821- 01

Gustav Johansen Dahl,1875-1970(2) Elen Kristine Aslaksen ,1902 -1955

An

dre

a Erikka Dah

l, .1896

,d.19

97

Dagm

ar Karo

line Da

hl, 1898-

1996

Johan

Edvard

Dah

l,b.1900

-1977

Geo

rge Sigmu

nd D

ahl,19

04-1971

Olga Eu

genie

Dahl,190

6-197

7

Leif Albe

rt Dah

l,1908,

Karl G

ustav D

ahl,1

910

Tho

ra Agn

ete Dah

l,1914-199

6

Gu

drun D

ahl,19

19-2008

An

na Ida M

athilde D

ahl,19

16-

2006

Ra

gn

vald

Ma

this D

ah

l, 19

31

Laila

Gu

nh

ild D

ah

l, 19

34

Th

ea

Da

hl, 1

93

5

Nils Aslak, Dahl, 1938 Judith Petra Salkjelsvik, 1937

Åse

Ing

vard

a D

ah

l, 19

38

Gu

sta

v H

ara

ld D

ah

l,19

37

Kjell Arne Dahl, 1964Camilla Betten, 1975

Margareth Dahl, 1965Bjørn Erik Thorsen, 1956

Hilde Marie Dahl, 1967

Ørjan Dahl, 1968Marianne Skøtt, 1968

Aslak Salkjelsvik, 1971Elen Helen Pedersen, 1972

Jørgen Salkjelsvik, 1972

Iris Co

rde

lia D

ah

l B

ette

n, 2

00

5 Jo

hn

Ra

ine

r Be

tten

, 1

99

4 B

rita H

ele

ne

Se

pp

æn

en

, 19

90

Jan

Arild

Hild

on

en

,

Stig A

rne

Da

hl, 1

98

3Lillia

n G

ain

o, 1

98

6

An

nike

n D

ah

l A

hm

ed

El-A

bh

ari,

19

99

Som

aya

El-A

bh

ari,

19

97

Ra

ph

ae

l Xe

no

Skøtt

Da

hl, 2

00

8 Jo

sep

hin

e Skø

tt D

ah

l, 20

01

Victo

ria Skø

tt Da

hl,

19

97

Ka

rolin

e Sa

lkjelsvik

Pe

de

rsen

, 20

09

Kristia

n P

ed

erse

n,

20

04

Page 97: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 97 of 233

Nils Aslak Dahl 301 Nils Aslak Dahl 301 was born on 21 Oct 1938. He is the son of Gustav Johansen Dahl 3 and of Elen

Kristine Aslaksen 296.

Children of Nils Aslak Dahl 301 and Judith Petra Salkjelsvik 329

1. Kjell Arne Dahl 617, Birth: 2 Jun 1964

2. Margareth Dahl 618, Birth: 19 Oct 1965

3. Hilde Marie Dahl 619, Birth: 8 Feb 1967

4. Ørjan Dahl 620, Birth: 20 Sep 1968

5. Aslak Salkjelsvik 621, Birth: 29 Jan 1971

6. Jørgen Salkjelsvik 622, Birth: 9 Jun 1972

Spouse: Judith Petra Salkjelsvik 329 Judith Petra Salkjelsvik 329 was born on 13 Mar 1937.

Kjell Arne Dahl 617 Kjell Arne Dahl 617 was born on 2 Jun 1964. He is the son of Nils Aslak Dahl 301 and of Judith Petra

Salkjelsvik 329.

Children of Kjell Arne Dahl 617 and Camilla Betten 623

1. John Rainer Betten 624, Birth: 13 Jan 1994

2. Iris Cordelia Dahl Betten 625, Birth: 27 Sep 2005

Spouse: Camilla Betten 623 Camilla Betten 623 was born on 11 Nov 1975.

Margareth Dahl 618 Margareth Dahl 618 was born on 19 Oct 1965. She is the daughter of Nils Aslak Dahl 301 and of Judith

Petra Salkjelsvik 329.

Children of Margareth Dahl 618 and Bjørn Erik Thorsen 626

1. Annikken Dahl 628

2. Stig Arne Dahl 627, Birth: 19 Jul 1983

3. Brita Helene Seppænen 629, Birth: 10 May 1990

Spouse: Bjørn Erik Thorsen 626 Bjørn Erik Thorsen 626 was born on 4 Nov 1956.

Hilde Marie Dahl 619 Hilde Marie Dahl 619 was born on 8 Feb 1967. She is the daughter of Nils Aslak Dahl 301 and of Judith

Petra Salkjelsvik 329.

Children of Hilde Marie Dahl 619

1. Somaya El - Abhari 632, Birth: 3 May 1997

2. Ahmed El - Abhari 633, Birth: 1 Nov 1999

Ørjan Dahl 620 Ørjan Dahl 620 was born on 20 Sep 1968. He is the son of Nils Aslak Dahl 301 and of Judith Petra

Salkjelsvik 329.

Children of Ørjan Dahl 620 and Marianne Skøtt 634

1. Victoria Skøtt Dahl 635, Birth: 22 Jul 1997

2. Josephine Skøtt Dahl 636, Birth: 1 Aug 2001

3. Raphael Xeno Skøtt Dahl 637, Birth: 3 May 2008

Spouse: Marianne Skøtt 634 Marianne Skøtt 634 was born on 10 Nov 1968.

Page 98: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 98 of 233

Aslak Salkjelsvik 621 Aslak Salkjelsvik 621 was born on 29 Jan 1971. He is the son of Nils Aslak Dahl 301 and of Judith Petra

Salkjelsvik 329.

Children of Aslak Salkjelsvik 621 and Ellen Helen Pedersen 638

1. Kristian Pedersen 639 , Birth: 18 Jul 2004

2. Karoline Pedersen Salkjelsvik 640, Birth: 10 Aug 2009

Spouse: Ellen Helen Pedersen 638 Ellen Helen Pedersen 638 was born on 18 Sep 1972.

Jørgen Salkjelsvik 622 Jørgen Salkjelsvik 622 was born on 9 Jun 1972. He is the son of Nils Aslak Dahl 301 and of Judith Petra

Salkjelsvik 329.

John Rainer Betten 624 John Rainer Betten 624 was born on 13 Jan 1994. He is the son of Kjell Arne Dahl 617 and of Camilla

Betten 623.

Iris Cordelia Dahl Betten 625 Iris Cordelia Dahl Betten 625 was born on 27 Sep 2005. She is the daughter of Kjell Arne Dahl 617 and

of Camilla Betten 623.

Annikken Dahl 628 She was the daughter of Bjørn Erik Thorsen 626 and of Margareth Dahl 618.

Stig Arne Dahl 627 Stig Arne Dahl 627 was born on 19 Jul 1983. He is the son of Bjørn Erik Thorsen 626 and of Margareth

Dahl 618.

Spouse: Lillian Gaino 630 Lillian Gaino 630 was born on 8 Dec 1986.

Brita Helene Seppænen 629 Brita Helene Seppænen 629 was born on 10 May 1990. She is the daughter of Bjørn Erik Thorsen 626

and of Margareth Dahl 618.

Spouse: Jan Arild Hildonen 631

Somaya El - Abhari 632 Somaya El - Abhari 632 was born on 3 May 1997. She is the daughter of and of Hilde Marie Dahl 619.

Ahmed El - Abhari 633 Ahmed El - Abhari 633 was born on 1 Nov 1999. He is the son of and of Hilde Marie Dahl 619.

Victoria Skøtt Dahl 635 Victoria Skøtt Dahl 635 was born on 22 Jul 1997. She is the daughter of Ørjan Dahl 620 and of

Marianne Skøtt 634.

Josephine Skøtt Dahl 636 Josephine Skøtt Dahl 636 was born on 1 Aug 2001. She is the daughter of Ørjan Dahl 620 and of

Marianne Skøtt 634.

Page 99: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 99 of 233

Raphael Xeno Skøtt Dahl 637 Raphael Xeno Skøtt Dahl 637 was born on 3 May 2008. He is the son of Ørjan Dahl 620 and of

Marianne Skøtt 634.

Kristian Pedersen 639 Kristian Pedersen 639 was born on 18 Jul 2004. He is the son of Aslak Salkjelsvik 621 and of Ellen

Helen Pedersen 638.

Karoline Pedersen Salkjelsvik 640 Karoline Pedersen Salkjelsvik 640 was born on 10 Aug 2009. She is the daughter of Aslak Salkjelsvik

621 and of Ellen Helen Pedersen 638.

Page 100: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 100 of 233

4.6.9 Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl1072 Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839

Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl.1840-1894

(1) Erikka Andrea Esbensen, 1849-1916

(ii)Birthe Mortensdatter

Ba

ard

Nico

lai D

ah

l, 18

36

-18

63

Re

gin

e N

atvig

, 18

27

-

He

rma

n R

icha

rd K

læb

oe

Da

hl,

18

31

-19

09

(i)Vivikke

Elisa

be

th M

arku

ssen

,

18

30

-

(ii)Re

gin

a O

lsen

e, 1

85

1-1

92

5

Re

be

cca M

ath

ilde

Da

hl, 1

83

8-

No

t ma

rried

Olu

f Ed

vard

Da

hl,1

82

9-5

7

Re

gin

e N

atvig

,18

32

-

Nico

lai D

ah

l,die

d a

s a ch

ild

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l, 18

42

-

19

10

Nie

ls An

ton

Ha

nse

n A

all, 1

83

3-

18

96

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l, 18

45

-

18

89

Julie

So

ph

ie S

cha

nke

,18

46

-

Re

gn

or F

red

rik La

uritz

Da

hl,1

84

9-3

2

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila,

(ii)Ma

rie L

ind

eb

erg

, 18

45-1

88

9

(iii)Ma

rtha

An

dre

a T

ide

ma

nd,

18

62-1

94

9

An

na

Nico

line

Da

hl,1

83

4-5

8

Mich

ae

l Juliu

s Hø

yem

Mich

ae

lsen

18

21

-01

Gustav Dahl1875-1970

(i) Anna Eugenie Hansen, 1876-1932

(ii) Elen Kristine Aslaksen, 1902-1956

Rolf Eng Dahl,1867-

Thora Dahl,1868-1944

Erikka Andrea, 1870-

Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl, 1874

Evald Dahl, 1880

Johan Nicolai Dahl, 1872-1949

Maren Baastad, 1878-1977 Inger Mathisdatter Dahl,1879

Anders Leonard Sarre

Mathis Ole Sarre

Kaisa Bigga Sarre

Samuelsen

Johan Sarre

Isak Leonhard Sarre

Inga Aleta Sarre, 1917

Hansen

Au

d H

en

riette

Sm

uk

Fin

n T

orle

if Ha

nse

n, 1

94

5

Ka

ri Julia

nn

e H

an

sen

,19

45

Lille

vik

Arn

e L

eo

nh

ard

Ha

nse

n,

19

49

Re

idu

n S

ynn

øve

Ha

nse

n

Sa

rre, 1

95

0

La

rs Sa

mu

else

n

Åse

Ola

ug

Sa

mu

else

n,

Jørn

Ivar B

akke

n

Me

rete

Myrvo

ld

He

ge

Myrvo

ld

Lin

da

Ha

nse

n

Ro

nn

y Ha

nse

n

Ro

y Arild

Lille

vik, 19

65

Sve

in H

ug

o L

illevik, 1

96

6

Ha

nn

e E

lisab

eth

Lille

vik,

19

68

Lill K

arin

Ha

nse

n

rd A

nd

ers H

an

sen

,

19

68

Page 101: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 101 of 233

Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl 1072 Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl 1072 was born on 28 Aug 1879. She was the daughter of Johan

Marenius Rasch Dahl 8 and of Birthe Mortensdatter 1071.

Children of Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl 1072 and Anders Leonhard Sarre 1270

1. Mathis Ole Sarre 1742

2. Kaisa Bigga Sarre 1741

3. Johan Sarre 1743

4. Isak Leonhard Sarre 1744

5. Inga Alette Sarre 1073, Birth: 30 Jul 1917

Spouse: Anders Leonhard Sarre 1270

Mathis Ole Sarre 1742 He was the son of Anders Leonhard Sarre 1270 and of Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl 1072.

Kaisa Bigga Sarre 1741 She was the daughter of Anders Leonhard Sarre 1270 and of Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl

1072.

Children of Kaisa Bigga Sarre 1741 and ? Samuelsen 1745

1. Åse Olauig Samuelsen 1746

2. Lars Samuelsen 1747

Spouse: Samuelsen 1745

Johan Sarre 1743 He was the son of Anders Leonhard Sarre 1270 and of Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl 1072.

Isak Leonhard Sarre 1744 He was the son of Anders Leonhard Sarre 1270 and of Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl 1072.

Inga Alette Sarre 1073 Inga Alette Sarre 1073 was born on 30 Jul 1917. She is the daughter of Anders Leonhard

Sarre 1270 and of Inger (Inga) Mathisdatter Dahl 1072.

Children of Inga Alette Sarre 1073 and ? Hansen 1271

1. Aud Henriette Smuk 1748

2. Finn Torleif Hansen 1750, Birth: 26 May 1945

3. Kari Julianne Hansen 1272, Birth: 22 Nov 1945

4. Arne Leonhard Hansen 1751, Birth: 12 Aug 1949

5. Reidun Synnøve Hansen Sarre 1752, Birth: 13 May 1950

Spouse: Hansen 1271

Åse Olaug Samuelsen 1746 She was the daughter of Samuelsen 1745 and of Kaisa Bigga Sarre 1741.

Lars Samuelsen 1747 He was the son of Samuelsen 1745 and of Kaisa Bigga Sarre 1741.

Page 102: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 102 of 233

Aud Henriette Smuk 1748 She was the daughter of Hansen 1271 and of Inga Alette Sarre 1073.

Children of Aud Henriette Smuk 1748

1. Jørn Ivar Bakken 1753

2. Merete Myrvold 1754

3. Hege Myrvold 1755

Finn Torleif Hansen 1750 Finn Torleif Hansen 1750 was born on 26 May 1945. He is the son of Hansen 1271 and of

Inga Alette Sarre 1073.

Children of Finn Torleif Hansen 1750

1. Linda Hansen 1760

2. Ronny Hansen 1761

Kari Julianne Hansen 1272 Kari Julianne Hansen 1272 was born on 22 Nov 1945. She is the daughter of Hansen 1271

and of Inga Alette Sarre 1073.

Children of Kari Julianne Hansen 1272 and Lillevik 1273

1. Roy Arild Lillevik 1756, Birth: 1 Aug 1965

2. Svein Hugo Lillevik 1757, Birth: 13 Oct 1966

3. Hanne Elisabeth Lillevik 1758, Birth: 4 Dec 1968

Spouse: Lillevik 1273

Arne Leonhard Harnsen 1751 Arne Leonhard Harnsen 1751 was born on 12 Aug 1949. He is the son of Hansen 1271 and of

Inga Alette Sarre 1073.

Children of Arne Leonhard Harnsen 1751

1. Lill Karin Hansen 1764, Birth: 3 Jan 19

2. Bård Anders Hansen 1763, Birth: 13 Sep 1968, Death: 1978

Reidun Synnøve Hansen Sarre 1752 Reidun Synnøve Hansen Sarre 1752 was born on 13 May 1950. She is the daughter of Hansen

1271 and of Inga Alette Sarre 1073.

Jørn Ivar Bakken 1753 He is the son of and of Aud Henriette Smuk 1748.

Merete Myrvold 1754 She is the daughter of Aud Henriette Smuk 1748.

Hege Myrvold 1755 She is the daughter of Aud Henriette Smuk 1748.

Linda Hansen 1760 She is the daughter of Finn Torleif Hansen 1750.

Spouse: Roll 1762

Page 103: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 103 of 233

Ronny Hansen 1761 He is the son of Finn Torleif Hansen 1750.

Roy Arild Lillevik 1756 Roy Arild Lillevik 1756 was born on 1 Aug 1965. He is the son of Lillevik 1273 and of Kari

Julianne Hansen 1272.

Svein Hugo Lillevik 1757 Svein Hugo Lillevik 1757 was born on 13 Oct 1966. He is the son of Lillevik 1273 and of

Kari Julianne Hansen 1272.

Hanne Elisabeth Lillevik 1758 Hanne Elisabeth Lillevik 1758 was born on 4 Dec 1968. She is the daughter of Lillevik 1273

and of Kari Julianne Hansen 1272.

Spouse: Ingar Eriksen 1759

Lill Karin Hansen 1764 Lill Karin Hansen 1764 was born on 3 Jan 19. She is the daughter of Arne Leonhard Harnsen

1751.

Bård Anders Hansen 1763 Bård Anders Hansen 1763 was born on 13 Sep 1968. He died in 1978. He was the son of

Arne Leonhard Harnsen 1751.

Page 104: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 104 of 233

4.7 MATHILDE SUSANNE DAHL174 AND NIELS ANTON HANSEN AALL175

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Jo

ha

n M

are

niu

s R

asch

Da

hl.1

84

0-1

89

4

(1) E

rikka

An

dre

a

Esb

en

se

n, 1

84

9-1

91

6

Ba

ard

Nic

ola

i Da

hl, 1

83

6-

18

63

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig, 1

82

7-

He

rma

n R

ich

ard

Klæ

bo

e

Da

hl,1

83

1-1

90

9

(i)Viv

ikke

Elis

ab

eth

Ma

rku

sse

n,1

83

0

Re

be

cca

Ma

thild

e

Da

hl,1

83

8-x

x

No

t ma

rried

Olu

f Ed

va

rd D

ah

l,18

29-5

7

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-?

?

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,d

ied

as a

ch

ild

Mathilde Susanne Dahl,1842-10

Niels Anton Hansen Aall,1833-96

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er

Da

hl,1

84

5-8

9

Ju

lie S

op

hie

Sch

an

ke

,18

46

-

?Re

gn

or F

red

rik L

au

ritz

Da

hl,1

84

9-3

2

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila,

An

na

Nic

olin

e D

ah

l,18

34-5

8

Mic

ha

el J

uliu

s H

øye

m

Mic

ha

els

en

18

21

-01

Cato Nikolai

Benjamin Aall,1865-

57

Anathon August Fredrik Aall,

1867-43

(i) Katrine Antonie Langaard,

1863-26

(2) Lily Auguste Weisser,1898-

Niels Emil Ude

Aall,1868-03

Dagny Valborg

Bekkevold, 1886

Ester Nathalia

Mathilde Aall,1870-

Just Lund,

Herman Johan Regnor

Harris Aall,1871-57

Gerhardine d’Acqueria,

1868-

Maren Anna Aall,1873-48

(1)Kristian Birch-

Reichenvald Aars1868-

1917

(2) Maurizo

Barricelli,1875-1931

Signe Olava

Nicoline Aall

Charlotte

Henrikke Ragna

Aall

Alf Immanuel

Gustav Aall, 1868-

1903

Jonathan Aars, 1896-1983

Lajla Klem,1900-1992

Laila Aars,1901-

Niels Aall Barrecilli, 1912-

1993

Luisa Aall Barrecilli, 1915-2005

Rolf Brahde, 1918-

Øystein Aars, 1929

Thora Husby, 1934

Ivar Aars, 1932

Ingrid Ødegaard, 1939

Alf Cato Aall Brahde, 1954

Christine Patton, 1956

Rebecca Brahde, 1998

Camilla Brahde, 1994

Agnar Aars,

Mette

Torstein Aars

Ellen

Solveig Aars

Bernt Christian

Wilhelmsen

Marit Aars

Ketil Eide

Elin AarsJon Aars

Janne

Dagny Therese

Susanne Aall,

1878-1879

Ing

eb

org

Aa

rs

Ing

rid E

ide

, 19

94

Sig

mo

nd

Eid

e,

19

97

Ka

rl Osca

r Wilh

elm

se

n, 1

99

7

Nils

Ch

ristia

n W

ilhe

lmse

n,

19

93

Be

ne

dic

te W

ilhe

lmse

n, 1

99

1

So

lve

ig A

ars

, 19

96

Kris

tian

Aa

rs, 1

99

8

Kris

tine

Aa

rs, 1

99

8

Vild

e A

ars

, 19

98

AchtonLouis de Serène d’Acqueieria Aall, 1908

Oskar Ørnulf de Serène d’Acqueieria Aall, 1910

Vera Dagny Aall,

1910

Page 105: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 105 of 233

Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174 Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174 was born on 12 May 1842. She died in 1910. She was the daughter

of Baard Nikolai Benjamin Dahl 53 and of Maren Anna Henriksdatter Klæboe 54.

Children of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174 and Niels Anton Hansen Aall 175

1. Cato Nicolai Benjamin Nilsen Aall 265 , Birth: 19 Aug 1865, Death: 1957

2. Anathon August Fredrik Aall 266 , Birth: 15 Aug 1867, Death: 1943

3. Alf Immanuel Gustav Aall 272, Birth: 1868, Death: 1903

4. Esther Nathalia Mathilde Aall 268, Birth: 24 May 1870

5. Herman Johan Regnor Harris Aall 269, Birth: 22 Sep 1871, Death: 1957

6. Maren Anna Nielsine Aall 270, Birth: 8 Mar 1873, Death: 1948

7. Charlotte Henrikke Ragna Aall 271, Birth: 26 Sep 1874

8. Signe Olava Nicoline Aall 273 , Birth: 24 Nov 1876

9. Niels Emil Ude Aall 2011 , Birth: 24 Nov 1876

10. Dagny Therese Susanne Aall 2012, Birth: 2 Aug 1878, Death: 18 Mar 1879

Spouse: Niels Anton Hansen Aall 175 Niels Anton Hansen Aall 175 was born in Sandefjord on 6 Nov 1833. Niels Anton was all his life a vicar

working in several places in both northern as well as southern Norway. He died in 1896. He was the son

of Hans Cato Aall 666 and of Karen Nikoline Harris 667.

The Aall family around 1875.

In front from the right; Esther Natalia Mathilde,1870-, Herman Johan Regnor Harris, 1871-1957,

Midten fra høyre; Cato Nicolai Benjamin, 1865-1957, Charlotte Henrikke Ragna, 1874- (on mother's knee),

Anathon August Fredrik, 1867-1943, Alf Immanuel Gustav, 1868-1903, Maren Anna Nielsine, 1873-1948,

Foreldre, til høyre; Mathilde Susanne Dahl, 1842-1910, Niels Anton Hansen Aall, 1833-1896

Page 106: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 106 of 233

The Aall family in the late 1880 ties.

Page 107: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 107 of 233

Cato Nicolai Benjamin Nilsen Aall 265 Cato Nicolai Benjamin Nilsen Aall 265 was born on 19 Aug 1865. He died in 1957. He was the son of Niels

Anton Hansen Aall 175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Anathon August Fredrik Aall 266 Anathon August Fredrik Aall 266 was born on 15 Aug 1867. He died in 1943. He was the son of Niels Anton

Hansen Aall 175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Spouse 1: Katrine Antonie Langaard 722 Katrine Antonie Langaard 722 was born ved plassen Oslo in 1863. She died in 1926. She was the daughter of

Conrad Langaard 724.

Spouse 2: Lily Auguste Weiser 723 Lily Auguste Weiser 723 was born in 1898. She is the daughter of Hans Weiser 725 and of Louise Hess 726.

Alf Immanuel Gustav Aall 272 Alf Immanuel Gustav Aall 272 was born in 1868. He died in 1903. He was the son of Niels Anton Hansen Aall

175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Esther Nathalia Mathilde Aall 268 Esther Nathalia Mathilde Aall 268 was born on 24 May 1870. She was the daughter of Niels Anton Hansen

Aall 175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Spouse: Just Lund 274

Herman Johan Regnor Harris Aall 269 Herman Johan Regnor Harris Aall 269 was born on 22 Sep 1871. He died in Oslo in 1957. He was the son of

Niels Anton Hansen Aall 175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Spouse: Gerhardine d'Acqueria 729 Gerhardine d'Acqueria 729 was born in 1868. She was the daughter of Oscar d'Acqueria 730.

Children of Herman Johan Regnor Harris Aall 269 and Gerhardine d'Acqueria 729

1. Achton Louis de Serène d'Acqueria Aall 2015, Birth: 8 Sept 1908

2. Oskar Ørnulf de Serène d'Acqueria Aall 2016, Birth: 14 Jan 1910

Maren Anna Nielsine Aall 270 Maren Anna Nielsine Aall 270 was born on 8 Mar 1873. She died in 1948. She was the daughter of Niels

Anton Hansen Aall 175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Children of Maren Anna Nielsine Aall 270 and Kristian Birch - Reichenvald Aars 275

1. Jonathan Aars 735, Birth: 17 Dec 1896, Death: 1983

2. Laila Aars 734, Birth: 1901

Children of Maren Anna Nielsine Aall 270 and Maurizio Barricelli 276

1. Nils Aall Barricelli 741, Birth: 1912, Death: 1993

2. Luisa Aall Barricelli 742, Birth: 24 Jun 1915, Death: 6 Aug 2005

Spouse 1: Kristian Birch - Reichenvald Aars 275 Kristian Birch - Reichenvald Aars 275 was born in 1868. He died in 1917. He was the son of Jacob Jonathan

Aars 1712 and of Anna Ernestas Birch- Reichenvald 1766.

Spouse 2: Maurizio Barricelli 276 Maurizio Barricelli 276 was born in 1875. He died in 1931.

Charlotte Henrikke Ragna Aall 271 Charlotte Henrikke Ragna Aall 271 was born on 26 Sep 1874. She was the daughter of Niels Anton Hansen

Aall 175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Page 108: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 108 of 233

Signe Olava Nicoline Aall 273 Signe Olava Nicoline Aall 273 was born on 24 Nov 1876. She was the daughter of Niels Anton Hansen Aall

175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Niels Emil Ude Aall 2011 Niels Emil Ude Aall 2011 was born on 24 Nov 1876. He was the son of Niels Anton Hansen Aall 175 and of

Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Children of Niels Emil Ude Aall 2011 and Dagny Valborg Bekkevold 2017

1. Vera Dagny Aall 2018, Birth: 11 Dec 1910

Spouse: Dagny Valborg Bekkevold 2017 Dagny Valborg Bekkevold 2017 was from Bergen and she was born on 23 Jan 1886.

Dagny Therese Susanne Aall 2012 Dagny Therese Susanne Aall 2012 was born on 2 Aug 1878. She died on 18 Mar 1879. She was the daughter

of} Niels Anton Hansen Aall 175 and of Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter Dahl 174.

Jonathan Aars 735 Jonathan Aars 735 was born on 17 Dec 1896. He died in 1983. He was the son of Kristian Birch - Reichenvald

Aars 275 and of Maren Anna Nielsine Aall 270.

Children of Jonathan Aars 735 and Lajla Klem 736

1. Øystein Aars 739, Birth: 7 Mar 1929

2. Ivar Aars 740, Birth: 20 Sep 1932

Spouse: Lajla Klem 736 Lajla Klem 736 was born in 1900. She died in Oslo in 1992. She was the daughter of Gustav Klem 737 and of

Helene Imiskund 738.

Laila Aars 734 Lajla Aars 734 was born in 1901. She is the daughter of Kristian Birch - Reichenvald Aars 275 and of Maren

Anna Nielsine Aall 270.

Nils Aall Barricelli 741 Nils Aall Barricelli 741 was born in 1912. He died in 1993. He was the son of Maurizio Barricelli 276 and of

Maren Anna Nielsine Aall 270.

Luisa Aall Barricelli 742 Luisa Aall Barricelli 742 was born on 24 Jun 1915. She died on 6 Aug 2005. She was the daughter of

Maurizio Barricelli 276 and of Maren Anna Nielsine Aall 270.

Children of Luisa Aall Barricelli 742 and Rolf Brahde 743

1. Alf Cato Aall Brahde 744 , Birth: 9 Dec 1954

Spouse: Rolf Brahde 743 Rolf Brahde 743 was born in 1918.

Øystein Aars 739 Øystein Aars 739 was born in Oslo on 7 Mar 1929. He is the son of Jonathan Aars 735 and of Lajla Klem 736.

Children of Øystein Aars 739 and Thora Husby 1593

1. Agnar Aars 1594

2. Torstein Aars 1595

3. Solveig Aars 1596

Spouse: Thora Husby 1593

Page 109: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 109 of 233

Thora Husby 1593 was born on 25 Mar 1934.

Ivar Aars 740 Ivar Aars 740 was born on 20 Sep 1932. He is the son of Jonathan Aars 735 and of Lajla Klem 736.

Children of Ivar Aars 740 and Ingrid Ødegaard 1584

1. Marit Aars 1585

2. Elin Aars 1586

3. Jon Aars 1587

Spouse: Ingrid Ødegaard 1584 Ingrid Ødegaard 1584 was born on 11 May 1939.

Alf Cato Aall Brahde 744 Alf Cato Aall Brahde 744 was born on 9 Dec 1954. He is the son of Rolf Brahde 743 and of Luisa Aall

Barricelli 742.

Children of Alf Cato Aall Brahde 744 and Christine Patton 1581

1. Camilla Brahde 1583, Birth: 1 Apr 1994

2. Rebecca Brahde 1582, Birth: 3 Aug 1998

Spouse: Christine Patton 1581 Christine Patton 1581 was born on 27 Sep 1956.

Agnar Aars 1594 He is the son of Øystein Aars 739 and of Thora Husby 1593.

Children of Agnar Aars 1594 and Mette 1597

1. Vilde Aars 1598, Birth: 1998

2. Kristine Aars 1599, Birth: 1998

Spouse: Mette 1597

Torstein Aars 1595 He is the son of Øystein Aars 739 and of Thora Husby 1593.

Children of Torstein Aars 1595 and Ellen 1600

1. Solveig Aars 1601, Birth: 1996

2. Kristian Aars 1602, Birth: 1998

Spouse: Ellen 1600

Solveig Aars 1596 She is the daughter of Øystein Aars 739 and of Thora Husby 1593.

Children of Solveig Aars 1596 and Bent Christian Wilhelmsen 1603

1. Benedicte Wilhelmsen 1604, Birth: 1991

2. Nils Christian Wilhelmsen 1605, Birth: 1993

3. Karl Oscar Wilhelmsen 1606, Birth: 1997

Spouse: Bent Christian Wilhelmsen 1603

Marit Aars 1585 She is the daughter of Ivar Aars 740 and of Ingrid Ødegaard 1584.

Children of Marit Aars 1585 and Ketil Eide 1588

1. Ingrid Eide 1589, Birth: 1994

2. Sigmond Eide 1590, Birth: 1997

Spouse: Ketil Eide 1588

Page 110: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 110 of 233

Elin Aars 1586 She is the daughter of Ivar Aars 740 and of Ingrid Ødegaard 1584.

Jon Aars 1587 He is the son of Ivar Aars 740 and of Ingrid Ødegaard 1584.

Children of Jon Aars 1587 and Jane 1591

1. Ingeborg Aars 1592

Spouse: Jane 1591

Camilla Brahde 1583 Camilla Brahde 1583 was born on 1 Apr 1994. She is the daughter of Alf Cato Aall Brahde 744 and of

Christine Patton 1581.

Rebecca Brahde 1582 Rebecca Brahde 1582 was born on 3 Aug 1998. She is the daughter of Alf Cato Aall Brahde 744 and of

Christine Patton 1581.

Vilde Aars 1598 Vilde Aars 1598 was born in 1998. She is the daughter of Agnar Aars 1594 and of Mette 1597.

Kristine Aars 1599 Kristine Aars 1599 was born in 1998. She is the daughter of Agnar Aars 1594 and of Mette 1597.

Solveig Aars 1601 Solveig Aars 1601 was born in 1996. She is the daughter of Torstein Aars 1595 and of Ellen 1600.

Kristian Aars 1602 Kristian Aars 1602 was born in 1998. He is the son of Torstein Aars 1595 and of Ellen 1600.

Benedicte Wilhelmsen 1604 Benedicte Wilhelmsen 1604 was born in 1991. She is the daughter of Bent Christian Wilhelmsen 1603 and of

Solveig Aars 1596.

Nils Christian Wilhelmsen 1605 Nils Christian Wilhelmsen 1605 was born in 1993. He is the son of Bent Christian Wilhelmsen 1603 and of

Solveig Aars 1596.

Karl Oscar Wilhelmsen 1606 Karl Oscar Wilhelmsen 1606 was born in 1997. He is the son of Bent Christian Wilhelmsen 1603 and of

Solveig Aars 1596.

Ingrid Eide 1589 Ingrid Eide 1589 was born in 1994. She is the daughter of Ketil Eide 1588 and of Marit Aars 1585.

Sigmond Eide 1590 Sigmond Eide 1590 was born in 1997. He is the son of Ketil Eide 1588 and of Marit Aars 1585.

Page 111: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 111 of 233

Ingeborg Aars 1592 She is the daughter of Jon Aars 1587 and of Jane 1591.

Page 112: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 112 of 233

4.8 CARL ANTON REINER DAHL83 AND JULIE SOFIE SCHANKE172

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ba

ard

Nic

ola

i Da

hl, 1

83

6-1

86

3

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig, 1

82

7-

He

rma

n R

ich

ard

Klæ

bo

e D

ah

l,

18

31

-19

09

(i)Viv

ikke

Elis

ab

eth

Ma

rku

sse

n,

18

30

(ii) Re

gin

e O

lse

n B

øe

, 18

51

-

19

25

Re

be

cca

Ma

thild

e D

ah

l,18

38

-

No

t ma

rried

Jo

ha

n M

are

niu

s R

asch

Da

hl,

18

40

-94

(i) An

dre

a E

rikka

Esb

en

se

n,

18

39

-18

Olu

f Ed

va

rd D

ah

l,18

29

-57

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,d

ied

as a

ch

ild

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42

-10

Nie

ls A

nto

n H

an

se

n A

all,1

83

3-9

6

Carl Anthon Reiner Dahl,1845-89

Julie Sophie Schanke,1846-

Re

gn

or F

red

rik L

au

ritz D

ah

l,

18

49

-32

(i)Wilh

elm

ina

Ma

ttila

(ii) Ma

rie L

ind

eb

erg

, 18

45

-18

89

(ii) Ma

rtha

An

dre

a T

ide

ma

nd,

18

62

-19

49

An

na

Nic

olin

e D

ah

l,18

34

-18

58

Mic

ha

el J

uliu

s H

øye

m

Mic

ha

els

en

18

21-1

90

1

Karl Anton Dahl, 1878-

Vally Dahl, 1879

Mathilde Karlsdatter Dahl, 1880

Page 113: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 113 of 233

Carl Anthon Reiner Baardsen Dahl 83 Carl Anthon Reiner Baardsen Dahl 83 was born on 4 Nov 1845 in Vadsø on

November 4th

1845. Carl worked as an assistant in different businesses in Vadsø, he

was for a period running his own business in Petschenga, Russia, and moved back to

Norway, Vardø, around 1870He was baptised on 10 Apr 1846. He died on 12 Oct

1889. He was the son of Baard Nikolai Benjamin Dahl 53 and of Maren Anna

Henriksdatter Klæboe 54.

Children of Carl Anthon Reiner Baardsen Dahl 83 and Julie Sofie Schanke 172

1. Karl Anton Dahl 277, Birth: 17 Feb 1878

2. Vally Dahl 278, Birth: 7 Sep 1879

3. Mathilde Karlsdatter Dahl 279, Birth: 10 Nov 1880

Spouse: Julie Sofie Schanke 172

Julie Sofie Schanke 172 was born on 28 Mar 1846. She was the daughter of Carl

Johan Schanke 937 and of Wally Berhardine Ulich 938.

Karl Anton Dahl 277 Karl Anton Dahl 277 was born on 17 Feb 1878. He was the son of Carl Anthon

Reiner Baardsen Dahl 83 and of Julie Sofie Schanke 172.

Vally Dahl 278 Vally Dahl 278 was born on 7 Sep 1879. She was the daughter of Carl Anthon

Reiner Baardsen Dahl 83 and of Julie Sofie Schanke 172.

Spouse: Ludvig Korck Vd Fehr 280

Mathilde Kalrsdatter Dahl 279 Mathilde Kalrsdatter Dahl 279 was born on 10 Nov 1880. She was the daughter of

Carl Anthon Reiner Baardsen Dahl 83 and of Julie Sofie Schanke 172.

Page 114: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 114 of 233

4.9 REGNOR FREDRIK LAURITZ DAHL173

4.9.1 Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl113 and Wilhelmina Sofie Johansen Mattila954

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ba

ard

Nico

lai D

ah

l, 18

36

-18

63

Re

gin

e N

atvig

, 18

27

-

He

rma

n R

icha

rd K

læb

oe

Da

hl,

18

31

-19

09

(i)Vivikke

Elisa

be

th

Ma

rkusse

n, 1

83

0

(ii) Re

gin

a O

lsen

e, 1

85

1-

19

25

Re

be

cca M

ath

ilde

Da

hl, 1

83

8-

No

t ma

rried

Joh

an

Ma

ren

ius R

asch

Da

hl,

18

40

-94

(i) An

dre

a E

rikka E

sbe

nse

n,

18

39

-18

Olu

f Ed

vard

Da

hl,1

82

9-5

7

Re

gin

e N

atvig

,18

32-

Nico

lai D

ah

l,die

d a

s a ch

ild

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42

-

10

Nie

ls An

ton

Ha

nse

n A

all,1

83

3-

96

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l,18

45-

89

Julie

So

ph

ie S

cha

nke

,18

46-

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i)Wilhelmina Sofie Johansen Mattila,

(ii)Marie Lindeberg, 1845-1889

(iii)Martha Andrea Tidemand,1862-1949

An

na

Nico

line

Da

hl,1

83

4-1

85

8

Mich

ae

l Juliu

s Hø

yem

Mich

ae

lsen

18

21

-19

01

Rudolf Fredrik Dahl, 1876-1960

Emma Kostamo,

Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter, 1877-1959

Karl Fredrik Stock,1871-1940

Re

ida

r Da

hl, 1

89

8-

19

60

Ra

gn

a D

ah

l, 19

00-

Ove

Mo

ksne

ss,

Ein

ar R

eg

no

r

Da

hl, 1

91

1-1

97

1

An

ny A

na

nia

ssen

,

19

18

-20

10

Sve

n M

oksn

ess

Jan

Ein

ar D

ah

l

An

n K

arin

Da

hl,

19

70

Ge

ir Ola

v Næ

ss,

19

67

Ma

thild

e N

æss, 1

99

6

Otilie

ss, 19

99

Elid

a N

æss, 2

00

1

Lyd

ia N

æss, 2

00

5

Da

g A

gn

ar D

ah

l,

19

47

Britt M

ath

isen

kon

Fe

rdin

an

t

Sto

ck, 18

97-1

98

8

Ma

rgit L

ovise

Sto

ck, 18

99-1

97

4

An

dre

as M

oe

Ka

spe

r Kristo

ffer

Sto

ck, 19

01-1

95

1

Ra

gn

hild

Be

rg,

19

03

-19

81

Akse

l Sto

ck, 19

03

-

19

62

Alfin

e R

ush

feld

t,

19

06

-19

88

Kla

ra T

he

rese

Sto

ck, 19

05-1

98

7

Eile

rt An

an

iasse

n,-

19

61

Re

gn

or W

ilfred

Sto

ck, 19

07-1

95

2

(i)Julie

Itelin

, 19

09-1

98

5

(ii)Gu

dru

n M

ag

da

len

a A

nd

rea

ssen

,

An

na

Elfryd

a

Sto

ck, 19

09-1

97

2

Ing

vald

Ru

shfe

ldt,

19

09

-19

87

Ra

nd

i Ma

thild

e

Sto

ck, 19

12-1

98

5

Ma

gn

us Jo

ha

nse

n

Joh

an

Ru

do

lf

Sto

ck, 19

13-1

99

4

Åse

Ru

shfe

ldt,

19

26

-20

09

Bja

rne

Go

tfred

Sto

ck, 19

15

-19

60

Ma

gn

a A

na

nia

ssen, 1

91

6-2

00

3

Va

lly Do

the

a

Sto

ck, 19

17-2

00

0

He

lme

r Ru

shfe

ldt,

19

14

-19

90

Elvira

Ma

gd

ale

na

Sto

ck, 19

20-1

92

0

Akse

l Kild

al S

tock,

18

95

-18

98

Ch

art 2

Ch

art 3

Page 115: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 115 of 233

Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter, 1877-1959

Karl Fredrik Stock,1871-1940

ko

n F

erd

ina

nt S

tock, 1

89

7-

19

88

Ma

rgit L

ovis

e S

tock, 1

89

9-1

97

4

An

dre

as M

oe

Ka

sp

er K

risto

ffer S

tock, 1

90

1-

19

51

Ra

gn

hild

Be

rg, 1

90

3-1

98

1

Akse

l Sto

ck, 1

90

3-1

96

2

Alfin

e R

ush

feld

t, 19

06

-19

88

Kla

ra T

he

rese

Sto

ck, 1

90

5-1

98

7

Eile

rt An

an

iasse

n,-1

96

1

Akse

l Kild

al S

tock, 1

89

5-1

89

8

Try

gve

Mo

e,

Milla

On

ga

mo

Alfild

Mo

e,1

92

5-2

00

3

Nils

Fre

drik

rge

nse

n,

To

ralf M

oe, 1

93

0

(i)Hilm

a V

artia

ne

n,

(ii)Ka

ri Su

nd

qu

ist

Ma

rgo

t Mo

e

Sve

in M

oe

rge

n J

ørg

en

se

n

Ste

in J

ørg

en

se

n

Ka

rl Sto

ck, 1

92

6-2

00

5

Ge

rd N

ilse

n, 1

93

6

To

rbjø

rn S

tock, 1

92

7-1

98

7

Ing

rid H

an

se

n, 1

92

7-2

00

1

Ra

gn

y W

en

ch

e S

tock, 1

92

9

Pa

ul Is

tad

,19

29

Åse

Sto

ck, 1

93

5-1

99

3

Hu

go

Sto

ck,1

92

8-1

99

3

Od

dru

n F

alls

tad

, 19

32

To

rste

in S

tock, 1

93

0

Ge

rd P

ette

rse

n, 1

93

0

Asb

jørn

Sto

ck, 1

93

6

Ra

gn

hild

Hu

sta

dn

es, 1

93

4-2

00

8

Jo

run

Be

rgljo

t Sto

ck, 1

94

1

Od

d A

kse

l Sto

ck, 1

93

9

Ag

ne

s K

ristia

nse

n, 1

93

5

Ed

ga

r An

an

iasse

n, 1

92

3-2

00

6

Erlin

g A

na

nia

sse

n, 1

92

4-1

92

4

Kirs

tin A

na

nia

sse

n, 1

92

8-2

00

9

Try

gve

Ple

ym

, 19

20

-20

01

Willy

An

an

iasse

n, 1

92

9-1

99

9

Ha

rriet L

ars

en

, -19

93

Bjø

rn M

oe

Birg

er M

oe

Be

rit Mo

Lis

be

th S

tock, 1

95

8

Kje

ll Ro

ge

r Sto

ck, 1

96

5

To

rhild

Mo

xn

ess,1

97

0

Ste

ina

r Sto

ck

Te

rje Is

tad, 1

95

8

An

ne

Lis

e A

be

lsta

d,1

95

8

Ra

y M

artin

Ista

d,1

96

0

Kirs

ti Ko

ldh

us, 1

96

1

Liv

Ra

gn

hild

Ista

d, 1

96

5

nn

au

g S

tock, 1

95

1

He

gg

ba

kk

Ja

n A

rne

Sto

ck, 1

95

3

An

n K

arls

en

Ellin

or S

tock, 1

95

5

Bjø

rna

r An

dre

asse

n

Od

dru

n E

lisa

be

th S

tock, 1

96

7

Vig

dis

Sto

ck, 1

96

3 R

un

e S

tock,1

96

0

Sa

ra S

tock, 1

99

3

Ida

Sto

ck, 1

99

5

To

m A

nd

re Is

tad, 1

98

0

Ja

nn

e H

ele

ne

Ista

d, 1

98

5

Ma

rtine

Ista

d, 1

98

8

Ma

rie Is

tad

, 19

92

Ørja

n H

eg

ge

ba

kk, 1

97

3

Silje

He

gg

eb

akk, 1

97

7

Yn

gve

Sto

ck, 1

97

7

Ole

An

dre

as A

nd

rea

sse

n, 1

97

4

Mo

nic

a A

nd

rea

sse

n, 1

97

8

To

nje

An

dre

asse

n, 1

97

9

Lis

s In

ge

r Sto

ck, 1

95

2

Sve

rre P

ed

ers

en

, 19

50

Ge

ir To

re S

tock, 1

95

6

Fin

n R

oa

r Sto

ck, 1

96

0

Siv

Tru

de

Sto

ck, 1

96

2-2

00

8

Ba

rbro

Pe

de

rse

n, 1

97

0

Gry

Pe

de

rse

n, 1

97

7

An

ne

Rig

mo

r Sto

ck, 1

96

0

Be

ate

Sto

ck, 1

96

2

Akse

l Jo

ha

n S

tock, 1

96

5-2

00

0

Britt E

va

Ha

nse

n

Elis

ab

eth

Sto

ck, 1

98

1-2

00

3

Da

nie

l Sto

ck, 1

99

2

Ma

rcu

s S

tock, 1

99

5

Ka

rl Akse

l Sto

ck, 1

96

7

Øyvin

d S

tock, 1

96

9-1

96

9

To

re S

tock, 1

97

2

He

len

e L

ovis

e S

tock, 1

97

4

To

rge

ir Ple

ym

Arn

finn

Ple

ym

Na

ncy P

leym

Be

nte

Ple

ym

Vilg

un

n A

na

nia

sse

n

Ro

nn

y A

na

nia

sse

n

Arn

hild

An

an

iasse

n

To

mm

y A

na

nia

sse

n

Lill E

irin A

na

nia

sse

n

Chart 2

Page 116: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 116 of 233

Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter, 1877-1959

Karl Fredrik Stock,1871-1940

Re

gn

or W

ilfred

Sto

ck, 1

90

7-1

95

2

(i)Ju

lie Ite

lin, 1

90

9-1

98

5

(ii)Gu

dru

n M

ag

da

len

a A

nd

rea

sse

n

An

na

Elfry

da

Sto

ck, 1

90

9-1

97

2

Ing

va

ld R

ush

feld

t, 19

09-1

98

7

Ra

nd

i Ma

thild

e S

tock, 1

91

2-1

98

5

Ma

gn

us J

oh

an

se

n

Jo

ha

n R

ud

olf S

tock, 1

91

3-1

99

4

Åse

Ru

sh

feld

t, 19

26-2

00

9

Bja

rne

Go

tfred

Sto

ck, 1

91

5-1

96

0

Ma

gn

a A

na

nia

sse

n, 1

91

6-2

00

3

Va

lly D

oth

ea

Sto

ck, 1

91

7-2

00

0

He

lme

r Ru

sh

feld

t, 19

14-1

99

0

Elv

ira M

ag

da

len

a S

tock, 1

92

0-

19

20

Ja

n E

ug

en

An

dre

asse

n, 1

93

3

Gu

nn

Lillia

n D

avid

se

n, 1

94

0

Bjø

rn D

ag

finn

Sto

ck, 1

93

9-1

96

0

Ag

ne

s K

ristin

e S

tock, 1

94

2

Arn

e O

ska

r Ste

nb

y, 1

94

0

Arild

Ru

sh

feld

t, 19

38-2

00

4

Eva

Sta

v, 1

93

4

Bjø

rg K

are

n R

ush

feld

t, 19

40

-20

07

Ro

ald

Be

tsi, 1

93

0-2

00

8

Iva

r Bry

nju

lf Ru

sh

feld

t, 19

41

An

na

Ma

this

en

,19

38-1

99

3

Øyste

in R

ush

feld

t, 19

47

Ma

rian

ne

Ba

lto, 1

94

6

Elin

So

lau

g R

ush

feld

t, 19

49

Ro

ald

Gro

ng

sta

d, 1

94

8

Ma

gn

e J

oh

an

se

n

En

id J

oh

an

se

n

Fre

ide

r Sto

ck, 1

94

7

Ing

er H

ildre

, 19

54

Ru

th S

tock, 1

94

9

To

rmo

d K

arls

en

,

Re

idu

n S

tock, 1

95

1

Ro

lf To

re E

idis

se

n, 1

95

1

Chart 3

Sis

se

l An

dre

asse

n, 1

96

2

Ja

n O

ve

Ulv

esta

d

Pe

er A

nd

rea

sse

n, 1

96

5

(i)An

n-C

hris

tin A

un

e

(ii)Tru

de

ren

se

n

Je

an

ette

Ulv

esta

d, 1

98

4

An

dré

Ulv

esta

d, 1

98

8

Ma

de

lein

e U

lve

sta

d, 1

99

0

Pa

trick A

un

e A

nd

rea

sse

n, 1

99

1

Em

ilie H

ov A

nd

rea

sse

n, 2

00

0

Bjø

rn H

ara

ld S

ten

by,

19

65

Ørja

n S

ten

by, 1

96

9

Arv

id R

eg

or S

ten

by, 1

96

2

Trin

e R

ush

feld

t, 19

72

Stå

le R

ush

feld

t, 19

73

Jo

hn

Ing

va

ld B

ets

i,

19

64

Ge

rd H

am

ma

ri, 19

65

Je

ns R

oa

ld B

ets

i,19

66

An

ja B

ets

i, 19

70

l Iva

n T

ren

tief

Ha

nn

e B

ets

i, 19

90

Be

ne

dik

te B

ets

i, 19

94

Nic

ola

i Te

ntie

f,19

97

Fro

de

Sto

ck, 1

97

9

Kris

tine

Sto

ck, 1

98

1

Jo

hn

Re

ida

r Sto

ck, 1

98

5

Ra

gn

a K

arls

en, 1

96

8

Ste

in W

alte

r Ka

rlse

n, 1

97

0

Ra

ym

on

d K

arls

en

, 19

80

Ma

rit Eid

isse

n,

Erle

nd

Eid

isse

n

An

ette

Eid

isse

n, 1

97

8

Bja

rnh

ild S

tock, 1

94

0-2

00

8

Ro

lf Su

nd

e, 1

91

6

Ro

na

ld S

tock, 1

94

4

Ain

a J

aco

bse

n, 1

94

7

te S

tock, 1

94

9-2

00

1

To

rill Ba

kke

n, 1

95

1

Tu

rid S

tock, 1

95

2

Fre

d E

ina

r Jo

ge

rt, 19

51

To

ne

Sto

ck, 1

95

7-2

01

0

Va

lter R

ush

feld

t, 19

44

Re

idu

n B

oh

ine

n

Kn

ut R

ush

feld

t, 19

47

Fre

idis

Be

nd

ikse

n, 1

94

8

La

rs B

jarn

e S

un

de

, 19

67

Ha

nn

e S

un

de

, 19

68

ko

n S

tock, 1

97

0

Ma

gn

hild

Sto

ck, 1

97

4

Bjø

rn M

ag

ne

Sto

ck, 1

98

2

Bja

rne

Sto

ck, 1

97

3

Evy S

tock, 1

97

6

Ru

ne

Jo

ge

rt, 19

77

Esb

en

Jo

ge

rt, 19

83

Ch

arlo

tte S

tock, 1

98

1

Ag

ne

s S

tock, 1

99

4

Ko

lbjø

rn R

ush

feld

t, 19

71

Sig

urd

Ru

sh

feld

t, 19

72

Bjø

rgu

n R

ush

feld

t, 19

76

Jo

ste

in R

ush

feld

t, 19

70

Ha

lge

ir Ru

sh

feld

t, 19

73

Page 117: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 117 of 233

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl 173

Regnor was born in Vadsø on October 19th

1849. He was the son of Baard Nikolai Benjamin

Dahl 53 and of Maren Anna Henriksdatter Klæboe 54.

Regnor was from a young age involved in different businesses in Vadsø, among which fish

export, restaurants and catering, wine trading/import and at the age of 28, he in 1877 bought

the fishing village “Langenes” in Vesteraalen. Regnor had also interests in his brother

Herman’s businesses in Varanger the funding of which was partly based on Regnor’s

collateral. The collaps of Herman’s businesses and general downturn in the economy of

Northern Norway, ruined Regnor, he gave up Langenes and emigrated together with his wife

and their daughter to the USA in 1881. He worked for for 8 years as retail manager of the

Calumet mines, Michigan, where his wife and children died of a disease in 1889. Regnor

moved to Seattle, running different businesses and he was in 1898 employed as leader of the

expedition for transportation from Seattle and settlement in Alaska of the 78 samies and 500

reindeers that came from Norway. He contributed to several accomplishments related to

Alaska, fishing and fishproducts. He was at the age of 65, employed as manager of the post

department at the Scandinavian American Bank.

Regnor died in Seattle, USA, on 24 Dec 1932.

Wilhelmine (mina) Sofie Johansen Mattila 954

Regnor had without marriage, a relationship with Wilhelmine (Mina) and they had two

children.

Children of Wilhelmine (mina) Sofie Johansen Mattila 954 and Regnor Fredrik Lauritz

Wold Dahl 173

1. Rudolf Fredrik Dahl 955, Birth: 1 Jan 1876, Death: 3 Mar 1960

2. Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668, Birth: 19 Jul 1877, Death: 8 Jun 1959

Rudolf Fredrik Dahl 955 Rudolf Fredrik Dahl 955 was born on 1 Jan 1876. He died on 3 Mar 1960. He was the son

of Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Wold Dahl 173 and of Wilhelmine (mina) Sofie Johansen Mattila

954.

Children of Rudolf Fredrik Dahl 955 and Emma Kostamo 1101

1. Reidar Dahl 1117, Birth: 29 Nov 1898, Death: 8 Mar 1960

2. Ragna Dahl 1116, Birth: 1900

3. Einar Regnor Dahl 1118, Birth: 18 Aug 1911, Death: 18 Oct 1971

Spouse: Emma Kostamo 1101

Page 118: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 118 of 233

Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668 Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668 was born on 19 Jul 1877. She died on 8 Jun 1959.

She was the daughter of Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Wold Dahl 173 and of Wilhelmine (mina)

Sofie Johansen Mattila 954.

Children of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668 and Karl Fredrik Stock 1102

1. Aksel Kildal Stock 1103, Birth: 10 Dec 1895, Death: 9 Jul 1898

2. Håkon Ferdinant Stock 1104, Birth: 6 Sep 1897, Death: 30 Aug 1988

3. Margit Lovise Stock 1105, Birth: 18 Nov 1899, Death: 23 Apr 1974

4. Kasper Kristoffer Stock 1106, Birth: 18 Aug 1901, Death: 21 May 1951

5. Aksel Stock 1107, Birth: 15 Sep 1903, Death: 18 Oct 1962

6. Klara Therese Stock 1108, Birth: 9 Jun 1905, Death: 26 Feb 1987

7. Regnor Wilfred Stock 1109, Birth: 1 May 1907, Death: 27 May 1952

8. Anna Elfryda Stock 1110, Birth: 26 Nov 1909, Death: 21 Feb 1972

9. Randi Mathilde Stock 1111, Birth: 9 Jan 1912, Death: 24 Jul 1985

10. Johan Rudolf Stock 1112, Birth: 29 Sep 1913, Death: 9 Dec 1994

11. Bjarne Godtfred Stock 1113, Birth: 17 May 1915, Death: 23 Dec 1960

12. Vally Dorthea Stock 1114, Birth: 22 Mar 1917, Death: 18 Sep 2000

13. Elvira Magdalena Stock 1115, Birth: 3 Aug 1920, Death: 27 Aug 1920

Spouse: Karl Fredrik Stock 1102

Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 was born on 19 Apr 1871. He died on 19 Dec 1940. He was the son

of Stock 1561.

Reidar Dahl 1117

Reidar Dahl 1117 was born on 29 Nov 1898. He died on 8 Mar 1960. He was the son of

Rudolf Fredrik Dahl 955 and of Emma Kostamo 1101.

Ragna Dahl 1116 Ragna Dahl 1116 was born in 1900. She is the daughter of Rudolf Fredrik Dahl 955 and of

Emma Kostamo 1101.

Children of Ragna Dahl 1116 and Ove Moksnes 1119

1. Sven Moksnes 1120 Spouse: Ove Moksnes 1119

Einar Regnor Dahl 1118 Einar Regnor Dahl 1118 was born on 18 Aug 1911. He died on 18 Oct 1971. He was the son

of Rudolf Fredrik Dahl 955 and of Emma Kostamo 1101.

Children of Einar Regnor Dahl 1118 and Anny Ananiassen 1121

1. Dag Agnar Dahl 1122, Birth: 9 Jul 1947

Spouse: Anny Ananiassen 1121

Anny Ananiassen 1121 was born on 27 Feb 1918. She died on 17 Feb 2010.

Aksel Kildal Stock 1103 Aksel Kildal Stock 1103 was born on 10 Dec 1895. He died on 9 Jul 1898. He was the son

of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Page 119: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 119 of 233

Håkon Ferdinant Stock 1104 Håkon Ferdinant Stock 1104 was born on 6 Sep 1897. He died on 30 Aug 1988. He was the

son of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Margit Lovise Stock 1105 Margit Lovise Stock 1105 was born on 18 Nov 1899. She died on 23 Apr 1974. She was the

daughter of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Margit Lovise Stock 1105 and Andreas Moe 1127

1. Trygve Moe 1139 2. Alfhild Moe 1128, Birth: 1925, Death: 7 Mar 2003

3. Thoralf Moe 1132 , Birth: 12 Mar 1930

Spouse: Andreas Moe 1127

Kasper Kristoffer Stock 1106 Kasper Kristoffer Stock 1106 was born on 18 Aug 1901. He died on 21 May 1951. He was

the son of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Kasper Kristoffer Stock 1106 and Ragnhild Berg 1143

1. Karl Stock 1144, Birth: 14 Apr 1926, Death: 14 Apr 2005

2. Torbjørn Stock 1151, Birth: 14 May 1927, Death: 2 Jun 1987

3. Ragny Wenche Stock 1154, Birth: 22 May 1929

4. Åse Stock 1165, Birth: 1935, Death: 1 Nov 1993

Spouse: Ragnhild Berg 1143

Ragnhild Berg 1143 was born in 1903. She died on 23 Jan 1981.

Aksel Stock 1107 Aksel Stock 1107 was born on 15 Sep 1903. He died on 18 Oct 1962. He was the son of

Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Aksel Stock 1107 and Alfine Rushfeldt 1166

1. Hugo Stock 1167, Birth: 2 Nov 1928, Death: 13 Jan 1993

2. Torstein Stock 1184, Birth: 5 Oct 1930

3. Asbjørn Stock 1193, Birth: 31 Aug 1936

4. Odd Aksel Stock 1199, Birth: 13 Oct 1939

5. Jorunn Bergljot Stock 1205, Birth: 19 Jun 1941

Spouse: Alfine Rushfeldt 1166

Alfine Rushfeldt 1166 was born on 1 Mar 1906. She died on 1 Jun 1988.

Klara Therese Stock 1108 Klara Therese Stock 1108 was born on 9 Jun 1905. She died on 26 Feb 1987. She was the

daughter of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Klara Therese Stock 1108 and Eilert Ananiassen 1206

1. Edgar Ananiassen 1207, Birth: 24 May 1923, Death: 5 Jul 2006

2. Erling Ananiassen 1208, Birth: 11 Jun 1924, Death: 11 Jun 1924

3. Kirsten Ananiassen 1209, Birth: 27 Mar 1928, Death: 18 Jun 2009

4. Willy Ananiassen 1210, Birth: 24 Dec 1929, Death: 31 Jan 1999

Spouse: Eilert Ananiassen 1206

Eilert Ananiassen 1206 was born. He died in 1961.

Page 120: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 120 of 233

Regnor Wilfred Stock 1109 Regnor Wilfred Stock 1109 was born on 1 May 1907. He died on 27 May 1952. He was the

son of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668. He was

baptised on 29 Dec 1907.

Children of Regnor Wilfred Stock 1109 and Julie Ittelin 1222

1. Bjørn Dagfinn Stock 1223, Birth: 21 Jun 1939, Death: 18 Sep 1960

2. Agnes Kristine Stock 1224 , Birth: 8 Mar 1942

Children of Regnor Wilfred Stock 1109 and Gudrun Magdalene Andreassen 1623

1. Jan Eugen Andreassen 1628, Birth: 9 Sep 1933

Spouse 1: Julie Ittelin 1222

Julie Ittelin 1222 was born on 5 Jun 1909. She died on 6 Apr 1985. She was the daughter of

Oskar Ittelin 1626 and of Emma Kristine Mietinen 1627.

Spouse 2: Gudrun Magdalene Andreassen 1623

She was the daughter of Johan Edvart Charles Andreassen 1624 and of Emma Ovidie Hansen

1625.

Anna Elfryda Stock 1110 Anna Elfryda Stock 1110 was born on 26 Nov 1909. She died on 21 Feb 1972. She was the

daughter of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Anna Elfryda Stock 1110 and Ingvald Rushfeldt 1229

1. Arild Rushfeldt 1230, Birth: 8 Oct 1938, Death: 10 Feb 2004

2. Bjørg Karen Rushfeldt 1234 , Birth: 18 Jan 1940, Death: 2 Jan 2007

3. Ivar Brynjulf Rushfeldt 1244, Birth: 4 Dec 1941

4. Øystein Rushfeldt 1255, Birth: 10 Nov 1947

5. Elin Solaug Rushfeldt 1260, Birth: 8 Mar 1949

Spouse: Ingvald Rushfeldt 1229

Ingvald Rushfeldt 1229 was born on 5 Nov 1908. He died on 27 May 1987.

Randi Mathilde Stock 1111 Randi Mathilde Stock 1111 was born on 9 Jan 1912. She died on 24 Jul 1985. She was the

daughter of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Randi Mathilde Stock 1111 and Magnus Johansen 1274

1. Magne Johansen 1275

2. Enid Johansen 1276 Spouse: Magnus Johansen 1274

Johan Rudolf Stock 1112 Johan Rudolf Stock 1112 was born on 29 Sep 1913. He died on 9 Dec 1994. He was the son

of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Johan Rudolf Stock 1112 and Åse Rushfeldt 1277

1. Freider Stock 1278, Birth: 13 Oct 1947

2. Ruth Stock 1279, Birth: 27 Apr 1949

3. Reidun Stock 1280, Birth: 31 Jan 1951

Spouse: Åse Rushfeldt 1277

Åse Rushfeldt 1277 was born on 19 Feb 1926. She died on 28 Apr 2009.

Page 121: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 121 of 233

Bjarne Godtfred Stock 1113 Bjarne Godtfred Stock 1113 was born on 17 May 1915. He died on 23 Dec 1960. He was

the son of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Bjarne Godtfred Stock 1113 and Magna Ananiassen 1294

1. Bjarnhild Stock 1295, Birth: 25 Apr 1940, Death: 27 Mar 2008

2. Ronald Stock 1296, Birth: 13 Jun 1944

3. Jøte Stock 1297, Birth: 23 Feb 1949, Death: 1 Aug 2001

4. Turid Stock 1298, Birth: 4 May 1952

5. Tone Stock 1299, Birth: 19 Jul 1957, Death: 24 Nov 2010

Spouse: Magna Ananiassen 1294

Magna Ananiassen 1294 was born in 1916. She died on 18 Nov 2003.

Vally Dorthea Stock 1114 Vally Dorthea Stock 1114 was born on 22 Mar 1917. She died on 18 Sep 2000. She was the

daughter of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Children of Vally Dorthea Stock 1114 and Helmer Rushfeldt 1315

1. Valter Rushfeldt 1316, Birth: 8 May 1944

2. Knut Rushfeldt 1317, Birth: 4 Apr 1947

Spouse: Helmer Rushfeldt 1315

Helmer Rushfeldt 1315 was born on 16 Feb 1914. He died on 12 Nov 1990.

Elvira Magdalena Stock 1115 Elvira Magdalena Stock 1115 was born on 3 Aug 1920. She died on 27 Aug 1920. She was

the daughter of Karl Fredrik Stock 1102 and of Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter Dahl 668.

Sven Moksnes 1120 He was the son of Ove Moksnes 1119 and of Ragna Dahl 1116.

Dag Agnar Dahl 1122 Dag Agnar Dahl 1122 was born on 9 Jul 1947. He is the son of Einar Regnor Dahl 1118 and

of Anny Ananiassen 1121.

Children of Dag Agnar Dahl 1122 and Britt Mathisen 1123

1. Jan Einar Dahl 1125 2. Ann Karin Dahl 343, Birth: 8 Jul 1970

Spouse: Britt Mathisen 1123

Trygve Moe 1139 He was the son of Andreas Moe 1127 and of Margit Lovise Stock 1105.

Children of Trygve Moe 1139 and Milla Ongamo 1140

1. Margot Moe 1141

2. Svein Moe 1142 Spouse: Milla Ongamo 1140

Alfhild Moe 1128 Alfhild Moe 1128 was born in 1925. She died on 7 Mar 2003. She was the daughter of

Andreas Moe 1127 and of Margit Lovise Stock 1105.

Page 122: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 122 of 233

Children of Alfhild Moe 1128 and Nils Fredrik Jørgensen 1129

1. Jørgen Jørgensen 1130

2. Stein Jørgensen 1131 Spouse: Nils Fredrik Jørgensen 1129

Thoralf Moe 1132 Thoralf Moe 1132 was born on 12 Mar 1930. He is the son of Andreas Moe 1127 and of

Margit Lovise Stock 1105.

Children of Thoralf Moe 1132 and Hilma Vartiainen 1133

1. Bjørn Moe 1134

2. Birger Moe 1135

3. Berit Moe 1136

4. Andreas Moe 1137 Spouse 1: Hilma Vartiainen 1133

Spouse 2: Kari Sunquist 1138

Karl Stock 1144 Karl Stock 1144 was born on 14 Apr 1926. He died on 14 Apr 2005. He was the son of

Kasper Kristoffer Stock 1106 and of Ragnhild Berg 1143.

Children of Karl Stock 1144 and Gerd Nilsen 1145

1. Lisbeth Stock 1146, Birth: 2 Feb 1958

2. Kjell Roger Stock 1148, Birth: 24 Mar 1965

Spouse: Gerd Nilsen 1145

Gerd Nilsen 1145 was born in Fauske on 3 Nov 1936.

Torbjørn Stock 1151 Torbjørn Stock 1151 was born on 14 May 1927. He died on 2 Jun 1987. He was the son of

Kasper Kristoffer Stock 1106 and of Ragnhild Berg 1143.

Children of Torbjørn Stock 1151 and Ingrid Hansen 1152

1. Steinar Stock 1153 Spouse: Ingrid Hansen 1152

Ingrid Hansen 1152 was born on 5 May 1927. She died on 24 Jun 2001.

Ragny Wenche Stock 1154 Ragny Wenche Stock 1154 was born on 22 May 1929. She is the daughter of Kasper

Kristoffer Stock 1106 and of Ragnhild Berg 1143.

Children of Ragny Wenche Stock 1154 and Paul Istad 1155

1. Terje Istad 1156, Birth: 31 Aug 1958

2. Roy Martin Istad 1160, Birth: 7 Sep 1960

3. Liv Ragnhild Istad 1164, Birth: 20 Nov 1965

Spouse: Paul Istad 1155

Paul Istad 1155 was born on 4 Jan 1929.

Åse Stock 1165 Åse Stock 1165 was born in 1935. She died on 1 Nov 1993. She was the daughter of Kasper

Kristoffer Stock 1106 and of Ragnhild Berg 1143.

Page 123: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 123 of 233

Hugo Stock 1167 Hugo Stock 1167 was born on 2 Nov 1928. He died on 13 Jan 1993. He was the son of

Aksel Stock 1107 and of Alfine Rushfeldt 1166.

Children of Hugo Stock 1167 and Oddrun Fallstad 1168

1. Rønnaug Stock 1169, Birth: 21 Jul 1951

2. Jan Arne Stock 1173, Birth: 26 Apr 1953

3. Ellinor Stock 1176, Birth: 4 Nov 1955

4. Rune Stock 1181, Birth: 30 Aug 1960

5. Vigdis Stock 1182, Birth: 16 Mar 1963

6. Oddrun Elisabeth Stock 1183, Birth: 19 Mar 1967

Spouse: Oddrun Fallstad 1168

Oddrun Fallstad 1168 was born on 20 Jul 1932.

Torstein Stock 1184 Torstein Stock 1184 was born on 5 Oct 1930. He is the son of Aksel Stock 1107 and of

Alfine Rushfeldt 1166.

Children of Torstein Stock 1184 and Gerd Pettersen 1185

1. Liss Inger Stock 1186, Birth: 26 Jul 1952

2. Geir Tore Stock 1190, Birth: 22 Jul 1956

3. Finn Roar Stock 1191, Birth: 13 Nov 1960

4. Siv Trude Stock 1192, Birth: 28 Aug 1963, Death: 1 Mar 2008

Spouse: Gerd Pettersen 1185

Gerd Pettersen 1185 was born on 19 Sep 1930.

Asbjørn Stock 1193 Asbjørn Stock 1193 was born on 31 Aug 1936. He is the son of Aksel Stock 1107 and of

Alfine Rushfeldt 1166.

Children of Asbjørn Stock 1193 and Ragnhild Hustadnes 1194

1. Anne Rigmor Stock 1195, Birth: 26 Oct 1960

2. Beate Stock 1196, Birth: 9 May 1962

3. Aksel Johan Stock 1198, Birth: 24 Jan 1965, Death: 15 Jun 2000

Spouse: Ragnhild Hustadnes 1194

Ragnhild Hustadnes 1194 was born on 20 Oct 1934. She died on 17 Mar 2008.

Odd Aksel Stock 1199 1254 Odd Aksel Stock 1199 was born on 13 Oct 1939. He is the son of Aksel Stock 1107 and of

Alfine Rushfeldt 1166.

Children of Odd Aksel Stock 1199 and Agnes Kristiansen 1200

1. Karl Aksel Stock 1201, Birth: 17 Oct 1967

2. Øyvind Stock 1202, Birth: 9 Jan 1969, Death: 10 Jan 1969

3. Tore Stock 1203, Birth: 25 Feb 1972

4. Helene Lovise Stock 1204, Birth: 27 Mar 1974

Spouse: Agnes Kristiansen 1200

Agnes Kristiansen 1200 was born on 17 Apr 1935.

Page 124: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 124 of 233

Jorunn Bergljot Stock 1205 Jorunn Bergljot Stock 1205 was born on 19 Jun 1941. She is the daughter of Aksel Stock

1107 and of Alfine Rushfeldt 1166.

Edgar Ananiassen 1207 Edgar Ananiassen 1207 was born on 24 May 1923. He died on 5 Jul 2006. He was the son

of Eilert Ananiassen 1206 and of Klara Therese Stock 1108.

Erling Ananiassen 1208 Erling Ananiassen 1208 was born on 11 Jun 1924. He died on 11 Jun 1924. He was the son

of Eilert Ananiassen 1206 and of Klara Therese Stock 1108.

Kirsten Ananiassen 1209 Kirsten Ananiassen 1209 was born on 27 Mar 1928. She died on 18 Jun 2009. She was the

daughter of Eilert Ananiassen 1206 and of Klara Therese Stock 1108.

Children of Kirsten Ananiassen 1209 and Trygve Pleym 1211

1. Torgeir Pleym 1212

2. Arnfinn Pleym 1213

3. Nancy Pleym 1214

4. Bente Pleym 1215 Spouse: Trygve Pleym 1211

Trygve Pleym 1211 was born on 19 Jan 1920. He died on 24 Jan 2001.

Willy Ananiassen 1210 Willy Ananiassen 1210 was born on 24 Dec 1929. He died on 31 Jan 1999. He was the son

of Eilert Ananiassen 1206 and of Klara Therese Stock 1108.

Children of Willy Ananiassen 1210 and Harriet Larsen 1216

1. Vilgunn Ananiassen 1217

2. Ronny Ananiassen 1218

3. Arnhild Ananiassen 1219

4. Tommy Ananiassen 1220

5. Lill Eirin Ananiassen 1221 Spouse: Harriet Larsen 1216

Harriet Larsen 1216 was born. She died on 1 Sep 1993.

Bjørn Dagfinn Stock 1223 Bjørn Dagfinn Stock 1223 was born on 21 Jun 1939. He died on 18 Sep 1960. He was the

son of Regnor Wilfred Stock 1109 and of Julie Ittelin 1222.

Agnes Kristine Stock 1224 Agnes Kristine Stock 1224 was born on 8 Mar 1942. She is the daughter of Regnor Wilfred

Stock 1109 and of Julie Ittelin 1222.

Children of Agnes Kristine Stock 1224 and Arne Oskar Stenby 1225

1. Bjørn Harald Stenby 1226, Birth: 23 Sep 1965

2. Ørjan Stenby 1227, Birth: 17 Jun 1969

3. Arvid Regnor Stenby 1228, Birth: 14 Nov 1972

Page 125: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 125 of 233

Spouse: Arne Oskar Stenby 1225

Arne Oskar Stenby 1225 was born on 14 May 1940.

Jan Eugen Andreassen 1628 Jan Eugen Andreassen 1628 was born on 9 Sep 1933. He is the son of Regnor Wilfred Stock

1109 and of Gudrun Magdalene Andreassen 1623. He was Confirmed on 24 Oct 1948.

Children of Jan Eugen Andreassen 1628 and Gerd Lillian Davidsen 1629

1. Sissel Andreassen 1632, Birth: 18 Apr 1962

2. Peer Andreassen 1633, Birth: 31 Aug 1965

Spouse: Gerd Lillian Davidsen 1629

Gerd Lillian Davidsen 1629 was born on 11 Mar 1940. She is the daughter of Alf Thorvald

Davidsen Davidsen 1630 and of Dagny Signora Rautio 1631.

Arild Rushfeldt 1230 Arild Rushfeldt 1230 was born on 8 Oct 1938. He died on 10 Feb 2004. He was the son of

Ingvald Rushfeldt 1229 and of Anna Elfryda Stock 1110.

Children of Arild Rushfeldt 1230 and Eva Stav 1231

1. Trine Rushfeldt 1232, Birth: 8 May 1972

2. Ståle Rushfeldt 1233, Birth: 23 May 1973

Spouse: Eva Stav 1231

Eva Stav 1231 was born on 5 Dec 1934.

Bjørg Karen Rushfeldt 1234 Bjørg Karen Rushfeldt 1234 was born on 18 Jan 1940. She died on 2 Jan 2007. She was the

daughter of Ingvald Rushfeldt 1229 and of Anna Elfryda Stock 1110.

Children of Bjørg Karen Rushfeldt 1234 and Roald Betsi 1235

1. John Ingvald Betsi 1236, Birth: 24 Jun 1964

2. Jens Roald Betsi 1240, Birth: 11 May 1966

3. Anja Betsi 1241 Birth: 17 Mar 1970

Spouse: Roald Betsi 1235

Roald Betsi 1235 was born on 5 Oct 1930. He died on 10 Mar 2008.

Ivar Brynjulf Rushfeldt 1244Ivar Brynjulf Rushfeldt 1244 was born on 4 Dec 1941. He is

the daughter of Ingvald Rushfeldt 1229 and of Anna Elfryda Stock 1110.

Children of Ivar Brynjulf Rushfeldt 1244 and Anna Mathisen 1245

1. Lillian Rushfeldt 1246, Birth: 1 Oct 1967

2. Jonar Andreas Rushfeldt 1247, Birth: 20 Nov 1968

3. Håkon Rushfeldt 1248, Birth: 29 Aug 1971, Death: 27 Nov 1991

4. Ørjan Rushfeldt 1249, Birth: 7 Jul 1977

Spouse: Anna Mathisen 1245

Anna Mathisen 1245 was born on 21 Feb 1938. She died on 10 Mar 1993.

Øystein Rushfeldt 1255 Øystein Rushfeldt 1255 was born on 10 Nov 1947. He is the son of Ingvald Rushfeldt 1229

and of Anna Elfryda Stock 1110.

Children of Øystein Rushfeldt 1255 and Marianne Balto 1256

Page 126: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 126 of 233

1. Mette Rushfeldt 1257, Birth: 7 Jan 1970

2. Ann Irene Rushfeldt 1258, Birth: 25 Nov 1972

3. Stein Torbjørn Rushfeldt 1259, Birth: 19 Mar 1974

Spouse: Marianne Balto 1256

Marianne Balto 1256 was born on 7 Aug 1946.

Elin Solaug Rushfeldt 1260 Elin Solaug Rushfeldt 1260 was born on 8 Mar 1949. She is the daughter of Ingvald

Rushfeldt 1229 and of Anna Elfryda Stock 1110.

Children of Elin Solaug Rushfeldt 1260 and Roald Grongstad 1265

1. Anne Petra Grongstad 1268 2. Line Kristine Grongstad 1266, Birth: 10 Feb 1973

3. Tina Grongstad 1267, Birth: 20 Jul 1975

Spouse: Roald Grongstad 1265

Roald Grongstad 1265 was born on 31 Mar 1948.

Magne Johansen 1275 He was the son of Magnus Johansen 1274 and of Randi Mathilde Stock 1111.

Enid Johansen 1276 He was the daughter of Magnus Johansen 1274 and of Randi Mathilde Stock 1111.

Freider Stock 1278 Freider Stock 1278 was born on 13 Oct 1947. He is the son of Johan Rudolf Stock 1112 and

of Åse Rushfeldt 1277.

Children of Freider Stock 1278 and Inger Hildre 1281

1. Frode Stock 1282, Birth: 3 Aug 1979

2. Kristine Stock 1283, Birth: 14 Jun 1981

3. John Reidar Stock 1284, Birth: 11 Jan 1985

Spouse: Inger Hildre 1281

Inger Hildre 1281 was born on 26 Dec 1954.

Ruth Stock 1279 Ruth Stock 1279 was born on 27 Apr 1949. She is the daughter of Johan Rudolf Stock 1112

and of Åse Rushfeldt 1277.

Children of Ruth Stock 1279 and Tormod Karlsen 1285

1. Ragna Karlsen 1286, Birth: 2 Nov 1968

2. Stein Walter Karlsen 1287, Birth: 2 Jun 1970

3. Ståle Johan Karlsen 1288, Birth: 14 Dec 1972

4. Raymond Karlsen 1289, Birth: 21 Feb 1980

Spouse: Tormod Karlsen 1285

Reidun Stock 1280 Reidun Stock 1280 was born on 31 Jan 1951. She is the daughter of Johan Rudolf Stock 1112

and of Åse Rushfeldt 1277.

Children of Reidun Stock 1280 and Rolf Tore Eidisen 1290

Page 127: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 127 of 233

1. Marit Eidisen 1293

2. Erlen Eidisen 1292 3. Anette Eidisen 1291, Birth: 26 Sep 1978

Spouse: Rolf Tore Eidisen 1290

Rolf Tore Eidisen 1290 was born on 5 May 1951.

Bjarnhild Stock 1295 Bjarnhild Stock 1295 was born on 25 Apr 1940. She died on 27 Mar 2008. She was the

daughter of Bjarne Godtfred Stock 1113 and of Magna Ananiassen 1294.

Children of Bjarnhild Stock 1295 and Rolf Sunde 1300

1. Lars Bjarne Sunde 1301, Birth: 25 Apr 1967

2. Hanne Sunde 1302, Birth: 8 Jun 1968

Spouse: Rolf Sunde 1300

Rolf Sunde 1300 was born on 13 Jul 1916.

Ronald Stock 1296 Ronald Stock 1296 was born on 13 Jun 1944. He is the son of Bjarne Godtfred Stock 1113

and of Magna Ananiassen 1294.

Children of Ronald Stock 1296 and Aina Jacobsen 1303

1. Håkon Stock 1304, Birth: 3 Feb 1970

2. Magnhild Stock 1305, Birth: 29 Dec 1974

3. Bjørn Magne Stock 1306, Birth: 4 Dec 1982

Spouse: Aina Jacobsen 1303

Aina Jacobsen 1303 was born on 21 Mar 1947.

Jøte Stock 1297 Jøte Stock 1297 was born on 23 Feb 1949. He died on 1 Aug 2001. He was the son of

Bjarne Godtfred Stock 1113 and of Magna Ananiassen 1294.

Children of Jøte Stock 1297 and Torill Bakken 1307

1. Bjarne Stock 1308, Birth: 10 Jul 1973

2. Evy Stock 1309, Birth: 10 Jan 1976

Spouse: Torill Bakken 1307

Torill Bakken 1307 was born on 10 Nov 1951.

Turid Stock 1298 Turid Stock 1298 was born on 4 May 1952. She is the daughter of Bjarne Godtfred Stock

1113 and of Magna Ananiassen 1294.

Children of Turid Stock 1298 and Fred Einar Jogert 1310

1. Rune Jogert 1311, Birth: 15 Feb 1977

2. Esben Jogert 1312, Birth: 10 Feb 1983

Spouse: Fred Einar Jogert 1310

Fred Einar Jogert 1310 was born on 15 Jun 1951.

Tone Stock 1299 Tone Stock 1299 was born on 19 Jul 1957. She died on 24 Nov 2010. She was the daughter

of Bjarne Godtfred Stock 1113 and of Magna Ananiassen 1294.

Page 128: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 128 of 233

Children of Tone Stock 1299

1. Charlotte Stock 1313, Birth: 1 Dec 1981

2. Agnes Stock 1314, Birth: 12 Sep 1994

Valter Rushfeldt 1316 Valter Rushfeldt 1316 was born on 8 May 1944. He is the son of Helmer Rushfeldt 1315 and

of Vally Dorthea Stock 1114.

Children of Valter Rushfeldt 1316 and Reidun Bohinen 1321

1. Kolbjørn Rushfeldt 1322, Birth: 2 Mar 1971

2. Sigurd Rushfeldt 1323, Birth: 10 Dec 1972

3. Bjørgun Rushfeldt 1324, Birth: 22 Mar 1976

Spouse: Reidun Bohinen 1321

Knut Rushfeldt 1317 Knut Rushfeldt 1317 was born on 4 Apr 1947. He is the son of Helmer Rushfeldt 1315 and of

Vally Dorthea Stock 1114.

Children of Knut Rushfeldt 1317 and Freidis Bendiksen 1318

1. Jostein Rushfeldt 1319, Birth: 9 May 1970

2. Halgeir Rushfeldt 1320, Birth: 31 May 1973

Spouse: Freidis Bendiksen 1318

Freidis Bendiksen 1318 was born on 25 Mar 1948.

Jan Einar Dahl 1125 He was the son of Dag Agnar Dahl 1122 and of Britt Mathisen 1123.

Ann Karin Dahl 343 Ann Karin Dahl 343 was born on 8 Jul 1970. She is the daughter of Dag Agnar Dahl 1122

and of Britt Mathisen 1123.

Children of Ann Karin Dahl 343 and Geir Olav Næss 338

1. Mathilde Næss 344, Birth: 10 Aug 1996

2. Otilie Næss 345, Birth: 4 Jun 1999

3. Elida Næss 346, Birth: 17 Feb 2001

4. Lydia Næss 347, Birth: 28 Dec 2005

Spouse: Geir Olav Næss 338

Geir Olav Næss 338 was born on 28 Aug 1967. He is the son of Jan Helge Næss 336 and of

Gunvor Margrethe Dahl 16.

Margot Moe 1141 He was the son of Trygve Moe 1139 and of Milla Ongamo 1140.

Svein Moe 1142 He was the son of Trygve Moe 1139 and of Milla Ongamo 1140.

Jørgen Jørgensen 1130 He was the son of Nils Fredrik Jørgensen 1129 and of Alfhild Moe 1128.

Page 129: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 129 of 233

Stein Jørgensen 1131 He was the son of Nils Fredrik Jørgensen 1129 and of Alfhild Moe 1128.

Bjørn Moe 1134 He was the son of Thoralf Moe 1132 and of Hilma Vartiainen 1133.

Birger Moe 1135 He was the son of Thoralf Moe 1132 and of Hilma Vartiainen 1133.

Berit Moe 1136 She was the daughter of Thoralf Moe 1132 and of Hilma Vartiainen 1133.

Andreas Moe 1137

He was the son of Thoralf Moe 1132 and of Hilma Vartiainen 1133.

Lisbeth Stock 1146 Lisbeth Stock 1146 was born on 2 Feb 1958. She is the daughter of Karl Stock 1144 and of

Gerd Nilsen 1145.

Children of Lisbeth Stock 1146

1. Sara Stock 1147, Birth: 1 Feb 1993

Kjell Roger Stock 1148 Kjell Roger Stock 1148 was born on 24 Mar 1965. He is the son of Karl Stock 1144 and of

Gerd Nilsen 1145.

Children of Kjell Roger Stock 1148 and Thorild Moxnes 1149

1. Ida Stock 1150, Birth: 20 May 1995

Spouse: Thorild Moxnes 1149 12412-1

Thorild Moxnes 1149 was born on 27 Apr 1970.

Steinar Stock 1153 He was the son of Torbjørn Stock 1151 and of Ingrid Hansen 1152.

Terje Istad 1156 Terje Istad 1156 was born on 31 Aug 1958. He is the son of Paul Istad 1155 and of Ragny

Wenche Stock 1154.

Children of Terje Istad 1156 and Anne Lise Abelstad 1157

1. Tom Andre Istad 1158, Birth: 19 Apr 1980

2. Janne Helene Istad 1159, Birth: 1 Aug 1985

Spouse: Anne Lise Abelstad 1157

Anne Lise Abelstad 1157 was born on 6 May 1958.

Roy Martin Istad 1160 Roy Martin Istad 1160 was born on 7 Sep 1960. He is the son of Paul Istad 1155 and of

Ragny Wenche Stock 1154.

Children of Roy Martin Istad 1160 and Kirsti Holdhus 1161

1. Martine Istad 1162, Birth: 17 Feb 1988

Page 130: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 130 of 233

2. Marie Istad 1163, Birth: 14 Apr 1992

Spouse: Kirsti Holdhus 1161

Kirsti Holdhus 1161 was born on 15 Jan 1961.

Liv Ragnhild Istad 1164 Liv Ragnhild Istad 1164 was born on 20 Nov 1965. She is the daughter of Paul Istad 1155

and of Ragny Wenche Stock 1154.

Rønnaug Stock 1169 Rønnaug Stock 1169 was born on 21 Jul 1951. She is the daughter of Hugo Stock 1167 and

of Oddrun Fallstad 1168.

Children of Rønnaug Stock 1169 and ? Heggebakk 1170

1. Ørjan Heggebakk 1171, Birth: 3 Apr 1973

2. Silje Heggebakk 1172, Birth: 3 Feb 1977

Spouse: ? Heggebakk 1170

Jan Arne Stock 1173 Jan Arne Stock 1173 was born on 26 Apr 1953. He is the son of Hugo Stock 1167 and of

Oddrun Fallstad 1168.

Children of Jan Arne Stock 1173 and Ann Karlsen 1174

1. Yngve Stock 1175, Birth: 3 Nov 1975

Spouse: Ann Karlsen 1174

Ellinor Stock 1176 Ellinor Stock 1176 was born on 4 Nov 1955. She is the daughter of Hugo Stock 1167 and of

Oddrun Fallstad 1168.

Children of Ellinor Stock 1176 and Bjørnar Andreassen 1177

1. Ole Andreas Andreassen 1178, Birth: 17 Dec 1974

2. Monica Andreassen 1179, Birth: 5 Apr 1978

3. Tonje Andreassen 1180, Birth: 11 Nov 1979

Spouse: Bjørnar Andreassen 1177

Rune Stock 1181 Rune Stock 1181 was born on 30 Aug 1960. He is the son of Hugo Stock 1167 and of

Oddrun Fallstad 1168.

Vigdis Stock 1182 Vigdis Stock 1182 was born on 16 Mar 1963. She is the daughter of Hugo Stock 1167 and of

Oddrun Fallstad 1168.

Oddrun Elisabeth Stock 1183 Oddrun Elisabeth Stock 1183 was born on 19 Mar 1967. She is the daughter of Hugo Stock

1167 and of Oddrun Fallstad 1168.

Liss Inger Stock 1186 Liss Inger Stock 1186 was born on 26 Jul 1952. She is the daughter of Torstein Stock 1184

Page 131: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 131 of 233

and of Gerd Pettersen 1185.

Children of Liss Inger Stock 1186 and Sverre Pedersen 1187

1. Barbro Pedersen 1188, Birth: 8 Sep 1970

2. Gry Pedersen 1189, Birth: 11 Jul 1977

Spouse: Sverre Pedersen 1187

Sverre Pedersen 1187 was born on 2 Aug 1950.

Geir Tore Stock 1190 Geir Tore Stock 1190 was born on 22 Jul 1956. He is the son of Torstein Stock 1184 and of

Gerd Pettersen 1185.

Finn Roar Stock 1191 Finn Roar Stock 1191 was born on 13 Nov 1960. He is the son of Torstein Stock 1184 and of

Gerd Pettersen 1185.

Siv Trude Stock 1192

Trude Stock 1192 was born on 28 Aug 1963. She died on 1 Mar 2008. She was the daughter

of Torstein Stock 1184 and of Gerd Pettersen 1185.

Anne Rigmor Stock 1195

Anne Rigmor Stock 1195 was born on 26 Oct 1960. She is the daughter of Asbjørn Stock

1193 and of Ragnhild Hustadnes 1194.

Beate Stock 1196 Beate Stock 1196 was born on 9 May 1962. She is the daughter of Asbjørn Stock 1193 and of

Ragnhild Hustadnes 1194.

Children of Beate Stock 1196

1. Elisabeth Stock 1197, Birth: 12 May 1981, Death: 22 Nov 2003

Aksel Johan Stock 1198 Aksel Johan Stock 1198 was born on 24 Jan 1965. He died on 15 Jun 2000. He was the son

of Asbjørn Stock 1193 and of Ragnhild Hustadnes 1194.

Children of Aksel Johan Stock 1198 and Britt Eva Hansen 1738

1. Daniel Stock 1739, Birth: 16 Sep 1992

2. Marcus Stock 1740, Birth: 11 Mar 1995

Spouse: Britt Eva Hansen 1738

Karl Aksel Stock 1201 Karl Aksel Stock 1201 was born on 17 Oct 1967. He is the son of Odd Aksel Stock 1199 and

of Agnes Kristiansen 1200.

Øyvind Stock 1202 Øyvind Stock 1202 was born on 9 Jan 1969. He died on 10 Jan 1969. He was the son of

Odd Aksel Stock 1199 and of Agnes Kristiansen 1200.

Page 132: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 132 of 233

Tore Stock 1203 Tore Stock 1203 was born on 25 Feb 1972. He is the son of Odd Aksel Stock 1199 and of

Agnes Kristiansen 1200.

Helene Lovise Stock 1204 Helene Lovise Stock 1204 was born on 27 Mar 1974. She is the daughter of Odd Aksel Stock

1199 and of Agnes Kristiansen 1200.

Torgeir Pleym 1212 He was the son of Trygve Pleym 1211 and of Kirsten Ananiassen 1209.

Arnfinn Pleym 1213 He was the son of Trygve Pleym 1211 and of Kirsten Ananiassen 1209.

Nancy Pleym 1214 He was the son of Trygve Pleym 1211 and of Kirsten Ananiassen 1209.

Bente Pleym 1215 He was the son of Trygve Pleym 1211 and of Kirsten Ananiassen 1209.

Vilgunn Ananiassen 1217 He was the son of Willy Ananiassen 1210 and of Harriet Larsen 1216.

Ronny Ananiassen 1218 He was the son of Willy Ananiassen 1210 and of Harriet Larsen 1216.

Arnhild Ananiassen 1219 12643 He was the son of Willy Ananiassen 1210 and of Harriet Larsen 1216.

Tommy Ananiassen 1220 He was the son of Willy Ananiassen 1210 and of Harriet Larsen 1216.

Lill Eirin Ananiassen 1221 He was the son of Willy Ananiassen 1210 and of Harriet Larsen 1216.

Bjørn Harald Stenby 1226 Bjørn Harald Stenby 1226 was born on 23 Sep 1965. He is the son of Arne Oskar Stenby

1225 and of Agnes Kristine Stock 1224.

Ørjan Stenby 1227 Ørjan Stenby 1227 was born on 17 Jun 1969. He is the son of Arne Oskar Stenby 1225 and of

Agnes Kristine Stock 1224.

Arvid Regnor Stenby 1228 Arvid Regnor Stenby 1228 was born on 14 Nov 1972. He is the son of Arne Oskar Stenby

1225 and of Agnes Kristine Stock 1224.

Page 133: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 133 of 233

Sissel Andreassen 1632 Sissel Andreassen 1632 was born on 18 Apr 1962. She is the daughter of Jan Eugen

Andreassen 1628 and of Gerd Lillian Davidsen 1629. She was Christened on 8 Jul 1962.

Children of Sissel Andreassen 1632 and Jan Ove Ulvestad 1634

1. Jeanette Ulvestad 1637, Birth: 24 Dec 1984

2. Andrè Ulvestad 1638, Birth: 27 May 1988

3. Madeleine Ulvestad 1639, Birth: 23 Mar 1990

Spouse: Jan Ove Ulvestad 1634

He was the son of Ola Ulvestad Ulvestad 1635 and of Sonja Helene Helmersen 1636.

Peer Andreassen 1633 Peer Andreassen 1633 was born on 31 Aug 1965. He is the son of Jan Eugen Andreassen

1628 and of Gerd Lillian Davidsen 1629. He was baptised on 25 Dec 1965. He was

Confirmed on 11 May 1980.

Children of Peer Andreassen 1633 and Ann - Christin Aune 1640

1. Patrick Aune Andreassen 1643, Birth: 19 Nov 1991

Children of Peer Andreassen 1633 and Trude Sørensen 1644

1. Emilie Hov Andreassen 1647, Birth: in Drammen, 26 Apr 2000

Spouse 1: Ann - Christin Aune 1640

She is the daughter of Arnulf Aune 1641 and of Sigrun Hegge 1642.

Spouse 2: Trude Sørensen 1644

She is the daughter of Freddy Sørensen 1645 and of Sylvia Hov 1646.

Trine Rushfeldt 1232 Trine Rushfeldt 1232 was born on 8 May 1972. She is the daughter of Arild Rushfeldt 1230

and of Eva Stav 1231.

Ståle Rushfeldt 1233 Ståle Rushfeldt 1233 was born on 23 May 1973. He is the son of Arild Rushfeldt 1230 and of

Eva Stav 1231.

John Ingvald Betsi 1236 John Ingvald Betsi 1236 was born on 24 Jun 1964. He is the son of Roald Betsi 1235 and of

Bjørg Karen Rushfeldt 1234.

Children of John Ingvald Betsi 1236 and Gerd Hammari 1237

1. Hanne Betsi 1238, Birth: 10 Sep 1990

2. Benedikte Betsi 1239, Birth: 6 Jul 1994

Spouse: Gerd Hammari 1237

Gerd Hammari 1237 was born in Alta on 14 Jul 1965.

Jens Roald Betsi 1240 Jens Roald Betsi 1240 was born on 11 May 1966. He is the son of Roald Betsi 1235 and of

Bjørg Karen Rushfeldt 1234.

Anja Betsi 1241 Anja Betsi 1241 was born on 17 Mar 1970. She is the daughter of Roald Betsi 1235 and of

Page 134: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 134 of 233

Bjørg Karen Rushfeldt 1234.

Children of Anja Betsi 1241 and Pål Ivan Trentief 1242

1. Nicolai Trentief 1243, Birth: 1997

Spouse: Pål Ivan Trentief 1242

Lillian Rushfeldt 1246 Lillian Rushfeldt 1246 was born on 1 Oct 1967. She is the daughter of Ivar Brynjulf

Rushfeldt 1244 and of Anna Mathisen 1245.

Children of Lillian Rushfeldt 1246

1. Elise Rushfeldt 1250, Birth: 7 Dec 1989

2. Johne Rushfeldt 1251, Birth: 1 Nov 2004

Jonar Andreas Rushfeldt 1247 Jonar Andreas Rushfeldt 1247 was born on 20 Nov 1968. He is the son of Ivar Brynjulf

Rushfeldt 1244 and of Anna Mathisen 1245.

Children of Jonar Andreas Rushfeldt 1247 and Marit Slungård 1252

1. Andreas Rushfeldt 1253, Birth: 8 Mar 1991

2. Markus Rushfeldt 1254, Birth: 4 Mar 1994

Spouse: Marit Slungård 1252

Marit Slungård 1252 was born on 15 Oct 1969.

Håkon Rushfeldt 1248 Håkon Rushfeldt 1248 was born on 29 Aug 1971. He died on 27 Nov 1991. He was the son

of Ivar Brynjulf Rushfeldt 1244 and of Anna Mathisen 1245.

Ørjan Rushfeldt 1249 Ørjan Rushfeldt 1249 was born on 7 Jul 1977. He is the son of Ivar Brynjulf Rushfeldt 1244

and of Anna Mathisen 1245.

Mette Rushfeldt 1257 Mette Rushfeldt 1257 was born on 7 Jan 1970. She is the daughter of Øystein Rushfeldt 1255

and of Marianne Balto 1256.

Children of Mette Rushfeldt 1257 and Finn Sagen 1261

1. Sara Irene Sagen 1262, Birth: 23 Mar 1996

Spouse: Finn Sagen 1261

Ann Irene Rushfeldt 1258 Ann Irene Rushfeldt 1258 was born on 25 Nov 1972. She is the daughter of Øystein

Rushfeldt 1255 and of Marianne Balto 1256.

Stein Torbjørn Rushfeldt 1259 Stein Torbjørn Rushfeldt 1259 was born on 19 Mar 1974. He is the son of Øystein Rushfeldt

1255 and of Marianne Balto 1256.

Children of Stein Torbjørn Rushfeldt 1259 and Maud Persen 1263

1. Torbjørn Mikael Rushfeldt 1264, Birth: 5 Jul 1997

Spouse: Maud Persen 1263

Page 135: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 135 of 233

Anne Petra Grongstad 1268 She was the daughter of Roald Grongstad 1265 and of Elin Solaug Rushfeldt 1260.

Line Kristine Grongstad 1266 Line Kristine Grongstad 1266 was born on 10 Feb 1973. She is the daughter of Roald

Grongstad 1265 and of Elin Solaug Rushfeldt 1260.

Tina Grongstad 1267 Tina Grongstad 1267 was born on 20 Jul 1975. She is the daughter of Roald Grongstad 1265

and of Elin Solaug Rushfeldt 1260.

Frode Stock 1282 Frode Stock 1282 was born on 3 Aug 1979. He is the son of Freider Stock 1278 and of Inger

Hildre 1281.

Kristine Stock 1283 Kristine Stock 1283 was born on 14 Jun 1981. She is the daughter of Freider Stock 1278 and

of Inger Hildre 1281.

John Reidar Stock 1284 John Reidar Stock 1284 was born on 11 Jan 1985. He is the son of Freider Stock 1278 and of

Inger Hildre 1281.

Ragna Karlsen 1286 Ragna Karlsen 1286 was born on 2 Nov 1968. She is the daughter of Tormod Karlsen 1285

and of Ruth Stock 1279.

Stein Walter Karlsen 1287 Stein Walter Karlsen 1287 was born on 2 Jun 1970. He is the son of Tormod Karlsen 1285

and of Ruth Stock 1279.

Ståle Johan Karlsen 1288 Ståle Johan Karlsen 1288 was born on 14 Dec 1972. He is the son of Tormod Karlsen 1285

and of Ruth Stock 1279.

Raymond Karlsen 1289 Raymond Karlsen 1289 was born on 21 Feb 1980. He is the son of Tormod Karlsen 1285 and

of Ruth Stock 1279.

Marit Eidisen 1293 She was the daughter of Rolf Tore Eidisen 1290 and of Reidun Stock 1280.

Erlen Eidisen 1292 He was the son of Rolf Tore Eidisen 1290 and of Reidun Stock 1280.

Page 136: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 136 of 233

Anette Eidisen 1291 Anette Eidisen 1291 was born on 26 Sep 1978. She is the daughter of Rolf Tore Eidisen 1290

and of Reidun Stock 1280.

Lars Bjarne Sunde 1301 Lars Bjarne Sunde 1301 was born on 25 Apr 1967. He is the son of Rolf Sunde 1300 and of

Bjarnhild Stock 1295.

Hanne Sunde 1302 Hanne Sunde 1302 was born on 8 Jun 1968. She is the daughter of Rolf Sunde 1300 and of

Bjarnhild Stock 1295.

Håkon Stock 1304 Håkon Stock 1304 was born on 3 Feb 1970. He is the son of Ronald Stock 1296 and of Aina

Jacobsen 1303.

Magnhild Stock 1305 Magnhild Stock 1305 was born on 29 Dec 1974. She is the daughter of Ronald Stock 1296

and of Aina Jacobsen 1303.

Bjørn Magne Stock 1306 Bjørn Magne Stock 1306 was born on 4 Dec 1982. He is the son of Ronald Stock 1296 and of

Aina Jacobsen 1303.

Bjarne Stock 1308 Bjarne Stock 1308 was born on 10 Jul 1973. He is the son of Jøte Stock 1297 and of Torill

Bakken 1307.

Evy Stock 1309 Evy Stock 1309 was born on 10 Jan 1976. She is the daughter of Jøte Stock 1297 and of

Torill Bakken 1307.

Rune Jogert 1311 Rune Jogert 1311 was born on 15 Feb 1977. He is the son of Fred Einar Jogert 1310 and of

Turid Stock 1298.

Esben Jogert 1312 Esben Jogert 1312 was born on 10 Feb 1983. He is the son of Fred Einar Jogert 1310 and of

Turid Stock 1298.

Charlotte Stock 1313 Charlotte Stock 1313 was born on 1 Dec 1981. She is the daughter of Tone Stock 1299.

Agnes Stock 1314 Agnes Stock 1314 was born on 12 Sep 1994. She is the daughter of Tone Stock 1299.

Page 137: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 137 of 233

Kolbjørn Rushfeldt 1322 Kolbjørn Rushfeldt 1322 was born on 2 Mar 1971. He is the son of Valter Rushfeldt 1316

and of Reidun Bohinen 1321.

Sigurd Rushfeldt 1323 Sigurd Rushfeldt 1323 was born on 10 Dec 1972. He is the son of Valter Rushfeldt 1316 and

of Reidun Bohinen 1321.

Bjørgun Rushfeldt 1324 Bjørgun Rushfeldt 1324 was born on 22 Mar 1976. She is the daughter of Valter Rushfeldt

1316 and of Reidun Bohinen 1321.

Jostein Rushfeldt 1319 Jostein Rushfeldt 1319 was born on 9 May 1970. He is the son of Knut Rushfeldt 1317 and of

Freidis Bendiksen 1318.

Halgeir Rushfeldt 1320 Halgeir Rushfeldt 1320 was born on 31 May 1973. He is the son of Knut Rushfeldt 1317 and

of Freidis Bendiksen 1318.

Mathilde Næss 344 Mathilde Næss 344 was born on 10 Aug 1996. She is the daughter of Geir Olav Næss 338

and of Ann Karin Dahl 343.

Otilie Næss 345 Otilie Næss 345 was born on 4 Jun 1999. She is the daughter of Geir Olav Næss 338 and of

Ann Karin Dahl 343.

Elida Næss 346 Elida Næss 346 was born on 17 Feb 2001. She is the daughter of Geir Olav Næss 338 and of

Ann Karin Dahl 343.

Lydia Næss 347 Lydia Næss 347 was born on 28 Dec 2005. She is the daughter of Geir Olav Næss 338 and of

Ann Karin Dahl 343.

Sara Stock 1147 Sara Stock 1147 was born on 1 Feb 1993. She is the daughter of Lisbeth Stock 1146.

Ida Stock 1150 Ida Stock 1150 was born on 20 May 1995. She is the daughter of Kjell Roger Stock 1148 and

of Thorild Moxnes 1149.

Tom Andre Istad 1158 Tom Andre Istad 1158 was born on 19 Apr 1980. He is the son of Terje Istad 1156 and of

Anne Lise Abelstad 1157.

Page 138: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 138 of 233

Janne Helene Istad 1159 Janne Helene Istad 1159 was born on 1 Aug 1985. She is the son of Terje Istad 1156 and of

Anne Lise Abelstad 1157.

Martine Istad 1162 Martine Istad 1162 was born on 17 Feb 1988. She is the daughter of Roy Martin Istad 1160

and of Kirsti Holdhus 1161.

Marie Istad 1163 Marie Istad 1163 was born on 14 Apr 1992. She is the daughter of Roy Martin Istad 1160 and

of Kirsti Holdhus 1161.

Ørjan Heggebakk 1171 Ørjan Heggebakk 1171 was born on 3 Apr 1973. He is the son of ? Heggebakk 1170 and of

Rønnaug Stock 1169.

Silje Heggebakk 1172 Silje Heggebakk 1172 was born on 3 Feb 1977. She is the daughter of ?? Heggebakk 1170

and of Rønnaug Stock 1169.

Yngve Stock 1175 Yngve Stock 1175 was born on 3 Nov 1975. He is the son of Jan Arne Stock 1173 and of

Ann Karlsen 1174.

Ole Andreas Andreassen 1178 Ole Andreas Andreassen 1178 was born on 17 Dec 1974. He is the son of Bjørnar

Andreassen 1177 and of Ellinor Stock 1176.

Monica Andreassen 1179 Monica Andreassen 1179 was born on 5 Apr 1978. She is the daughter of Bjørnar

Andreassen 1177 and of Ellinor Stock 1176.

Tonje Andreassen 1180 Tonje Andreassen 1180 was born on 11 Nov 1979. She is the daughter of Bjørnar Andreassen

1177 and of Ellinor Stock 1176.

Barbro Pedersen 1188 Barbro Pedersen 1188 was born on 8 Sep 1970. She is the daughter of Sverre Pedersen 1187

and of Liss Inger Stock 1186.

Gry Pedersen 1189 Gry Pedersen 1189 was born on 11 Jul 1977. She is the daughter of Sverre Pedersen 1187

and of Liss Inger Stock 1186.

Page 139: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 139 of 233

Elisabeth Stock 1197 Elisabeth Stock 1197 was born on 12 May 1981. She died on 22 Nov 2003. She was the

daughter of and of Beate Stock 1196.

Daniel Stock 1739 Daniel Stock 1739 was born on 16 Sep 1992. He is the son of Aksel Johan Stock 1198 and of

Britt Eva Hansen 1738.

Marcus Stock 1740

Marcus Stock 1740 was born on 11 Mar 1995. He is the son of Aksel Johan Stock 1198 and

of Britt Eva Hansen 1738.

Jeanette Ulvestad 1637 Jeanette Ulvestad 1637 was born on 24 Dec 1984. She is the daughter of Jan Ove Ulvestad

1634 and of Sissel Andreassen 1632. She was baptised on 31 Mar 1985. She was Confirmed

on 9 May 1999.

Andrè Ulvestad 1638 Andrè Ulvestad 1638 was born on 27 May 1988. He is the son of Jan Ove Ulvestad 1634 and

of Sissel Andreassen 1632.

Madeleine Ulvestad 1639 Madeleine Ulvestad 1639 was born on 23 Mar 1990. She is the daughter of Jan Ove Ulvestad

1634 and of Sissel Andreassen 1632.

Patrick Aune Andreassen 1643 Patrick Aune Andreassen 1643 was born on 19 Nov 1991. He is the son of Peer Andreassen

1633 and of Ann - Christin Aune 1640.

Emilie Hov Andreassen 1647 Emilie Hov Andreassen 1647 was born in Drammen on 26 Apr 2000. She is the daughter of

Peer Andreassen 1633 and of Trude Sørensen 1644.

Hanne Betsi 1238 Hanne Betsi 1238 was born on 10 Sep 1990. She is the daughter of John Ingvald Betsi 1236

and of Gerd Hammari 1237.

Benedikte Betsi 1239 Benedikte Betsi 1239 was born on 6 Jul 1994. She is the daughter of John Ingvald Betsi 1236

and of Gerd Hammari 1237.

Nicolai Trentief 1243 Nicolai Trentief 1243 was born in 1997. He is the son of Pål Ivan Trentief 1242 and of Anja

Betsi 1241.

Page 140: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 140 of 233

Elise Rushfeldt 1250 Elise Rushfeldt 1250 was born on 7 Dec 1989. She is the daughter of Lillian Rushfeldt 1246.

Johne Rushfeldt 1251 Johne Rushfeldt 1251 was born on 1 Nov 2004. She is the daughter of Lillian Rushfeldt

1246.

Andreas Rushfeldt 1253 Andreas Rushfeldt 1253 was born on 8 Mar 1991. He is the son of Jonar Andreas Rushfeldt

1247 and of Marit Slungård 1252.

Markus Rushfeldt 1254 Markus Rushfeldt 1254 was born on 4 Mar 1994. He is the son of Jonar Andreas Rushfeldt

1247 and of Marit Slungård 1252.

Sara Irene Sagen 1262 Sara Irene Sagen 1262 was born on 23 Mar 1996. She is the daughter of Finn Sagen 1261 and

of Mette Rushfeldt 1257.

Torbjørn Mikael Rushfeldt 1264 Torbjørn Mikael Rushfeldt 1264 was born on 5 Jul 1997. He is the son of Stein Torbjørn

Rushfeldt 1259 and of Maud Persen 1263.

4.9.2 Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl173 and Marie Lindeberg249

Marie was born in 1845 and she was married to Regnor in 1877, at the time Regnor bought and

moved to the fishing village “Langenes” in Vesteraalen. Marie emigrated to the USA together

with Regnor and their six months old daughter, Ragna956, in August 1881. They settled in

Calumet, Michigan, where they had additionally three children. Marie and all four children died

by typhoid during first half of 1889.

Page 141: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 141 of 233

4.9.3 Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl173 and Martha Andrea Tidemand952

Ole Hansen Dahl,b1770, d. 1839Elen Martha Wold, 1774-1855

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ba

ard

Nic

ola

i Da

hl, 1

83

6-1

86

3

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig, 1

82

7-

He

rma

n R

ich

ard

Klæ

bo

e D

ah

l,

18

31-1

90

9

(i)Viv

ikke

Elis

ab

eth

Ma

rku

sse

n, 1

83

0

(ii)Re

gin

a O

lse

n B

øe

,18

51

-

19

25

Re

be

cca

Ma

thild

e D

ah

l, 18

38

-

No

t ma

rried

Jo

ha

n M

are

niu

s R

asch

Da

hl,

18

40

-94

(i) An

dre

a E

rikka

Esb

en

se

n,

18

39

-18

Olu

f Ed

va

rd D

ah

l,18

29

-57

Re

gin

e N

atv

ig,1

83

2-

Nic

ola

i Da

hl,d

ied

as a

ch

ild

Ma

thild

e S

usa

nn

e D

ah

l,18

42-

10

Nie

ls A

nto

n H

an

se

n A

all,1

83

3-

96

Ca

rl An

tho

n R

ein

er D

ah

l,18

45-

89

Ju

lie S

op

hie

Sch

an

ke

,18

46-

Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Dahl, 1849-32

(i)Wilhelmina Sofie Johansen Mattila,

(ii) Marie Lindeberg, 1845-1889

(iii)Martha Andrea Tidemand,1862-1949A

nn

a N

ico

line

Da

hl,1

83

4-1

85

8

Mic

ha

el J

uliu

s H

øye

m

Mic

ha

els

en

18

21

-19

01(iii)

Sigrid Marie Dahl, 1894-1992

Victor Larsen, 1892-1948

Ragnor Dahl, 1893-1980

Lottie,1907-

Sheldon Tiedemand Dahl,

1900-1973

Dorothy Mae Pratt, 1901-1991

Frederick Allen Dahl, 1928

(i)Dixie Anne Livingston, 1934-1985

(ii)Patricia Ellen Grisco, 1938

David Jay Dahl, 1931

Annabelle Lee Horchitz, 1933

Steven Phillip Dahl, 1951

Laura Ann Fitch, 1960

Tamara Louanne Dahl,

1959

Mark Andrew Kallen,

1960

Ga

brie

l Fitc

h D

ah

l, 19

88

Ad

rian

Ph

illip D

ah

l, 19

88

An

na

Ro

se

Da

hl, 1

99

4

Me

ga

n C

hris

tine

Ka

llen

, 19

89

Ric

k J

am

es K

alle

n, 1

99

3

Ke

nn

eth

Nic

ola

s K

alle

n, 1

98

7

James Michael Dahl,

1956

Mary Colmar, 1956

Susan Lee Dahl,

1958

William Cohn

Gregory Sheldon

Dahl, 1959

Janet Elizabeth

Dahl, 1961

Grant

Wilcox,1954

Mic

ha

el D

ah

l, 19

95

Ch

risto

ph

er D

ah

l, 19

97

Ca

rolin

e D

ah

l, 19

99

Ch

arlo

tte D

ah

l, 19

93

Ca

itlin W

ilco

x,1

99

1

Elis

e W

ilco

x, 1

99

3

Joyce Marie Larsen,1922

Edward George Hampton, 1923-1999

Christina Lee

Hampton, 1958

Benjamin J.Murti

Gayle Marie Hampton,

1950

(i)William Glude

(ii) Walter Thor

Leberg, 1948

Mark Edward

Hampton, 1952

Vicky Lynn Hampton, 1960-

2007

(i)Michael Mandin

(ii)Michael Olen Lervick,

1971

He

ath

er E

lra G

lud

e, 1

97

9

Ja

red

Kris

tofe

r Mu

rti, 19

94

Jo

rda

n D

an

iel M

urti, 1

99

6

Be

nja

min

jr.Ka

mle

sh

Mu

rti, 19

91

Pa

ul M

ich

ae

l Le

rvic

k, 2

00

0

Ka

rl Ole

n L

erv

ick, 1

99

8

Am

y M

an

din

, 19

83

Page 142: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 142 of 233

Martha Andrea Tidemann 952 Martha Andrea Tidemann 952 was born in Rødøy Helgeland in 1862. She died in 1949.

Martha was born in Rødøy, Helgeland, Norway in 1862. She emigrated to the USA most

likely together with two of her cousins and families in 1889. The cousins and families settled

in Oregon and Martha moved on to Seattle where she met and was married to Regnor in 1891.

Martha died in Seattle in 1949.

Children of Martha Andrea Tidemann 952 and Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Wold Dahl 173

1. Ragnor Dahl 1086, Birth: Jan 1893, Death: 1980

2. Sigrid Marie Dahl 953, Birth: 17 Jan 1894, Death: 20 Jan 1992

3. Sheldon Tiedeman Dahl 1325, Birth: 4 Oct 1900, Death: 8 Oct 1973

Ragnor Dahl 1086 Ragnor Dahl 1086 was born on Jan 1893. He died in 1980. He was the son of Regnor

Fredrik Lauritz Wold Dahl 173 and of Martha Andrea Tidemann 952.

Spouse: Lottie 1572

Lottie 1572 was born in 1907.

Sigrid Marie. Dahl 953 Sigrid Marie. Dahl 953 was born on 17 Jan 1894. She died on 20 Jan 1992. She was the

daughter of Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Wold Dahl 173 and of Martha Andrea Tidemann 952.

Children of Sigrid Marie. Dahl 953 and Victor Larsen 1573

1. Joyce Marie Larson 1574, Birth: 8 Dec 1922

Martha and Sheldon, around 1905 The Regnor Dahl family around 1905, from left-Sigrid, Regnor,

Sheldon, Martha and Ragnor

Page 143: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 143 of 233

Spouse: Victor Larsen 1573

Victor Larsen 1573 was born in 1892. He died in 1948.

Sheldon Tiedeman Dahl 1325 Sheldon Tiedeman Dahl 1325 was born on 4 Oct 1900. He died on 8 Oct 1973. He was the

son of Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Wold Dahl 173 and of Martha Andrea Tidemann 952.

Children of Sheldon Tiedeman Dahl 1325 and Dorothy Mae Pratt 1562

1. Frederick Allen Dahl, Birth: 8 Dec 1928

2. David Jay Dahl 1614, Birth: 9 Mar 1931

Spouse: Dorothy Mae Pratt 1562

Dorothy Mae Pratt 1562 was born on 29 May 1901. She died on 31 Jan 1991.

Joyce Marie Larson 1574 Joyce Marie Larson 1574 was born on 8 Dec 1922. She is the daughter of Victor Larsen

1573 and of Sigrid Marie. Dahl 953.

Children of Joyce Marie Larson 1574 and Edward George Hampton 1575

1. Gayle Marie Hampton 1576, Birth: 26 Sep 1950

2. Mark Edward Hampton 1579 1212 , Birth: 31 Aug 1952

3. Kristina Lee Hampton 1578, Birth: 2 May 1958

4. Vicki Lynn Hampton 1577, Birth: 13 Sep 1960, Death: 30 Jul 2007

Spouse: Edward George Hampton 1575

Edward George Hampton 1575 was born on Jan 1923. He died on 30 Aug 1999.

Frederick Allen Dahl 1563 Frederick Allen Dahl 1563 was born on 8 Dec 1928. He is the son of Sheldon Tiedeman

Dahl 1325 and of Dorothy Mae Pratt 1562.

Children of Frederick Allen Dahl 1563 and Dixie Anne Livingston 1564

1. Steven Phillip Dahl 1567, Birth: 2 May 1951

2. Tamana Louanne Dahl 1565, Birth: 8 May 1959

Spouse 1: Dixie Anne Livingston 1564

Dixie Anne Livingston 1564 was born on 8 Dec 1934. She died on 2 Dec 1985.

Spouse 2: Patricia Ellen Grisco 2002

Patricia Ellen Grisco 2002 was born on 20 Sep 1938.

David Jay Dahl 1614 David Jay Dahl 1614 was born on 9 Mar 1931. He is the son of Sheldon Tiedeman Dahl

1325 and of Dorothy Mae Pratt 1562.

Children of David Jay Dahl 1614 and Annebelle Lee Horchitz 1615

1. James Michael Dahl 1693, Birth: 13 Sep 1956

2. Susan Lee Dahl 1616, Birth: 8 May 1958

3. Gregory Sheldon Dahl 1617, Birth: 27 Nov 1959

4. Janet Elizabeth Dahl 1618, Birth: 11 Feb 1961

Spouse: Annebelle Lee Horchitz 1615

Annebelle Lee Horchitz 1615 was born on 17 Dec 1933.

Page 144: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 144 of 233

Gayle Marie Hampton 1576 Gayle Marie Hampton 1576 was born on 26 Sep 1950. She is the daughter of Edward George

Hampton 1575 and of Joyce Marie Larson 1574.

Children of Gayle Marie Hampton 1576 and William ( Bill) Glude 1679

1. Heather Elra Glude 1680, Birth: 8 Oct 1979

Spouse 1: William ( Bill) Glude 1679

Spouse 2: Walter Thor Leberg 1580

Walter Thor Leberg 1580 was born on 19 Oct 1948.

Mark Edward Hampton 1579 Mark Edward Hampton 1579 was born on 31 Aug 1952. He is the son of Edward George

Hampton 1575 and of Joyce Marie Larson 1574.

Kristina Lee Hampton 1578 Kristina Lee Hampton 1578 was born on 2 May 1958. She is the daughter of Edward George

Hampton 1575 and of Joyce Marie Larson 1574.

Children of Kristina Lee Hampton 1578 and Benjamin J. Murti 1670

1. Benjamin,jr Kamlesh Murti 1671, Birth: 1 Jun 1991

2. Jared Kristofer Murti 1672, Birth: 20 Feb 1994

3. Jordan Daniel Murti 1673, Birth: 14 May 1996

Spouse: Benjamin J. Murti 1670

Vicki Lynn Hampton 1577 Vicki Lynn Hampton 1577 was born on 13 Sep 1960. She died on 30 Jul 2007. She was the

daughter of Edward George Hampton 1575 and of Joyce Marie Larson 1574.

Children of Vicki Lynn Hampton 1577 and Michael Mandin 1674

1. Amy Mandin 1675, Birth: 26 Dec 1983

Children of Vicki Lynn Hampton 1577 and Michael Olen Lervick 1676

1. Karl Olen Lervick 1677, Birth: 8 Nov 1998

2. Paul Michael Lervick 1678, Birth: 27 Apr 2000

Spouse 1: Michael Mandin 1674

Spouse 2: Michael Olen Lervick 1676

Michael Olen Lervick 1676 was born on 9 Feb 1971.

Steven Phillip Dahl 1567 Steven Phillip Dahl 1567 was born on 2 May 1951. He is the son of Frederick Allen Dahl

1563 and of Dixie Anne Livingston 1564.

Children of Steven Phillip Dahl 1567 and Laura Ann Fitch 1568

1. Gabriel Fitch Dahl 1569, Birth: 25 Jul 1988

2. Adrian Phillip Dahl 1570, Birth: 22 Apr 1991

3. Anna Rose Dahl 1571, Birth: 20 Sep 1994

Spouse: Laura Ann Fitch 1568

Laura Ann Fitch 1568 was born on 3 Jun 1960.

Tamana Louanne Dahl 1565 Tamana Louanne Dahl 1565 was born on 8 May 1959. She is the daughter of Frederick Allen

Page 145: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 145 of 233

Dahl 1563 and of Dixie Anne Livingston 1564.

Children of Tamana Louanne Dahl 1565 and Mark Andrew Kallen 1566

1. Kenneth Nicolas Kallen 1620, Birth: 5 Mar 1987

2. Megan Christine Kallen 1621, Birth: 17 Feb 1989

3. Rick James Kallen 1622, Birth: 13 Jun 1993

Spouse: Mark Andrew Kallen 1566

Mark Andrew Kallen 1566 was born on 23 May 1960.

James Michael Dahl 1693 James Michael Dahl 1693 was born on 13 Sep 1956. He is the son of David Jay Dahl 1614

and of Annebelle Lee Horchitz 1615.

Children of James Michael Dahl 1693 and Mary Colmar 1694

1. Michael Dahl 1695, Birth: 14 Jan 1995

2. Cristopher Dahl 1696, Birth: 5 Jun 1997

3. Caroline Dahl 1697, Birth: 2 Sep 1999

Spouse: Mary Colmar 1694

Mary Colmar 1694 was born on 22 May 1959.

Susan Lee Dahl 1616 Susan Lee Dahl 1616 was born on 8 May 1958. She is the daughter of David Jay Dahl 1614

and of Annebelle Lee Horchitz 1615.

Children of Susan Lee Dahl 1616 and William Cohn 1698

1. Charlotte Cohn 1699, Birth: 21 Dec 1993

Spouse: William Cohn 1698

Gregory Sheldon Dahl 1617 Gregory Sheldon Dahl 1617 was born on 27 Nov 1959. He is the son of David Jay Dahl 1614

and of Annebelle Lee Horchitz 1615.

Janet Elizabeth Dahl 1618 Janet Elizabeth Dahl 1618 was born on 11 Feb 1961. She is the daughter of David Jay Dahl

1614 and of Annebelle Lee Horchitz 1615.

Children of Janet Elizabeth Dahl 1618 and Grant Wilcox 1700

1. Caitlin Wilcox 1701, Birth: 23 Jul 1991

2. Elise Wilcox 1702, Birth: 18 Jun 1993

Spouse: Grant Wilcox 1700

Grant Wilcox 1700 was born on 4 Sep 1954.

Heather Elra Glude 1680 Heather Elra Glude 1680 was born on 8 Oct 1979. She is the daughter of William ( Bill)

Glude 1679 and of Gayle Marie Hampton 1576.

Benjamin,jr Kamlesh Murti 1671 Benjamin,jr Kamlesh Murti 1671 was born on 1 Jun 1991. He is the son of Benjamin J.

Murti 1670 and of Kristina Lee Hampton 1578.

Page 146: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 146 of 233

Jared Kristofer Murti 1672 Jared Kristofer Murti 1672 was born on 20 Feb 1994. He is the son of Benjamin J. Murti

1670 and of Kristina Lee Hampton 1578.

Jordan Daniel Murti 1673 Jordan Daniel Murti 1673 was born on 14 May 1996. He is the son of Benjamin J. Murti

1670 and of Kristina Lee Hampton 1578.

Amy Mandin 1675 Amy Mandin 1675 was born on 26 Dec 1983. She is the daughter of Michael Mandin 1674

and of Vicki Lynn Hampton 1577.

Karl Olen Lervick 1677 Karl Olen Lervick 1677 was born on 8 Nov 1998. He is the son of Michael Olen Lervick

1676 and of Vicki Lynn Hampton 1577.

Paul Michael Lervick 1678 Paul Michael Lervick 1678 was born on 27 Apr 2000. He is the son of Michael Olen Lervick

1676 and of Vicki Lynn Hampton 1577.

Gabriel Fitch Dahl 1569

Gabriel Fitch Dahl 1569 was born on 25 Jul 1988. He is the son of Steven Phillip Dahl 1567

and of Laura Ann Fitch 1568.

Adrian Phillip Dahl 1570 Adrian Phillip Dahl 1570 was born on 22 Apr 1991. He is the son of Steven Phillip Dahl

1567 and of Laura Ann Fitch 1568.

Anna Rose Dahl 1571 Anna Rose Dahl 1571 was born on 20 Sep 1994. She is the daughter of Steven Phillip Dahl

1567 and of Laura Ann Fitch 1568.

Kenneth Nicolas Kallen 1620 Kenneth Nicolas Kallen 1620 was born on 5 Mar 1987. He is the son of Mark Andrew

Kallen 1566 and of Tamana Louanne Dahl 1565.

Megan Christine Kallen 1621 Megan Christine Kallen 1621 was born on 17 Feb 1989. She is the daughter of Mark Andrew

Kallen 1566 and of Tamana Louanne Dahl 1565.

Rick James Kallen 1622 Rick James Kallen 1622 was born on 13 Jun 1993. He is the {son of/daughter of} Mark

Andrew Kallen 1566 and of Tamana Louanne Dahl 1565.

Michael Dahl 1695 Michael Dahl 1695 was born on 14 Jan 1995. He is the son of James Michael Dahl 1693 and

Page 147: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 147 of 233

of Mary Colmar 1694.

Cristopher Dahl 1696 Cristopher Dahl 1696 was born on 5 Jun 1997. He is the son of James Michael Dahl 1693

and of Mary Colmar 1694.

Caroline Dahl 1697 Caroline Dahl 1697 was born on 2 Sep 1999. She is the son of James Michael Dahl 1693 and

of Mary Colmar 1694.

Charlotte Cohn 1699 Charlotte Cohn 1699 was born on 21 Dec 1993. She is the daughter of William Cohn 1698

and of Susan Lee Dahl 1616.

Caitlin Wilcox 1701 Caitlin Wilcox 1701 was born on 23 Jul 1991. She is the daughter of Grant Wilcox 1700 and

of Janet Elizabeth Dahl 1618.

Elise Wilcox 1702 Elise Wilcox 1702 was born on 18 Jun 1993. She is the daughter of Grant Wilcox 1700 and

of Janet Elizabeth Dahl 1618.

4.10 NICOLAI BENJAMIN DAHL145

Nicolai Benjamin was born in Vadsø on December 30th

1852 and he passed confirmation at the

Vadsø church in 1874.

Page 148: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 148 of 233

5 SIMON MARENIUS DAHL1811-FURTHER GENERATIONS

5.1 OLLIE (TILLA) ANDREA ØSTRING1895

Ollie (Tilla) was the daughter of Sophie and Ole Andreas Østring, born in 1830. She grew however up with the Dahl family.

Simon Marenius Dahl,1807-1874

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ed

ua

rd C

orn

eliu

s D

ah

l,18

35

-19

05

(1) A

nn

a D

orth

ea

Strø

m, 1

85

4-

(2)T

he

a (D

ah

l), 18

53

So

ph

ie M

arie

Da

hl,1

83

7-1

90

2

Ele

on

ora

Ditle

fine

Da

hl,1

83

8-1

84

0

Ele

on

ora

An

ne

Ch

ristin

a D

ah

l,18

38

-19

02

Gu

nd

er O

lse

n H

ag

en

,18

25

-14

Be

tzy O

lefin

e D

ah

l,18

42

19

07

An

tho

n N

iels

en, 1

84

4-1

88

0

Sim

on

Nic

ola

i Ma

ren

ius D

ah

l,18

43

-19

14

Fre

drik

ke

Jo

ha

sn

na

Ola

va

Bru

un

,18

49

-18

44

Ma

ren

An

dre

a D

ah

l,18

49

-19

14

Ca

rl Bra

mm

er E

sb

en

se

n,1

84

6-1

91

4

Ha

nsin

e (S

inu

s) B

irgitte

Da

hl, 1

85

4-1

94

1

Ollie

(Tilla

) An

dre

a Ø

strin

g, 1

83

0

The daughter of Sohpie and Ole Andreas Østring

Page 149: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 149 of 233

5.2 EDUARD CORNELIUS DAHL1836 AND ANNA DORTHEA STRØM1898

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Eduard Cornelius Dahl,1835-1905

(i)Thea, 1853-

(ii)Anna Dorthea Strøm, 1833-1905

So

ph

ie M

arie

Da

hl,

18

35-1

90

2

Ele

on

ora

Ditle

fine

Da

hl,

18

38-1

84

0

Ele

on

ora

An

ne

Ch

ristin

a

Da

hl, 1

83

8-1

90

2

Gu

nd

er O

lse

n H

ag

en,

18

26

-19

14

Be

tzy O

lefin

e D

ah

l,

18

42

-19

07

An

tho

n J

uliu

s N

iels

en,

18

44

-18

80

Sim

on

Nic

ola

i Ma

ren

ius

Da

hl,1

84

3-1

91

4

Fre

drik

ke

Jo

ha

nn

a

Ola

va

Bru

un

, 18

49-

Ma

ren

An

dre

a D

ah

l,

18

49-1

91

4

Ca

rl Bra

mm

er

Esb

en

se

n,1

84

6-1

91

4

Ha

nsin

e B

erg

itte D

ah

l,

18

54-1

94

1

Sofie Dahl, 1877-1981

Simon Sarao Dahl, 1878-

Tora Christiansen,1883-

Bjarne Dahl, 1882-

Sonja Dahl. -1998

Arne Torget

Tove Torget

Ole Johan Dahl

Stein Torget

Kari Torget

Lo

ren

tze

Ole

a D

ah

l,

18

46

-

Ha

ns Iv

ers

en

Kro

hn,

18

31

-19

05

Page 150: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 150 of 233

Eduard Cornelius Dahl 1836 Eduard Cornelius Dahl 1836 was born in Trømsø in 1835. and was called Eduard by his father

and not Edvard. Eduard was the gransfather of todays famous flourist “Sonja på Torget” in

Tromsø.Eduard is mention in the list of Norwegian customs officers and he moved and lived in

Trondheim in 1875, where he most likely med his wife Thea. He was the son of Simon

Marenius Dahl 1811 and of Sophie Andrea Andersen 661.

Children of Eduard Cornelius Dahl 1836 and Anna Dorthea Strøm 1898

1. Sofie Dahl 1896, Birth: 5 May 1877, Death: 12 Feb 1981

2. Simon Sarao Dahl 1837, Birth: 20 Oct 1878

3. Bjarne Dahl 1899, Birth: 16 Jan 1882, Death: in New Jersey, USA

Spouse 1: Anna Dorthea Strøm 1898

Anna Dorthea Strøm 1898 was born on 27 Jan 1854.

Spouse 2: Thea ( Dahl) 1796

Thea ( Dahl) 1796 was born in 1853.

Sofie Dahl 1896 Sofie Dahl 1896 was born on 5 May 1877. She died on 12 Feb 1981. She was the daughter of

Eduard Cornelius Dahl 1836 and of Anna Dorthea Strøm 1898.

Simon Sarao Dahl 1837 Simon Sarao Dahl 1837 was born on 20 Oct 1878. He was the son of Eduard Cornelius Dahl

1836 and of Anna Dorthea Strøm 1898.

Children of Simon Sarao Dahl 1837 and Tora Christiansen 1897

1. Sonja Dahl 1839 Death: Nov 1998

Spouse: Tora Christiansen 1897

Tora Christiansen 1897 was born on 16 Mar 1883.

Bjarne Dahl 1899 Bjarne Dahl 1899 was born on 16 Jan 1882. He died in New Jersey, USA. He was the son of

Eduard Cornelius Dahl 1836 and of Anna Dorthea Strøm 1898.

Sonja Dahl 1839 She died on Nov 1998. She was the daughter of Simon Sarao Dahl 1837 and of Tora

Christiansen 1897.

Children of Sonja Dahl 1839 and Arne Torget 1838

1. Kari Torget 1842, Birth: 12 May 19

2. Tove Torget 1841

3. Stein Torget 1840 Spouse: Arne Torget 1838

Kari Torget 1842 Kari Torget 1842 was born on 12 May 19. She was the daughter of Arne Torget 1838 and of

Sonja Dahl 1839.

Tove Torget 1841 She was the daughter of Arne Torget 1838 and of Sonja Dahl 1839.

Page 151: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 151 of 233

She was well recognized cello player/artist.

Spouse: Ole Johan Dahl 1773

Stein Torget 1840 He was the son of Arne Torget 1838 and of Sonja Dahl 1839.

5.3 SOFIE MARIE DAHL1835

Sofie Marie Dahl was born in Tromsø on April 15th

1835 and she died in Oslo in 1902. Sofie

Marie never married.

5.4 ELEONORA DITLEFINE DAHL1834

Eleonora Ditlefine was the twin-sister of Eleonora Anne Christine, born in Tromsø on February

28th

1838. Elenora Ditlefine died 2 years old in 1840.

Page 152: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 152 of 233

5.5 ELEONORA ANNE CHRISTINE DAHL1826 AND GUNDER OLSEN HAGEN1825

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ed

ua

rd C

orn

eliu

s

Da

hl,1

83

5-1

90

5

(i)Th

ea, 1

85

3-

(ii)An

na

Do

rthe

a S

trøm

,

18

33

-19

05

So

ph

ie M

arie

Da

hl,

18

35-1

90

2

Ele

on

ora

Ditle

fine

Da

hl,

18

38-1

84

0

Eleonora Anne Christina Dahl, 1838-1902

Gunder Olsen Hagen, 1826-1914

Be

tzy O

lefin

e D

ah

l,

18

42

-19

07

An

tho

n J

uliu

s N

iels

en,

18

44

-18

80

Sim

on

Nic

ola

i Ma

ren

ius

Da

hl,1

84

3-1

91

4

Fre

drik

ke

Jo

ha

nn

a

Ola

va

Bru

un

, 18

49

-

Ma

ren

An

dre

a D

ah

l,

18

49-1

91

4

Ca

rl Bra

mm

er

Esb

en

se

n,1

84

6-1

91

4

Ha

nsin

e B

erg

itte D

ah

l,

18

54-1

94

1

Toralv Hagen, 1876-1957

Annie Marie Juell Beck,

Gudrun Sofie Hagen, 1878-

1967

Inga Kristine Hagen,

1882-1954

Gunnar Simon Hagen, 1885-

Disa Sjøwall, 1890

Olea Johanne Hagen, 1862-1905

Gunnar Helle Hagen, 1924

Kari Berg, 1921

Toralv Gunder Hagen, 1959

Gunn Hilde Kjølstad, 1961

Thomas Hagen,

1991

Kristine Hagen,

1993

Gunnar Ola

Hagen, 1923

Anne Marie Hagen, 1925

Nøstblad

Marit Nøstblad

Anders Nøstblad

Thomas Nøstblad

Lo

ren

tze

Ole

a D

ah

l,

18

46

-

Ha

ns Iv

ers

en

Kro

hn,

18

31

-19

05

Page 153: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 153 of 233

Elenore Anne Christine Dahl 1826 Elenore Ane Christine Dahl 1826 was born on 26 Feb 1838. She died in

Hammerfest on 29 Dec 1902. She was the daughter of Simon Marenius Dahl 1811

and of Sophie Andrea Andersen 661.

Children of Elenore Anne Christine Dahl 1826 and Gunder Olsen Hagen 1825

1. Toralv Hagen 1830, Birth: 1 Apr 1876, Death: 1957

2. Gudrun Sofie Hagen 1833, Birth: 28 Feb 1878, Death: 1967

3. Inga Kristine Hagen 1832, Birth:17 Feb 1882, Death: 4 Sep 1954

4. Gunnar Simon Hagen 1827, Birth: 1 May 1885

Spouse: Gunder Olsen Hagen 1825

Gunder Olsen Hagen was born in Rendalen on Fenruary 26th

1826 and came to

Hammerfest as teacher in 1854 and in 1855 he also established the first bookshop in

Hammerfest. He was firstly married to Hermine Hauan, 1844-1864, from

Hammerfest and they had the daughter Olea Johanne Hagen, 1862-1915. He re-

married to Eleonora Anne Christina Dahl on November 24th

1874. His son Toralf

took over the bookshop when Gunder was employed as the treasurer of the town. He

died in Hammerfest in 1914.

Toralv Hagen 1830 Toralv Hagen 1830 was born in Hammerfest on 1 Apr 1876. He died in 1957. He

was the son of Gunder Olsen Hagen 1825 and of Elenore Ane Christine Dahl 1826.

Children of Toralv Hagen 1830 and Annie Marie Juell Beck 1880

1. Gunnar Helle Hagen 1831, Birth: in Hammerfest on 19 May 1924

Spouse: Annie Marie Juell Beck 1880

Annie Marie Juell Beck 1880 was born in Moss.

Gudrun Sofie Hagen 1833 Gudrun Sofie Hagen 1833 was born in Hammerfest on 28 Feb 1878. She died in

Oslo in 1967. She was the daughter of Gunder Olsen Hagen 1825 and of Elenore

Ane Christine Dahl 1826.

Inga Kristine Hagen 1832 Inga Kristine Hagen 1832 was born in Hammerfest on 17 Feb 1882. She died on 4

Sep 1954. She was the daughter of Gunder Olsen Hagen 1825 and of Elenore Ane

Christine Dahl 1826.

Gunnar Simon Hagen 1827 Gunnar Simon Hagen 1827 was born on 1 May 1885. He was the son of Gunder

Olsen Hagen 1825 and of Elenore Ane Christine Dahl 1826.

Children of Gunnar Simon Hagen 1827 and Disa Sjøwall 1829

1. Gunnar Ola Hagen 1828, Birth: 6 Oct 1923, Death:

2. Anne Marie Hagen 1879, Birth: 8 Sep 1925

Spouse: Disa Sjøwall 1829

Disa Sjøwall 1829 was born on 8 Mar 1890.

Page 154: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 154 of 233

Gunnar Helle Hagen 1831 Gunnar Helle Hagen 1831 was born in Hammerfest on 19 May 1924. He was the

son of Toralv Hagen 1830 and of Annie Marie Juell Beck 1880.He was occupied as

a book retailer.

Children of Gunnar Helle Hagen 1831 and Kari Berg 1881

1. Toralv Gunder Hagen 1882, Birth: in Hammerfest on 10 Jun 1959

Spouse: Kari Berg 1881

Kari Berg 1881 was born on 24 Dec 1921.

Gunnar Ola Hagen 1828 Gunnar Ola Hagen 1828 was born on 6 Oct 1923. He died in Oslo. He was the son

of Gunnar Simon Hagen 1827 and of Disa Sjøwall 1829.

Anne Marie Hagen 1879 Anne Marie Hagen 1879 was born on 8 Sep 1925. She is the daughter of Gunnar

Simon Hagen 1827 and of Disa Sjøwall 1829.

Children of Anne Marie Hagen 1879 and Nøstblad 1965

1. Thomas Nøstblad 1966

2. Anders Nøstblad 1967

3. Mariet Nøstblad 1968

Spouse: Nøstblad 1965

Toralv Gunder Hagen 1882 Toralv Gunder Hagen 1882 was born in Hammerfest on 10 Jun 1959. He was the

son of Gunnar Helle Hagen 1831 and of Kari Berg 1881. He worked as a book

retailer.

Children of Toralv Gunder Hagen 1882 and Gunn Hilde Kjølstad 1883

1. Thomas Hagen 1885, Birth: 17 Aug 1991

2. Kristine Hagen 1886, Birth: 14 Feb 1993

Spouse: Gunn Hilde Kjølstad 1883

Gunn Hilde Kjølstad 1883 was born on 8 Apr 1961.

Thomas Nøstblad 1966 He was the son of Nøstblad 1965 and of Anne Marie Hagen 1879.

Anders Nøstblad 1967 He was the son of Nøstblad 1965 and of Anne Marie Hagen 1879.

Mariet Nøstblad 1968 She was the daughter of Nøstblad 1965 and of Anne Marie Hagen 1879.

Thomas Hagen 1885 Thomas Hagen 1885 was born on 17 Aug 1991. He is the son of Toralv Gunder

Hagen 1882 and of Gunn Hilde Kjølstad 1883.

Page 155: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 155 of 233

Kristine Hagen 1886 Kristine Hagen 1886 was born on 14 Feb 1993. She is the daughter of Toralv

Gunder Hagen 1882 and of Gunn Hilde Kjølstad 1883.

Page 156: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 156 of 233

5.6 BETZY OLEFINE DAHL1824 AND ANTON JULIUS NELSEN1823

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ed

ua

rd C

orn

eliu

s

Da

hl,1

83

5-1

90

5

(i)Th

ea, 1

85

3-

(ii)An

na

Do

rthe

a S

trøm

,

18

33

-19

05

So

ph

ie M

arie

Da

hl,

18

35

-19

02

Ele

on

ora

Ditle

fine

Da

hl,

18

38

-18

40

Ele

on

ora

An

ne

Ch

ristin

a

Da

hl, 1

83

8-1

90

2

Gu

nd

er O

lse

n H

ag

en

,

18

26

-19

14

Betzy Olefine Dahl, 1842-1907

Anthon Julius Nielsen, 1844-1880

Sim

on

Nic

ola

i Ma

ren

ius

Da

hl,1

84

3-1

91

4

Fre

drik

ke

Jo

ha

nn

a

Ola

va

Bru

un

, 18

49-

Ma

ren

An

dre

a D

ah

l,

18

49

-19

14

Ca

rl Bra

mm

er

Esb

en

se

n,1

84

6-1

91

4

Ha

nsin

e B

erg

itte D

ah

l,

18

54

-19

41

Anthon Julius

Nielsen, 1874-

Einar Nielsen,

1875-

Bergljot Nielsen,

1877-

Haldis Nielsen,

1879-

Reidar Nielsen,

1879-

Steffen Nielsen,

1873-

Simon Nielsen,

1873-1905

Lo

ren

tze

Ole

a D

ah

l,

18

46

-

Ha

ns Iv

ers

en

Kro

hn

,

18

31

-19

05

Page 157: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 157 of 233

Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824 Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824 was born on 1 Mar 1842. She died in Oslo on 25 Dec

1907. She was the daughter of Simon Marenius Dahl 1811 and of Sophie Andrea

Andersen 661. She was baptised on 24 Jul 1842. She was Confirmed on 19 Sep

1858 in Hammerfest.

Children of Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824 and Anton Julius Nielsen 1823

1. Simon Nielsen 1900, Birth: 10 Mar 1873, Death: 1905

2. Steffen Nielsen 1901, Birth: 10 Mar 1873

3. Anthon Julius Nielsen 1902, Birth: in Trondheim, 6 Mar 1874

4. Einar Nielsen 1903, Birth: 26 Jun 1875

5. Bergliot Nielsen 1904, Birth: 4 Feb 1877

6. Haldis Nielsen 1905, Birth: 4 Jul 1879

7. Reidar Nielsen 1906, Birth: 4 Jul 1879, Death: 1900

Spouse: Anton Julius Nielsen 1823

Anton Julius Nielsen 1823 was born on 3 Jul 1844. He died on 17 Nov 1880.

Simon Nielsen 1900 Simon Nielsen 1900 was born on 10 Mar 1873. He died in 1905. He was the son

of Anton Julius Nielsen 1823 and of Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824.

Steffen Nielsen 1901 Steffen Nielsen 1901 was born on 10 Mar 1873. He was the son of Anton Julius

Nielsen 1823 and of Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824.

Anthon Julius Nielsen 1902 Anthon Julius Nielsen 1902 was born in Trondheim on 6 Mar 1874. He was the son

of Anton Julius Nielsen 1823 and of Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824. He worked as Post

Manager in Tvedestrand around 1914.

Einar Nielsen 1903 Einar Nielsen 1903 was born on 26 Jun 1875. He was the son of Anton Julius

Nielsen 1823 and of Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824.

Bergliot Nielsen 1904 Bergliot Nielsen 1904 was born on 4 Feb 1877. She was the daughter of Anton

Julius Nielsen 1823 and of Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824.

Haldis Nielsen 1905 Haldis Nielsen 1905 was born on 4 Jul 1879. She was the daughter of Anton Julius

Nielsen 1823 and of Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824.

Reidar Nielsen 1906 Reidar Nielsen 1906 was born on 4 Jul 1879. He died in 1900. He was the son of

Anton Julius Nielsen 1823 and of Betsy Olufine Dahl 1824.

Page 158: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 158 of 233

5.7 SIMON NIKOLAI MARENIUS DAHL1816 AND FREDRIKKE OLAVA JOHANNA BRUUN679

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Eduard C

ornelius

Dahl,1835-1905

(i)Thea, 1853-

(ii)Anna D

orthea Strøm

,

1833-1905

Sophie M

arie Dahl,

1835-1902

Eleonora D

itlefine Dahl,

1838-1840

Eleonora A

nne Christina

Dahl, 1838-1902

Gunder O

lsen Hagen,

1826-1914

Betzy O

lefine Dahl,

1842-1907

Anthon Julius N

ielsen,

1844-1880

Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl,1843-

1914

Fredrikke Johanna Olava Bruun,

1849-

Maren A

ndrea Dahl,

1849-1914

Carl B

ramm

er

Esbensen,1846-1914

Hansine B

ergitte Dahl,

1854-1941

Helga D

ahl, 1875-1933

Signe B

ergljot Dahl,

1877-1961

Johan Martin E

dvard

Meyer, 1873-1956

Erling Finn D

ahl, 1879-

1966

Anna K

arina Erna A

strid

Gadd, 1888

Sim

on Christian D

ahl,

1881-1926

Elsie K

necht, 1884-

Gisle G

unnar Dahl, 1883-

Alvilda B

erle, 1908

Fredrik Kristian B

ruun

Dahl, 1889-1889

Anne S

ophie Dahl, 1874-

1951

Nils C

ornelius Christie,

1865-1953

Helga C

hristie, 1898-

Martha C

hristie, 1900-

Johan Koren C

hristie,

1901-

Sigrid H

orn

Margrete S

ophie

Fredrikke Christie, 1905-

Erling Falsen H

jort, 1898-

1996

Aagot C

hristie, 1911-

Johan Løken

Astrid C

hristie Hjort,

1929-

Henriette Løken,

1947

Bergljot M

athilde Meyer,

1905-

Carl C

hristian Hartm

ann,

1909-

Erling Johannes Irgens

Bruun M

eyer, 1908

Susanne C

harlotte Baier,

1909

Kaare C

hristian Meyer,

1911-

John Meyer, 1912-1985

Ragnhild S

tøre, 1911-

Øyvin M

orten Meyer,

1917-1919

Eva M

agdalena Catarina

Meyer, 1920-

Carl Jacob S

tousland, -

2001

Kristen Johanne

Fredrikke Meyer

Otto K

almar Ø

sterås

Signe B

ergljot

Hartm

ann, 1947

John Meyer, 1943

Elisabeth S

tøre

Meyer, 1945

Jarle Drageset, 1942

Morten M

eyer, 1947

Helge M

eyer, 1951

Gisle M

eyer, 1956

Carl G

eorg Andreas

Stousland, 1949

Elisabeth A

spestrand, 1960

Anne K

arine Stousland,

1951

Falck-Pedersen,

Christine S

tousland, 1988

Eric S

tousland, 1990

Scott S

tousland, 1990

Didrik A

ndreas Falck-

Pedersen, 1981

Cecilie K

arine Falck-

Pedersen, 1984

Wilhelm

Dahl, 1917-

Kristin D

ahl, 1947

Chaterine B

arbara Dahl

Hjalm

ar Fredrik Berle

Dahl, 1919

Berit D

ahl, 1923

Kåre Fram

holt, 1918

Mette Fram

holt

Kåre Fuglesang

Aagot Fredrikke D

ahl,

1885-

Petter D

aae

Gudrun E

lenora Dahl,

1887-1922

Brynjulf B

ruun, 1868-

1947

Ludvig Daae, 1914

Herm

ann Daae, 1924-

Denyse (D

aae)

Fredrik Christian B

ruun,

1922-

Jonas Meyer D

rageset,

1980

Eline M

eyer, 1972

Didrik M

eyer Drageset,

1970

Marie Meyer

Størseth, 1998

Lorentze Olea D

ahl,

1846-

Hans Iversen K

rohn,

1831-1905

Page 159: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 159 of 233

Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 was born in Tromsø on October 10

th 1843 and

he died in Rødøy on January 22nd

1914. He was the vicar in several places in

Norway among which Karasjok, Finnmark and Rødøy, Helgeland where he died.

Martha Andrea Tidemand, Regnor Dahl’s second wife, was born in Rødøy. Simon

was married to Fredrikke (Rikka) Johanna Olava Bruun, born in 1849, from Hurdal.

He was the son of Simon Marenius Dahl 1811 and of Sophie Andrea Andersen 661.

He died on 22 Jan 1914.

Children of Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and Fredrikke Johanne Olava

(RIKKA) Bruun 1817

1. Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821, Birth: 15 Mar 1874, Death: 30 Oct 1951

2. Helga Dahl 1822, Birth: 25 Dec 1875, Death: 3 Jan 1939

3. Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819, Birth: 9 Nov 1877, Death: 15 Jul 1961

4. Erling Finn Dahl 1874, Birth: 25 Aug 1879, Death: in Oslo, 20 Nov 1966

5. Simon Kristian Dahl 1875, Birth: 9 May 1881, Death: 6 Dec 1926

6. Gisle Gunnar Dahl 1937, Birth: 13 Jan 1883

7. Aagot Fredrikke Dahl 1876, Birth: 29 Dec 1885

8. Gudrun Elenora Dahl 1945, Birth: 18 Nov 1887, Death: 18 Apr 1922

9. Fredrik Kristian Bruun Dahl 1948, Birth: 8 Sep 1889, Death: 30 Sep 1889

Spouse: Fredrikke Johanne Olava (RIKKA) Bruun 1817

Fredrikke Johanna Olava Bruun 1817 was born in Hurdal on May 29th

1849 and she

died in Hurdal in 1944. She was the daughter of Anna Hadelen Krogh Irgens and

Fredrik Bruun who was the vicar in Hurdal .She lived with the family in Rødøy until

Simon, her husband died in 1914, then she moved back to Hurdal and lived there

together with her daughter Helga Dahl for the rest of her life.

Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821 Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821 was born on 15 Mar 1874. She died on 30 Oct

1951. She was the daughter of Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and of Fredrikke

Johanne Olava (RIKKA) Bruun 1817.

Children of Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821 and Nils Cornelius Christie 1820

1. Helga Christie 1907, Birth: 13 Dec 1898

2. Martha Christie 1908, Birth: 2 Oct 1900

3. Johan (Johnny) Koren Christie 1909, Birth: 7 Nov 1901

4. Margrethe Sofie Fredrikke (Mosse) Christie 1912 114 , Birth: 1 Oct 1905

5. Aagot Christie 1915, Birth: 1 Feb 1911

Spouse: Nils Cornelius Christie 1820

Nils Cornelius Christie 1820 was born in Oslo on 12 Jan 1865. He died on Sep

1953. He worked as a vicar in Fredrikstad and in the Norwegian Sailors’ Church in

Rotterdam.

Helga Dahl 1822 Helga Dahl 1822 was born on 25 Dec 1875. She died on 3 Jan 1939. She was the

daughter of Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and of Fredrikke Johanne Olava

(RIKKA) Bruun 1817.

Page 160: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 160 of 233

Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819 Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819 was born on 9 Nov 1877. She died on 15 Jul 1961. She

was the daughter of Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and of Fredrikke Johanne

Olava (RIKKA) Bruun 1817.

Children of Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819 and John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818

1. Bergliot Mathilde Meyer 1884, Birth: 26 Jul 1905

2. Erling Johannes Irgens Bruun Meyer 1920, Birth: 9 Feb 1908

3. Kaare Christian Meyer 1923, Birth: 27 Aug 1911

4. John Meyer 1924, Birth: 28 Dec 1912, Death: abt 1985

5. Kristen Johanne Fredrikke Meyer 1926

6. Eva Magdalena Katharina Meyer 1873, Birth: 26 Oct 1920

7. Øyvin Morten Meyer 1929, Birth: 12 Nov 1917, Death: 10 Jun 1919

Spouse: John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818

John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818 was born on 19 Jun 1873. He died on 27 Dec

1956.

Erling Finn Dahl 1874 Erling Finn Dahl 1874 was born on 25 Aug 1879. He died in Oslo on 20 Nov 1966.

He was the son of Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and of Fredrikke Johanne

Olava (RIKKA) Bruun 1817.

Children of Erling Finn Dahl 1874 and Anna Karina Erna Astrid Gadd 1933

1. Wilhelm Dahl 1962, Birth: 15 May 1917

2. Anette Dahl 1782

Spouse: Anna Karina Erna Astrid Gadd 1933

Anna Karina Erna Astrid Gadd 1933 was born on 3 May 1888.

Simon Kristian Dahl 1875 Simon Kristian Dahl 1875 was born on 9 May 1881. He died on 6 Dec 1926. He

was the son of Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and of Fredrikke Johanne Olava

(RIKKA) Bruun 1817.

Children of Simon Kristian Dahl 1875 and Elsie Knecht 1935

1. Catherine Barbara Dahl 1936

Spouse: Elsie Knecht 1935

Elsie Knecht 1935 was born on 24 Mar 1884.

Gisle Gunnar Dahl 1937 Gisle Gunnar Dahl 1937 was born in Rødøy Helgeland on 13 Jan 1883. He was the

son of Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and of Fredrikke Johanne Olava

(RIKKA) Bruun 1817.

Children of Gisle Gunnar Dahl 1937 and Alvilda (Ba) Berle 1938

1. Hjalmar Fredrik Berle Dahl 1939, Birth: 25 Jun 1919

2. Berit Dahl 1940, Birth: in Trondheim, 18 Aug 1923

Spouse: Alvilda (Ba) Berle 1938

Alvilda (Ba) Berle 1938 was born in Bergen on 12 Feb 1908.

Page 161: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 161 of 233

Aagot Fredrikke Dahl 1876 Aagot Fredrikke Dahl 1876 was born on 29 Dec 1885. She was the daughter of

Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and of Fredrikke Johanne Olava (RIKKA)

Bruun 1817.

Children of Aagot Fredrikke Dahl 1876 and Peter Daae 1943

1. Hermann Daae 1963, Birth: 2 Feb 1924

2. Ludvig Daae 1964, Birth: 16 Aug 1914, Death: 26 Apr 1940

Spouse: Peter Daae 1943

Gudrun Elenora Dahl 1945 Gudrun Elenora Dahl 1945 was born in Rødøy Helgeland on 18 Nov 1887. She died

in Oslo on 18 Apr 1922. She was the daughter of} Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl

1816 and of Fredrikke Johanne Olava (RIKKA) Bruun 1817.

Children of Gudrun Elenora Dahl 1945 and Brynjolf Bruun 1946

1. Fredrik Kristian Bruun 1947, Birth: 18 Apr 1922

Spouse: Brynjolf Bruun 1946

Brynjolf Bruun 1946 was born on 20 Sep 1868. He died in 1947.

Fredrik Kristian Bruun Dahl 1948 Fredrik Kristian Bruun Dahl 1948 was born on 8 Sep 1889. He died on 30 Sep

1889. He was the son of Simon Nicolai Marenius Dahl 1816 and of Fredrikke

Johanne Olava (RIKKA) Bruun 1817.

Helga Christie 1907 Helga Christie 1907 was born on 13 Dec 1898. She is the daughter of Nils

Cornelius Christie 1820 and of Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821.

Martha Christie 1908 Martha Christie 1908 was born on 2 Oct 1900. She is the daughter of Nils

Cornelius Christie 1820 and of Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821.

Johan (Johnny) Koren Christie 1909 Johan (Johnny) Koren Christie 1909 was born on 7 Nov 1901. He is the son of Nils

Cornelius Christie 1820 and of Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821.

Spouse: Sigrid Horn 1910 113-1

Margrethe Sofie Fredrikke (Mosse) Christie 1912 Margrethe Sofie Fredrikke (Mosse) Christie 1912 was born on 1 Oct 1905. She is

the daughter of Nils Cornelius Christie 1820 and of Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821.

Children of Margrethe Sofie Fredrikke (Mosse) Christie 1912 and Erling

Falsen Hjort 1913

1. Astrid Christie Hjort 1973, Birth: 2 Aug 1929

2. Three additional children

Spouse: Erling Falsen Hjort 1913

Erling Falsen Hjort 1913 was born on 15 Mar 1898. He died on 28 Dec 1996.

Page 162: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 162 of 233

Aagot Christie 1915 Aagot Christie 1915 was born on 1 Feb 1911. She is the daughter of Nils Cornelius

Christie 1820 and of Anne Sophie (Anka) Dahl 1821.

Children of Aagot Christie 1915 and Johan Løken 1916

1. Henriette Løken 1944, Birth: 1947

Spouse: Johan Løken 1916

Bergliot Mathilde Meyer 1884 Bergliot Mathilde Meyer 1884 was born on 26 Jul 1905. She is the daughter of

John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818 and of Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819.

Children of Bergliot Mathilde Meyer 1884 and Carl Christian Hartmann 1918

1. Signe Bergliot Hartmann 1919, Birth: 18 Dec 1947

Spouse: Carl Christian Hartmann 1918

Carl Christian Hartmann 1918 was born on 28 Jul 1909.

Erling Johannes Irgens Bruun Meyer 1920 Erling Johannes Irgens Bruun Meyer 1920 was born on 9 Feb 1908. He is the son

of John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818 and of Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819.

Spouse: Susanne Charlotte Baier 1921

Susanne Charlotte Baier 1921 was born on 24 Jun 1909.

Kaare Christian Meyer 1923 Kaare Christian Meyer 1923 was born on 27 Aug 1911. He is the son of John

Martin Edvard Meyer 1818 and of Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819.

John Meyer 1924 John Meyer 1924 was born on 28 Dec 1912. He died abt 1985. He was the son of

John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818 and of Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819.

He worked as a vicar at Uranienborg Church in Oslo.

Children of John Meyer 1924 and Ragnhild Støre 1925

1. John Meyer 1777, Birth: 24 May 1943

2. Elisabeth Støre Meyer 1961, Birth: 7 Feb 1945

3. Morten Meyer 1778, Birth: 1947

4. Helge Meyer 1779, Birth: 1951

5. Gisle Meyer 1780, Birth: 20 Jun 1956

Spouse: Ragnhild Støre 1925

Ragnhild Støre 1925 was born on 28 Nov 1911.

Kristen Johanne Fredrikke Meyer 1926 She was the daughter of John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818 and of Signe Bergliot Dahl

1819.

Children of Kristen Johanne Fredrikke Meyer 1926 and Otto Kalmar Østerås

1927

1. Four children

Spouse: Otto Kalmar Østerås 1927

He worked as the vicar in Berg in Senja.

Page 163: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 163 of 233

Eva Magdalena Katharina Meyer 1873 Eva Magdalena Katharina Meyer 1873 was born on 26 Oct 1920. She is the

daughter of John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818 and of Signe Bergliot Dahl 1819.

Children of Eva Magdalena Katharina Meyer 1873 and Carl Jacob Stousland

1930

1. Carl Georg Andreas Stousland 1931, Birth: 6 Jun 1949

2. Anne-Karine Stousland 1932, Birth: 29 Dec 1951

Spouse: Carl Jacob Stousland 1930

Carl Jacob was a pilot, during a fight above Germany, he made a collision with

another Norwegian, Ole Tilset, they both fell down, Carl Jacob managed to get back

to the his own foces, Ole Tilset broke his leg and was captured by the Germans, they

met again after the war. Carl Jabob died in 2001.

Øyvin Morten Meyer 1929 Øyvin Morten Meyer 1929 was born on 12 Nov 1917. He died on 10 Jun 1919.

He was the son of John Martin Edvard Meyer 1818 and of Signe Bergliot Dahl

1819.

Wilhelm Dahl 1962 Wilhelm Dahl 1962 was born on 15 May 1917. He is the son of Erling Finn Dahl

1874 and of Anna Karina Erna Astrid Gadd 1933.

Children of Wilhelm Dahl 1962

1. Kristin Dahl 1781, Birth: 21 Jul 1947

Anette Dahl 1782 He was the daughter of Erling Finn Dahl 1874 and of Anna Karina Erna Astrid

Gadd 1933.

Catherine Barbara Dahl 1936 She was the daughter of Simon Kristian Dahl 1875 and of Elsie Knecht 1935.

Hjalmar Fredrik Berle Dahl 1939 Hjalmar Fredrik Berle Dahl 1939 was born on 25 Jun 1919. He is the son of Gisle

Gunnar Dahl 1937 and of Alvilda (Ba) Berle 1938.

Berit Dahl 1940 Berit Dahl 1940 was born in Trondheim on 18 Aug 1923. She is the daughter of

Gisle Gunnar Dahl 1937 and of Alvilda (Ba) Berle 1938.

Children of Berit Dahl 1940 and Kåre Framholt 1941

1. To Barn Framholt 1942

2. Mette Framholt 1794

Spouse: Kåre Framholt 1941

Kåre Framholt 1941 was born on 3 Nov 1918.

Hermann Daae 1963 Hermann Daae 1963 was born on 2 Feb 1924. He is the son of Peter Daae 1943 and

Page 164: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 164 of 233

of Aagot Fredrikke Dahl 1876.

Spouse: Denyse Daae 1917

Ludvig Daae 1964 Ludvig Daae 1964 was born on 16 Aug 1914. He died on 26 Apr 1940. He was

the son ofPeter Daae 1943 and of Aagot Fredrikke Dahl 1876.

Fredrik Kristian Bruun 1947 Fredrik Kristian Bruun 1947 was born on 18 Apr 1922. She is the daughter of

Brynjolf Bruun 1946 and of Gudrun Elenora Dahl 1945.

Astrid Christie Hjort 1973 Astrid Christie Hjort 1973 was born on 2 Aug 1929. She is the daughter of Erling

Falsen Hjort 1913 and of Margrethe Sofie Fredrikke (Mosse) Christie 1912.

Henriette Løken 1944 Henriette Løken 1944 was born in 1947. She is the daughter of} Johan Løken 1916

and of Aagot Christie 1915.

Signe Bergliot Hartmann 1919 Signe Bergliot Hartmann 1919 was born on 18 Dec 1947. She is the daughter of

Carl Christian Hartmann 1918 and of Bergliot Mathilde Meyer 1884.

John Meyer 1777 John Meyer 1777 was born on 24 May 1943. He is the son of John Meyer 1924 and

of Ragnhild Støre 1925.

Elisabeth Støre Meyer 1961 Elisabeth Støre Meyer 1961 was born on 7 Feb 1945. She is the daughter of John

Meyer 1924 and of Ragnhild Støre 1925.

Children of Elisabeth Støre Meyer 1961 and Jarle Drageset 1787

1. Didrik Meyer Drageset 1783, Birth: 1970

2. Eline Meyer 1784, Birth: 1972

3. Jonas Meyer Drageset 1786, Birth: 1980

Spouse: Jarle Drageset 1787

Jarle Drageset 1787 was born in 1942.

Morten Meyer 1778 Morten Meyer 1778 was born in 1947. He is the son of John Meyer 1924 and of

Ragnhild Støre 1925.

Helge Meyer 1779 Helge Meyer 1779 was born in 1951. He is the son of John Meyer 1924 and of

Ragnhild Støre 1925.

Page 165: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 165 of 233

Gisle Meyer 1780 Gisle Meyer 1780 was born on 20 Jun 1956. He is the son of John Meyer 1924 and

of Ragnhild Støre 1925.

Fire barn Østerås 1928 She was the daughter of Otto Kalmar Østerås 1927 and of Kristen Johanne

Fredrikke Meyer 1926.

Carl Georg Andreas Stousland 1931 Carl Georg Andreas Stousland 1931 was born on 6 Jun 1949. He is the son of Carl

Jacob Stousland 1930 and of Eva Magdalena Katharina Meyer 1873.

Children of Carl Georg Andreas Stousland 1931 and Elisabet Aspestrand 1788

1. Cristine Stousland 1791, Birth: 2 Jul 1988

2. Eric Stousland 1790, Birth: 12 Mar 1990

3. Scott Stousland 1789, Birth: 12 Mar 1990

Spouse: Elisabet Aspestrand 1788

Elisabet Aspestrand 1788 was born on 7 Nov 1960.

Anne-Karine Stousland 1932 Anne-Karine Stousland 1932 was born on 29 Dec 1951. She is the daughter of Carl

Jacob Stousland 1930 and of Eva Magdalena Katharina Meyer 1873.

Children of Anne-Karine Stousland 1932 and Falck- Pedersen 1804

1. Didrik Andreas Stousland Falck- Pedersen 1792, Birth: 18 Aug 1981

2. Cecilie Karine Stousland Falck- Pedersen 1793, Birth: 2 Apr 1984

Spouse: Falck- Pedersen 1804

Kristin Dahl 1781 Kristin Dahl 1781 was born on 21 Jul 1947. He is the son of Wilhelm Dahl 1962

and of.

Mette Framholt 1794 She was the daughter of Kåre Framholt 1941 and of Berit Dahl 1940.

Spouse: Kåre Fuglesang 1795 1622-1

Didrik Meyer Drageset 1783 Didrik Meyer Drageset 1783 was born in 1970. She is the daughter of Jarle

Drageset 1787 and of Elisabeth Støre Meyer 1961.

Eline Meyer 1784 Eline Meyer 1784 was born in 1972. She is the daughter of Jarle Drageset 1787 and

of Elisabeth Støre Meyer 1961.

Children of Eline Meyer 1784

1. Marie Meyer Størseth 1785, Birth: 1998

Jonas Meyer Drageset 1786 Jonas Meyer Drageset 1786 was born in 1980. He is the son of Jarle Drageset 1787

Page 166: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 166 of 233

and of Elisabeth Støre Meyer 1961.

Cristine Stousland 1791 Cristine Stousland 1791 was born on 2 Jul 1988. She is the daughter of Carl Georg

Andreas Stousland 1931 and of Elisabet Aspestrand 1788.

Eric Stousland 1790 Eric Stousland 1790 was born on 12 Mar 1990. He is the son of Carl Georg

Andreas Stousland 1931 and of Elisabet Aspestrand 1788.

Scott Stousland 1789 Scott Stousland 1789 was born on 12 Mar 1990. He is the son of Carl Georg

Andreas Stousland 1931 and of Elisabet Aspestrand 1788.

Didrik Andreas Stousland Falck- Pedersen 1792 Didrik Andreas Stousland Falck- Pedersen 1792 was born on 18 Aug 1981. He is

the son of Falck- Pedersen 1804 and of Anne-Karine Stousland 1932.

Cecilie Karine Stousland Falck- Pedersen 1793 Cecilie Karine Stousland Falck- Pedersen 1793 was born on 2 Apr 1984. She is the

daughter of Falck- Pedersen 1804 and of Anne-Karine Stousland 1932.

Marie Meyer Størseth 1785 Marie Meyer Størseth 1785 was born in 1998. She is the daughter of Eline Meyer

1784.

Page 167: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 167 of 233

5.8 LORENZE OLEA DAHL1815 AND HANS IVERSEN KRONH1814

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ed

ua

rd

Co

rn

eliu

s

Da

hl,1

83

5-1

90

5

(i)T

he

a, 1

85

3-

(ii)

An

na

Do

rth

ea

Str

øm

,

18

33

-1

90

5

So

ph

ie M

arie

Da

hl,

18

35

-1

90

2

Ele

on

ora

Ditle

fine

Da

hl,

18

38

-1

84

0

Ele

on

ora

An

ne

Ch

ris

tina

Da

hl, 1

83

8-1

90

2

Gu

nd

er O

lse

n H

ag

en,

18

26

-1

91

4

Be

tzy O

lefin

e D

ah

l,

18

42

-1

90

7

An

tho

n J

uliu

s N

iels

en

,

18

44

-1

88

0

Sim

on

Nic

ola

i Ma

re

niu

s

Da

hl,1

84

3-1

91

4

Fre

drik

ke

Jo

ha

nn

a

Ola

va

Bru

un

, 18

49-

Ma

re

n A

nd

re

a D

ah

l,

18

49

-1

91

4

Ca

rl B

ra

mm

er

Esb

en

se

n,1

84

6-1

91

4

Ha

nsin

e B

erg

itte D

ah

l,

18

54

-1

94

1

Lorentze Olea Dahl, 1846-

Hans Iversen Krohn, 1831-1905

Sofie Helene Dahl, 1866-

Karl Enger

Ivar Karl Krohn, 1867Simon Einar Krohn, 1868

Blanche L.F.Webb

Karl Asbjørn Krohn, 1870-1912

Anna Johannesen Lilleåren, 1873-

Helga Krohn, 1872

Jens Krohn, 1874

Sigmund Krohn, 1880-1932

Margit Krohn, 1885-1885

Ro

y E

ng

er

Ste

lla E

ng

er

Fra

nk E

ng

er

Bla

nch

e K

ro

hn

Ste

lla K

ro

hn

Ho

wa

rd

Kro

hn

Page 168: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 168 of 233

Lorentze Olea Dahl1815

Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815 was born on 13 Jan 1846. She was the daughter of Simon Marenius

Dahl 1811 and of Sophie Andrea Andersen 661. She was Confirmed on 27 Apr 1862 in

Hammerfest.

Children of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815 and Hans Iversen Krohn 1814

1. Sofie Helene Dahl 1888, Birth: in Hammerfest, 13 Feb 1866

2. Ivar Karl Krohn 1889, Birth: in Hammerfest, 18 Jul 1867, Death: in USA

3. Simon Einar Krohn 1890, Birth: 27 Jul 1868, Death: in USA

4. Karl Asbjørn Krohn 1891, Birth: 28 Apr 1870, Death: 1912

5. Helga Krohn 1892, Birth: 25 Feb 1872

6. Jens Krohn 1893, Birth: 29 Dec 1874, Death: in USA

7. Sigmund Krohn 1952, Birth: 6 Jan 1880, Death: in Oslo, 1932

8. Margit Krohn 1954, Birth: 18 Jun 1885, Death: 1885

Spouse: Hans Iversen Krohn 1814

Hans Iversen Krohn 1814 was born on 20 Sep 1831. He died in Oslo in 1905.

He was occupied as a teacher og bokhandler.

Sofie Helene Dahl 1888 Sofie Helene Dahl 1888 was born in Hammerfest on 13 Feb 1866. She was the daughter of

Hans Iversen Krohn 1814 and of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815.

Children of Sofie Helene Dahl 1888 and Karl Enger 1843

1. Roy Enger 1846

2. Stella Enger 1798

3. Frank Enger 1797 Spouse: Karl Enger 1843

He died in USA. He was an engineer.

Ivar Karl Krohn 18892 Ivar Karl Krohn 1889 was born in Hammerfest on 18 Jul 1867. He died in USA. He was the

son of Hans Iversen Krohn 1814 and of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815.

Simon Einar Krohn 1890 Simon Einar Krohn 1890 was born on 27 Jul 1868. He died in USA. He was the son of Hans

Iversen Krohn 1814 and of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815.

Children of Simon Einar Krohn 1890 and Blanche L.F. Webb 1847

1. Blanche Krohn 1887 2. Stella Krohn 1949, Birth: in USA in 1899

3. Howard Krohn 1950, Birth: in USA in 1903

Spouse: Blanche L.F. Webb 1847

Blanche L.F. Webb 1847 was born in USA.

Karl Asbjørn Krohn 1891 Karl Asbjørn Krohn 1891 was born on 28 Apr 1870. He died in 1912. He was the son of Hans

Iversen Krohn 1814 and of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815.

Spouse: Anna Johannessen Lilleåren 1951

Anna Johannessen Lilleåren 1951 was born in 1873. She died in USA.

Page 169: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 169 of 233

Helga Krohn 1892 Helga Krohn 1892 was born on 25 Feb 1872. She was the daughter of Hans Iversen Krohn

1814 and of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815.

Jens Krohn 1893 Jens Krohn 1893 was born on 29 Dec 1874. He died in USA. He was the son of Hans Iversen

Krohn 1814 and of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815. He was occupied as a Kontorist (1900).

Sigmund Krohn 1952 Sigmund Krohn 1952 was born on 6 Jan 1880. He died in Oslo in 1932. He was the son of

Hans Iversen Krohn 1814 and of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815.

He was occupied as a sailor, known as drinking too much.

Margit Krohn 1954 Margit Krohn 1954 was born on 18 Jun 1885. She died in 1885. She was the daughter of

Hans Iversen Krohn 1814 and of Lorentze Olea Dahl 1815.

Roy Enger 1846 He was the son of Karl Enger 1843 and of Sofie Helene Dahl 1888.

Stella Enger 1798 She was the daughter of Karl Enger 1843 and of Sofie Helene Dahl 1888.

Frank Enger 1797 He was the son of Karl Enger 1843 and of Sofie Helene Dahl 1888.

Blanche Krohn 1887 She was the daughter of Simon Einar Krohn 1890 and of Blanche L.F. Webb 1847.

Stella Krohn 1949 Stella Krohn 1949 was born in USA in 1899. She is the daughter of Simon Einar Krohn 1890

and of Blanche L.F. Webb 1847.

Howard Krohn 1950 Howard Krohn 1950 was born in USA in 1903. He is the son of Simon Einar Krohn 1890 and

of Blanche L.F. Webb 1847.

Page 170: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 170 of 233

5.9 MAREN ANDREA DAHL1810 AND CARL BRAMMER ESBENSEN1809

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ed

ua

rd C

orn

eliu

s

Da

hl,1

83

5-1

90

5

(i)Th

ea

, 18

53

-

(ii)An

na

Do

rthe

a S

trøm

,

18

33-1

90

5

So

ph

ie M

arie

Da

hl,

18

35

-19

02

Ele

on

ora

Ditle

fine

Da

hl,

18

38

-18

40

Ele

on

ora

An

ne

Ch

ristin

a

Da

hl, 1

83

8-1

90

2

Gu

nd

er O

lse

n H

ag

en

,

18

26-1

91

4

Be

tzy O

lefin

e D

ah

l,

18

42-1

90

7

An

tho

n J

uliu

s N

iels

en,

18

44-1

88

0

Sim

on

Nic

ola

i Ma

ren

ius

Da

hl,1

84

3-1

91

4

Fre

drik

ke

Jo

ha

nn

a

Ola

va

Bru

un

, 18

49

-

Maren Andrea Dahl, 1849-1914

Carl Brammer Esbensen,1846-1914

Ha

nsin

e B

erg

itte D

ah

l,

18

54

-19

41

Lo

ren

tze

Ole

a D

ah

l,

18

46-

Ha

ns Iv

ers

en

Kro

hn,

18

31-1

90

5

Arnt Nicolai Esbensen, 1883-

Gudny Schanke, 1897-1971

Halfdan Esbensen, 1886-1941

Guri Fredrikke Rosenvinge, 1891-1997

Simon Esbensen, 1887-

Maria Louise Quiset, -1979

Karl Brammer Esbensen, 1884-

Ella Engh

Ulf Esbensen, 1917-1994

Eva (Esbensen), 1921-

Gudny Esbensen, 1919-1986

Per Holm-Johannesen, 1913-1977Halfdan Fredrik Rosenvinge

Esbensen, 1918-1987

Karin Almquist, 1919-2005

Stig Esbensen, 1921-1954Kari Sofie Esbensen, 1930

Saavi Edland, 1925-2005

Mette Esbensen

Ray Kramer

Daughter no 2

Erik Esbensen, 1944-1986

Berit (Esbensen)

Son Xxon

Amber Xxon, 1998

Matthew Xxon, 1999

Maria Helene

Esbensen, 1984

Christine Margrete

Esbensen

Anniken Marika

Esbensen

G

ud

ny H

olm

-

Jo

ha

nn

ese

n, 1

94

6-1

94

7

Pe

de

r Ho

lm-

Jo

ha

nn

ese

n, 1

94

9-2

00

6

ttima

nn

H

eg

e H

olm

-Jo

ha

nn

ese

n,

19

52

Ce

cilie

Ho

lm-

Jo

ha

nn

ese

n, 1

95

8

Ste

ve

n H

olm

-

Jo

ha

nn

ese

n, 1

96

9

Ca

rl Fre

drik

Esb

en

se

n, 1

94

8

Au

d M

arit V

ike

n, 1

95

0

Ing

er M

ere

te E

sb

en

se

n, 1

95

2

Wilh

elm

Ha

rald

Win

sn

es, 1

94

9

Ro

lf Erik

Esb

en

se

n, 1

95

5

Ra

gn

hild

Vik

en

Esb

en

se

n, 1

97

8

Eyste

in F

red

rik

Esb

en

se

n, 1

98

0

Invild

Win

sn

es,1

98

6

Erle

nd

Win

sn

es,1

99

1

Ge

ir Kn

ut E

dla

nd, 1

96

0

Ka

ri Su

nd

e, 1

95

7

To

ne

Gu

ri Ed

lan

d, 1

96

3

He

nrik

Ale

ksa

nd

er S

un

de

Ed

lan

d,1

98

4

Ma

rie S

un

de

Ed

lan

d, 1

98

6

Ju

lie S

un

de

Ed

lan

d, 1

99

0

An

de

rs E

dla

nd

,

19

97

Mia

Ed

lan

d, 2

00

1

Page 171: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 171 of 233

Maren Andrea Dahl 1810

Maren Andrea Dahl 1810 was born on 5 Mar 1849. She died in Oslo on 9 Oct 1914. She was

the daughter of Simon Marenius Dahl 1811 and of Sophie Andrea Andersen 661.

Children of Maren Andrea Dahl 1810 and Carl Brammer Esbensen 1809

1. Arnt Nicolay Esbensen 1850, Birth: 19 Mar 1883

2. Karl Brammer Esbensen 1848, Birth: 27 Sep 1884

3. Halfdan Esbensen 1807, Birth: 30 Apr 1886, Death: in Oslo, 18 Oct 1941

4. Simon Esbensen 1844, Birth: 18 Dec 1887

Spouse: Carl Brammer Esbensen 1809

Carl Brammer Esbensen 1809 was born on 27 Mar 1846. He died in Oslo on 9 Apr 1914. He

was the son of Andreas 3 Esbensen 50 and of Erika Lorenze Kloch 68 and brother of Erikka

Andrea Esbensen 9 that was married to Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl 8. Carl Brammer

Esbensen worked as the Post Manager in Vadsø, Flekkefjord and Sandvika (Oslo). He was

baptized in Vadsø on 10 Apr 1846.

Arnt Nicolay Esbensen 1850 Arnt Nicolay Esbensen 1850 was born on 19 Mar 1883. He was the son of Carl Brammer

Esbensen 1809 and of Maren Andrea Dahl 1810.

Children of Arnt Nicolay Esbensen 1850 and Gudny Schanke 1851

1. Ulf Esbensen 1852, Birth: 1917, Death: Jun 1994

2. Gudny (dokken) Esbensen 1853, Birth: 29 Jun 1919, Death: 22 Oct 1986

Spouse: Gudny Schanke 1851

Gudny Schanke 1851 was born on 17 Jun 1897. She died on 7 Feb 1971.

Karl Brammer Esbensen 1848 Karl Brammer Esbensen 1848 was born on 27 Sep 1884. He was the son of Carl Brammer

Esbensen 1809 and of Maren Andrea Dahl 1810.

Spouse: Ella Engh 1849

Halfdan Esbensen 1807 Halfdan Esbensen 1807 was born on 30 Apr 1886. He died in Oslo on 18 Oct 1941. He was

the son of Carl Brammer Esbensen 1809 and of Maren Andrea Dahl 1810.

Children of Halfdan Esbensen 1807 and Guri Fredrikke Rosenvinge 1808

1. Halfdan Fredrik Rosenvinge Esbensen 1805, Birth:5 Jul 1918, Death:6 Feb 1987

2. Stig Esbensen 1862 132 , Birth: 14 Mar 1921, Death: 17 Dec 1954

3. Kari Sofie Esbensen 1855 133 , Birth: Oslo, 10 Apr 1930

Spouse: Guri Fredrikke Rosenvinge 1808 13-1

Guri Fredrikke Rosenvinge 1808 was born on 5 Jul 1891. She died in Oslo on 9 Oct 1977.

Simon Esbensen 1844 Simon Esbensen 1844 was born on 18 Dec 1887. He was the son of Carl Brammer Esbensen

1809 and of Maren Andrea Dahl 1810.

Spouse: Marie Louise "Maja" Quist 1845

She died in Oslo on 16 Nov 1979.

Page 172: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 172 of 233

Ulf Esbensen 1852 Ulf Esbensen 1852 was born in 1917. He died on Jun 1994. He was the son of Arnt Nicolay

Esbensen 1850 and of Gudny Schanke 1851.

Children of Ulf Esbensen 1852 and Eva ( Esbensen) 1957

1. Erik Esbensen 1872, Birth: 6 Oct 1944, Death: 1986

2. Mette Esbensen 1955

3. Datter 2 Esbensen 1956 Spouse: Eva ( Esbensen) 1957

Eva ( Esbensen) 1957 was born on 10 Sep 1921.

Gudny (dokken) Esbensen 1853 Gudny (dokken) Esbensen 1853 was born on 29 Jun 1919. She died on 22 Oct 1986. She

was the daughter of} Arnt Nicolay Esbensen 1850 and of Gudny Schanke 1851.

Children of Gudny (dokken) Esbensen 1853 and Per Holm- Johannessen 1868

1. Gudny Holm- Johannessen 1774, Birth: 29 Jul 1946, Death: 2 Mar 1947

2. Peder Holm-Johannessen 1869, Birth: Oslo, 1949, Death: 2006

3. Hege Holm-Johannessen 1870, Birth: 1952

4. Cecilie Holm-Johannessen 1871, Birth: 1958

Spouse: Per Holm- Johannessen 1868

Per Holm- Johannessen 1868 was born on 5 Jun 1913. He died on 10 Jun 1977.

Halfdan Fredrik Rosenvinge Esbensen 1805 Halfdan Fredrik Rosenvinge Esbensen 1805 was born in Oslo on 5 Jul 1918. He died on 6

Feb 1987. He was the son of Halfdan Esbensen 1807 and of Guri Fredrikke Rosenvinge 1808.

Children of Halfdan Fredrik Rosenvinge Esbensen 1805 and Karin Almquist 1806

1. Carl-Fredrik Esbensen 1769, Birth: Oslo, 10 Jan 1948

2. Inger Merete Esbensen 1864, Birth: Oslo, 18 Jun 1952

3. Rolf Erik Esbensen 1867, Birth: Oslo, 27 Jun 1955

Spouse: Karin Almquist 1806

Karin Almquist 1806 was born on 6 Aug 1919. She died in Oslo on 25 May 2005.

Stig Esbensen 1862 Stig Esbensen 1862 was born on 14 Mar 1921. He died on 17 Dec 1954. He was the son of

Halfdan Esbensen 1807 and of Guri Fredrikke Rosenvinge 1808.

Kari Sofie Esbensen 1855

Kari Sofie Esbensen 1855 was born in Oslo on 10 Apr 1930. She is the daughter of Halfdan

Esbensen 1807 and of Guri Fredrikke Rosenvinge 1808.

Children of Kari Sofie Esbensen 1855 and Saavi Edland 1854

1. Geir Knut Edland 1857, Birth: Oslo, 18 Mar 1960

2. Tone Guri Edland 1856, Birth: 16 Feb 1963

Spouse: Saavi Edland 1854

Saavi Edland 1854 was born on 22 Feb 1925. He died in Asker on 1 May 2005.

Erik Esbensen 1872 Erik Esbensen 1872 was born on 6 Oct 1944. He died in 1986. He was the son of Ulf

Page 173: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 173 of 233

Esbensen 1852 and of Eva ( Esbensen) 1957.

Children of Erik Esbensen 1872 and Berit ( Esbensen) 1969

1. Christine Margrethe Esbensen 1958

2. Anniken Marika Esbensen 1970 3. Maria Helene Esbensen 1971, Birth: 1984

Spouse: Berit ( Esbensen) 1969

Mette Esbensen 1955 She was the daughter of Ulf Esbensen 1852 and of Eva ( Esbensen) 1957.

Children of Mette Esbensen 1955 and Ray Kramer 1799

1. Son Xxon 1800

Spouse: Ray Kramer 1799

Gudny Holm- Johannessen 1774 Gudny Holm- Johannessen 1774 was born on 29 Jul 1946. She died on 2 Mar 1947. She was

the daughter of Per Holm- Johannessen 1868 and of Gudny (dokken) Esbensen 1853.

Peder Holm-Johannessen 1869 Peder Holm-Johannessen 1869 was born in Oslo in 1949. He died in 2006. He was the son of

Per Holm- Johannessen 1868 and of Gudny (dokken) Esbensen 1853.

Children of Peder Holm-Johannessen 1869 and Røttimann 1959

1. Steven Holm-Johannessen 1960, Birth: abt 1969

Spouse: Røttimann 1959

Hege Holm-Johannessen 1870 Hege Holm-Johannessen 1870 was born in 1952. She is the daughter of Per Holm-

Johannessen 1868 and of Gudny (dokken) Esbensen 1853.

Cecilie Holm-Johannessen 1871 Cecilie Holm-Johannessen 1871 was born in 1958. She is the daughter of Per Holm-

Johannessen 1868 and of Gudny (dokken) Esbensen 1853.

Carl-Fredrik Esbensen 1769 Carl-Fredrik Esbensen 1769 was born in Oslo on 10 Jan 1948. He is the son of Halfdan

Fredrik Rosenvinge Esbensen 1805 and of Karin Almquist 1806.

Children of Carl-Fredrik Esbensen 1769 and Aud Marit Viken 1770

1. Ragnhild Viken Esbensen 1772, Birth: 28 Nov 1978

2. Eystein Fredrik Esbensen 1771, Birth: 7 Jun 1980

Spouse: Aud Marit Viken 1770

Inger Merete Esbensen 1864 Inger Merete Esbensen 1864 was born in Oslo on 18 Jun 1952. She is the daughter of Halfdan

Fredrik Rosenvinge Esbensen 1805 and of Karin Almquist 1806.

Children of Inger Merete Esbensen 1864 and Wilhelm Harald Winsnes 1863

1. Ingvild Winsnes 1866, Birth: 28 Mar 1986

2. Erlend Winsnes 1865, Birth: 2 Apr 1991

Page 174: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 174 of 233

Spouse: Wilhelm Harald Winsnes 1863

Wilhelm Harald Winsnes 1863 was born on 24 Sep 1949.

Rolf Erik Esbensen 1867 Rolf Erik Esbensen 1867 was born in Oslo on 27 Jun 1955. He is the son of Halfdan Fredrik

Rosenvinge Esbensen 1805 and of Karin Almquist 1806.

Geir Knut Edland 1857 Geir Knut Edland 1857 was born in Oslo on 18 Mar 1960. He is the son of Saavi Edland 1854

and of Kari Sofie Esbensen 1855.

Children of Geir Knut Edland 1857 and Kari Sunde 1858

1. Aleksander Sunde Edland 1861, Birth: Oslo, 13 Nov 1984

2. Marie Sunde Edland 1860, Birth: 12 Aug 1986

3. Julie Sunde Edland 1859, Birth: 23 Jul 1990

Spouse: Kari Sunde 1858

Kari Sunde 1858 was born on 15 Feb 1957.

Tone Guri Edland 1856 Tone Guri Edland 1856 was born on 16 Feb 1963. She is the daughter of Saavi Edland 1854

and of Kari Sofie Esbensen 1855.

Children of Tone Guri Edland 1856 and Henrik ? 1775

1. Anders Edland 1776, Birth: 3 Jan 1997

2. Mia Edland 1972, Birth: 17 Jan 2001

Spouse: Henrik ? 1775

Christine Margrethe Esbensen 1958 She was the daughter of Erik Esbensen 1872 and of Berit ( Esbensen) 1969.

Anniken Marika Esbensen 1970 She was the daughter of Erik Esbensen 1872 and of Berit ( Esbensen) 1969.

Maria Helene Esbensen 1971 Maria Helene Esbensen 1971 was born in 1984. She is the daughter of Erik Esbensen 1872

and of Berit ( Esbensen) 1969.

Son Xxon 1800 He is the son of Ray Kramer 1799 and of Mette Esbensen 1955.

Children of Son Xxon 1800.

1. Amber Xxon 1802, Birth: Sep 1998

2. Matthew Xxon 1803, Birth: Oct 1999

Steven Holm-Johannessen 1960 Steven Holm-Johannessen 1960 was born abt 1969. He is the son of Peder Holm-

Johannessen 1869 and of Røttimann 1959.

Page 175: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 175 of 233

Ragnhild Viken Esbensen 1772 Ragnhild Viken Esbensen 1772 was born on 28 Nov 1978. She is the daughter of Carl-

Fredrik Esbensen 1769 and of Aud Marit Viken 1770.

Eystein Fredrik Esbensen 1771 Eystein Fredrik Esbensen 1771 was born on 7 Jun 1980. He is the son of Carl-Fredrik

Esbensen 1769 and of Aud Marit Viken 1770.

Ingvild Winsnes 1866 Ingvild Winsnes 1866 was born on 28 Mar 1986. She is the daughter of Wilhelm Harald

Winsnes 1863 and of Inger Merete Esbensen 1864.

Erlend Winsnes 1865 Erlend Winsnes 1865 was born on 2 Apr 1991. He is the son of Wilhelm Harald Winsnes

1863 and of Inger Merete Esbensen 1864.

Aleksander Sunde Edland 1861 Aleksander Sunde Edland 1861 was born in Oslo on 13 Nov 1984. He is the son of Geir Knut

Edland 1857 and of Kari Sunde 1858.

Marie Sunde Edland 1860 Marie Sunde Edland 1860 was born on 12 Aug 1986. She is the daughter of Geir Knut

Edland 1857 and of Kari Sunde 1858.

Julie Sunde Edland 1859 Julie Sunde Edland 1859 was born on 23 Jul 1990. She is the daughter of Geir Knut Edland

1857 and of Kari Sunde 1858.

Anders Edland 1776 Anders Edland 1776 was born on 3 Jan 1997. He is the son of Henrik ukjent 1775 and of

Tone Guri Edland 1856.

Mia Edland 1972 Mia Edland 1972 was born on 17 Jan 2001. She is the daughter of Henrik 1775 and of Tone

Guri Edland 1856.

Amber Xxon 1802 Amber Xxon 1802 was born on Sep 1998. She is the daughter of Son Xxon 1800.

Matthew Xxon 1803 Matthew Xxon 1803 was born on Oct 1999. He is the son of Son Xxon 1800.

5.10 HANSINE (SINUS) DAHL1813

Hansine was born in Trømsø on August 19th

1854 and she in 1941 in Oslo. Hansine was known

as Sinus and she died in Oslo in 1941.

Page 176: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 176 of 233

6 LORENTZ ANDREAS DAHL203-FURTHER GENERATIONS

6.1 ELISE DAHL227

Elise Dahl died as a child.

6.2 NIKOLAI MARENIUS WOLD DAHL222

There is no information about his date of birth. He emigrated to the USA.

Elis

e D

ah

l

Nik

ola

i Ma

ren

ius W

old

Da

hl

Ha

ns G

eo

rg L

ore

ntz

en

Da

hl,1

83

1

Ka

ren

Do

rthe

a S

tavse

th,1

83

1

Go

lla H

erte

l Da

hl,1

83

8

W. A

nd

ers

en

Lo

ren

tz A

nd

rea

s D

ah

l,18

40

An

ne

Re

gin

e D

ah

l,18

44

-11

Be

rnt T

he

od

or A

as,1

84

0-1

6

Be

tzy K

ristin

e D

ah

l18

46

-93

Th

or S

ole

gla

d,1

82

4-0

0

Elis

e O

tilde

Da

hl,1

84

8-7

3

Be

rnh

ard

Ma

rtin A

cke

rma

nd

,18

44

-16

Th

eo

do

r Fre

drik

Da

hl,1

85

0

Re

be

kka

Birg

ithe

Strø

msta

d,1

85

9

Ca

rolin

e J

oh

an

ne

Da

hl,1

85

4

Ha

ns C

hris

tian

Ing

em

an

n

Østv

old

,18

47

-32

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1807-1874

Golla Hansdatter Hertel, 1816-1866

Page 177: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 177 of 233

6.3 HANS GEORG LORENTZEN DAHL124 AND KAREN DORTHEA SVENSDATTER STAVSETH127

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Elise Dahl

Nikolai Marenius

Wold Dahl

Hans Georg

Lorentzen Dahl,1831

Karen Dorthea

Stavseth, 1831

Golla Hertel Dahl,

1838

W. Andersen

Lorentz Andreas

Dahl,1840

Anne Regine Dahl,

1844-1911

Bernt Theodor Aas,

1840-1916

Betzy Kristine Dahl1846-

93

Thor Soleglad,1824-00

Elise Otilde Dahl,1848-73

Bernhard Martin

Ackermand,1844-16

Theodor Fredrik

Dahl, 1850

Caroline Johanne

Dahl,1854

Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold,1847-32

Lorenze Golla Dahl, 1856

Richard Nicolai Reinholdtsen, 1855

Hansine Dorthea Dahl,

1858

Haugen

Henrik Hertel Dahl,

1859

Cathrine Marie Dahl,

1861

Elevine Elisabeth Dahl,

1864

Sigurd Bernhard Dahl,

1866

Anna Hemingdine Dahl,

1869

Georg Kristian

Reinholdtsen, 1878

Page 178: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 178 of 233

Hans Georg Lorentzen Dahl 124 Hans Georg Lorentzen Dahl was born in Tromsø on September 13

th 1831 and he

moved with the family to Vadsø in 1833. He worked as a customs officer in Nesseby

and he moved to Vadsø where he lived in 1900. Hans Georg was married to Karen

Dorthea Stavseth from Vardø. He was the son of Lorentz Andreas Dahl 203 and of

Golla Hansdatter Hertel 205.

Children of Hans Georg Lorentzen Dahl 124 and Karen Dorthea Svensdatter

Stavseth 127

1. Lorentze Golla Dahl 132, Birth: 1856

2. Hansine Dorthea Hansdatter Dahl 131, Birth: 8 Jun 1857

3. Henrik Hertel Dahl 133, Birth: 1859

4. Catrine Marie Hansdatter Dahl 134, Birth: 1861

5. Elevine Elisabeth Hansdatter Dahl 135, Birth: 1864

6. Sigurd Bernhard Hansen Dahl 136, Birth: 1866

7. Anna Hemmingdine Dahl 137, Birth: 1869

Spouse: Karen Dorthea Svensdatter Stavseth 127

Karen Dorthea Svensdatter Stavseth 127 was born on 8 Jan 1831.

Lorentze Golla Dahl 132 Lorentze Golla Dahl 132 was born in 1856. She was the daughter of Hans Georg

Lorentzen Dahl 124 and of Karen Dorthea Svensdatter Stavseth 127.

Children of Lorentze Golla Dahl 132 and Richard Nicolai Reinholtsen 138

1. Georg Kristian Reinholtsen 139, Birth: 15 Apr 1878

Spouse: Richard Nicolai Reinholtsen 138

Richard Nicolai Reinholtsen 138 was born in 1855. He was the son of Ole Johan

Reinholtsen 140 and of Kristina Margreta Andersdatter 141.

Hansine Dorthea Hansdatter Dahl 131 Hansine Dorthea Hansdatter Dahl 131 was born on 8 Jun 1857. She was the

daughter of Hans Georg Lorentzen Dahl 124 and of Karen Dorthea Svensdatter

Stavseth 127.

Spouse: Haugen 756

Henrik Hertel Dahl 133 Henrik Hertel Dahl 133 was born in 1859. He was the son of Hans Georg

Lorentzen Dahl 124 and of Karen Dorthea Svensdatter Stavseth 127.

Catrine Marie Hansdatter Dahl 134 Catrine Marie Hansdatter Dahl 134 was born in 1861. She was the daughter of

Hans Georg Lorentzen Dahl 124 and of Karen Dorthea Svensdatter Stavseth 127.

Elevine Elisabeth Hansdatter Dahl 135 Elevine Elisabeth Hansdatter Dahl 135 was born in 1864. She was the daughter of

Hans Georg Lorentzen Dahl 124 and of Karen Dorthea Svensdatter Stavseth 127.

Page 179: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 179 of 233

Sigurd Bernhard Hansen Dahl 136 Sigurd Bernhard Hansen Dahl 136 was born in 1866. He was the son of Hans

Georg Lorentzen Dahl 124 and of Karen Dorthea Svensdatter Stavseth 127.

Anna Hemmingdine Dahl 137 Anna Hemmingdine Dahl 137 was born in 1869. She was the daughter of Hans

Georg Lorentzen Dahl 124 and of Karen Dorthea Svensdatter Stavseth 127.

Georg Kristian Reinholtsen 139 Georg Kristian Reinholtsen 139 was born on 15 Apr 1878. He was the son of

Richard Nicolai Reinholtsen 138 and of Lorentze Golla Dahl 132.

6.4 GOLLA HERTEL LORENTZDATTER DAHL220

Golla Hertel Lorentzdatter Dahl was born in Tromsø on Januay 21st 1838.

She was married to Mr W. Andersen 228. No information on Mr Andersen or about their

marriage and life.

6.5 LORENTZ ANDREAS LORENTZEN DAHL221

Lorentz Andreas was born in Tromsø on April 16th

1840. He moved with the family to Vadsø

where he grew up and operated his own business.

Page 180: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 180 of 233

6.6 ANNE REGINE LORENTZDATTER DAHL125 AND BERNT THEODOR AAS126

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Elise Dahl

Nikolai Marenius

Wold Dahl

Hans Georg

Lorentzen Dahl,1831

Karen Dorthea

Stavseth, 1831

Golla Hertel Dahl,

1838

W. Andersen

Lorentz Andreas

Dahl,1840

Anne Regine Dahl,

1844-1911

Bernt Theodor Aas,

1840-1916

Betzy Kristine Dahl1846-

93

Thor Soleglad,1824-00

Elise Otilde Dahl,1848-73

Bernhard Martin

Ackermand,1844-16

Theodor Fredrik

Dahl, 1850

Caroline Johanne

Dahl,1854

Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold,1847-32

Hilda Aas,

1867-1871

Bernt Theodor

Aas, 1869-1877

Birgitte Aas, 1870-1937

Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold, 1847-1932

Hilda Aas,

1872-1891

Ida Aas, 1874-

1932

Johan Rockmann,

1876-1944

Golla Ulrikka

Aas,1876-1947

Anna Theodora

Aas, 1878-1949

Dorthea Aas,

1880-1971

Bernt Theodor

Aas, 1880-1934

Sara Fredrikke

Aas, 1882-1884

Johannes Aas,

1884-1911

Margit Aas, 1885-

1916

Anna Østvold, 1894-

1937

Ragnhild Østvold,

1894-1957

Ragnvald Østvold,

1899-1978

Page 181: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 181 of 233

Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125 Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125 was born on 8 Jan 1844. She died on 26 Feb 1911. She

was the daughter of Lorentz Andreas Dahl 203 and of Golla Hansdatter Hertel 205.She was

baptised on 12 Sep 1844. Anne Regine grew up with the Sommerfeldt family in Etne (Southern

Norway) where Sommerfeldt was the vicar.

Children of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125 and Bernt Theodor Aas 126

1. Hilda Aas 763, Birth: 1867, Death: 1871

2. Bernt Theodor Aas 769, Birth: 1869, Death: 1877

3. Birgitte Aas 765, Birth: 1870, Death: 1937

4. Hilda 2 Aas 774, Birth: 1872, Death: 1891

5. Ida Aas 767, Birth: 1874, Death: 1964

6. Golla Ulrikka Aas 766, Birth: 1876, Death: 1947

7. Anna Theodora Aas 768, Birth: 1878, Death: 1949

8. Dorthea Aas 770, Birth: 1880, Death: 1971

9. Bernt 2 Theodor Aas 764, Birth: 1880, Death: 1934

10. Sara Fredrikke Aas 771, Birth: 1882, Death: 1884

11. Johannes Aas 772, Birth: 1884, Death: 1911

12. Margit Aas 773, Birth: 1885, Death: 1916

Spouse: Bernt Theodor Aas 126

Bernt Theodor Aas was born in Trondheim on September 10th

1840. He emigrated to the USA

on his late years and he died in Minneapolis, Minnesota, in 1916. After working with other

companies, he established his own business in Mehamn, Finnmark. His company run into

problem, the ownership was reorganized and Bernt was left with high debts. He was the son of

Bernt Theodor Aas 759 and of Caroline Birgitte Iversen 760.

Hilda 1 Aas 763 Hilda 1 Aas 763 was born in 1867. She died in 1871. She was the daughter of Bernt Theodor

Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Bernt 1 Theodor Aas 769 Bernt 1 Theodor Aas 769 was born in 1869. He died in 1877. He was the son of Bernt

Theodor Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Birgitte Aas 765 Birgitte Aas 765 was born in 1870. She died in 1937. She was the daughter of Bernt Theodor

Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Children of Birgitte Aas 765 and Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 775

1. Anna Østvold 776, Birth: 1894, Death: 1971

2. Ragnhild Østvold 777, Birth: 1894, Death: 1957

3. Ragnvald Østvold 778, Birth: 1899, Death: 1978

Spouse: Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 775

Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 775 was born on 30 Apr 1847. He died in 1932. He was the

son of Ole Østvold 943.

Hilda 2 Aas 774 Hilda 2 Aas 774 was born in 1872. She died in 1891. She was the daughter of Bernt Theodor

Page 182: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 182 of 233

Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Ida Aas 767 Ida Aas 767 was born in 1874. She died in 1964. She was the daughter of Bernt Theodor Aas

126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Spouse: Johan Rockmann 780

Johan Rockmann 780 was born in 1876. He died in Oslo in 1944.

Golla Ulrikka Aas 766

Golla Ulrikka Aas 766 was born in 1876. She died in 1947. She was the daughter of Bernt

Theodor Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Anna Theodora Aas 768 Anna Theodora Aas 768 was born in 1878. She died in 1949. She was the daughter of Bernt

Theodor Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Dorthea Aas 770 Dorthea Aas 770 was born in 1880. She died in 1971. She was the daughter of Bernt Theodor

Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Bernt 2 Theodor Aas 764 Bernt 2 Theodor Aas 764 was born in 1880. He died in 1934. He was the son of Bernt

Theodor Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Sara Fredrikke Aas 771 Sara Fredrikke Aas 771 was born in 1882. She died in 1884. She was the daughter of Bernt

Theodor Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Johannes Aas 772 Johannes Aas 772 was born in 1884. He died in 1911. He was the son of Bernt Theodor Aas

126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Margit Aas 773 Margit Aas 773 was born in 1885. She died in 1916. She was the daughter of Bernt Theodor

Aas 126 and of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl 125.

Anna Østvold 776 Anna Østvold 776 was born in 1894. She died in 1971. She was the daughter of Hans

Christian Ingemann Østvold 775 and of Birgitte Aas 765. Anna never married.

Ragnhild Østvold 777 Ragnhild Østvold 777 was born in 1894. She died in 1957. She was the daughter of Hans

Christian Ingemann Østvold 775 and of Birgitte Aas 765.Ragnhild never married

Ragnvald Østvold 778 Ragnvald Østvold 778 was born in 1899. He died in 1978. He was the son of Hans Christian

Page 183: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 183 of 233

Ingemann Østvold 775 and of Birgitte Aas 765. Ragnvald never married.

Page 184: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 184 of 233

6.7 BETZY KRISTINE DAHL224 AND THOR SOLEGLAD230

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Elise Dahl

Nikolai Marenius

Wold Dahl

Hans Georg

Lorentzen Dahl,1831

Karen Dorthea

Stavseth, 1831

Golla Hertel Dahl,

1838

W. Andersen

Lorentz Andreas

Dahl,1840

Anne Regine Dahl,

1844-1911

Bernt Theodor Aas,

1840-1916

Betzy Kristine Dahl,

1846-93

Thor Soleglad,1824-00

Elise Otilde Dahl,1848-73

Bernhard Martin

Ackermand,1844-16

Theodor Fredrik

Dahl, 1850

Caroline Johanne

Dahl,1854

Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold,1847-32

Hans Soleglad,

1873-

Golla Hertel

Soleglad,1874-

Ole Mikkelsen Øvergaard

Anne Soleglad,

1875-

Lorentze Andrea

Soleglad, 1877-

AxelJohannes Nielsen,

1861

Marianne Kristine

Soleglad, 1880-

Ragna Soleglad,

1881

-

Thor Soleglad,

1882

Reidar Soleglad,

1885

Brynjulf Soleglad,

1886-

Wilhelm Paludan

Soleglad, 1889-

Betzy Marie Nielsen,

1899-

Sigmund Nielsen,

1901-

Tordis Nielsen,

1903-

Page 185: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 185 of 233

Betzy Kristine Dahl 224 Betzy Kristine Dahl 224 was born on 14 Jul 1846. She died on 3 Jul 1893. She was the

daughter of Lorentz Andreas Dahl 203 and of Golla Hansdatter Hertel 205.

She was baptised on 18 Oct 1846.

Children of Betzy Kristine Dahl 224 and Thor Soleglad 230

1. Hans Soleglad 1446, Birth: 18 Oct 1873

2. Golla Hertel Thorsdatter Soleglad 1447, Birth: 21 Dec 1874

3. Anne Soleglad 1448, Birth: 1875

4. Lorentze Andrea Soleglad 1449, Birth: 13 Feb 1877

5. Marianne Kristine Soleglad 1450, Birth: 1880

6. Ragna Soleglad 1451, Birth: 1881

7. Thor Soleglad 1452, Birth: 1882

8. Reidar Soleglad 1453, Birth: 15 Jun 1885

9. Brynjulf Soleglad 1454, Birth: 12 Jun 1886

10. Vilhelm Paludan Soleglad 1455, Birth: 14 Jul 1889

Spouse: Thor Soleglad 230

Thor Soleglad was born in Vaago in 1824 and he died in Sør Aurdal, Valdres on July 9th

1900.

He bought the farm “Klokkergaarden”, Bagn, Valdres, where he and the famil lived. He was

also the local sheriff.

Hans Soleglad 1446 Hans Soleglad 1446 was born on 18 Oct 1873. He was the son of Thor Soleglad 230 and of

Betzy Kristine Dahl 224.

Golla Hertel Thorsdatter Soleglad 1447 Golla Hertel Thorsdatter Soleglad 1447 was born in Klokkermoen in South Aurdal on 21 Dec

1874. She was the daughter of Thor Soleglad 230 and of Betzy Kristine Dahl 224.

Spouse: Ole Mikkelsen Øvergård 1456

Ole Mikkelsen Øvergård 1456 was born on Øvergård i Sør Aurdal in 1855. He was the son of

Ole Sørbøen 1457.

Anne Soleglad 1448 Anne Soleglad 1448 was born in 1875. She was the daughter of Thor Soleglad 230 and of

Betzy Kristine Dahl 224. She was baptised on 3 Apr 1876.

Lorentze Andrea Soleglad 1449 Lorentze Andrea Soleglad 1449 was born on 13 Feb 1877. She was the daughter of Thor

Soleglad 230 and of Betzy Kristine Dahl 224. She was baptised on 6 May 1877.

Children of Lorentze Andrea Soleglad 1449 and Axel Johannes Nielsen 1458

1. Betzy Marie Nielsen 1461, Birth: 23 Aug 1899

2. Sigmund Nielsen 1462, Birth: 17 Mar 1901

3. Tordis Nielsen 1463, Birth: 4 Jan 1903

Spouse: Axel Johannes Nielsen 1458

Axel Johannes Nielsen 1458 was born in Drammen on 14 Nov 1861. He was the son of Søren

Julius Nielsen 1459 and of Marthe Johannesdatter 1460.

Page 186: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 186 of 233

Marianne Kristine Soleglad 1450

Marianne Kristine Soleglad 1450 was born in 1880. She was the daughter of Thor Soleglad

230 and of Betzy Kristine Dahl 224. She was baptised on 4 Apr 1880.

Ragna Soleglad 1451 Ragna Soleglad 1451 was born in 1881. She was the daughter of Thor Soleglad 230 and of

Betzy Kristine Dahl 224.

Thor Soleglad 1452 Thor Soleglad 1452 was born in 1882. He was the son of Thor Soleglad 230 and of Betzy

Kristine Dahl 224.

Reidar Soleglad 1453 Reidar Soleglad 1453 was born on 15 Jun 1885. He was the son of Thor Soleglad 230 and of

Betzy Kristine Dahl 224.

Brynjulf Soleglad 1454 Brynjulf Soleglad 1454 was born on 12 Jun 1886. He was the son of Thor Soleglad 230 and of

Betzy Kristine Dahl 224.

Vilhelm Paludan Soleglad 1455 Vilhelm Paludan Soleglad 1455 was born on 14 Jul 1889. He was the son of Thor Soleglad 230

and of Betzy Kristine Dahl 224. He was baptised on 14 Jul 1889.

Betzy Marie Nielsen 1461 Betzy Marie Nielsen 1461 was born on 23 Aug 1899. She is the daughter of Axel Johannes

Nielsen 1458 and of Lorentze Andrea Soleglad 1449. She was baptised on 10 Mar 1899.

Sigmund Nielsen 1462 Sigmund Nielsen 1462 was born on 17 Mar 1901. He is the son of Axel Johannes Nielsen 1458

and of Lorentze Andrea Soleglad 1449. He was baptised on 8 May 1901.

Tordis Nielsen 1463 Tordis Nielsen 1463 was born on 4 Jan 1903. She is the daughter of Axel Johannes Nielsen

1458 and of Lorentze Andrea Soleglad 1449. She was baptised on 8 Mar 1903.

6.8 ELISE OTHILDE DAHL109 AND BERNHARD MARTIN

ACKERMAND110

Elise Otilde Dahl 109 Elise Otilde Dahl 109 was born on 23 Oct 1848. She died in 1873. She was the

daughter of Lorentz Andreas Dahl 203 and of Golla Hansdatter Hertel 205. She was

baptised on 1 Jul 1848.

Children of Elise Otilde Dahl 109 and Bernhard Martin Ackermand 110

1. Johan Rasch Dahl 111, Birth: 4 Oct 1872, Death: 3 Jan 1873

Spouse: Bernhard Martin Ackermand 110

Bernhard Martin Ackermand 110 was born in Hammerfest on 24 Feb 1844. He died

Page 187: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 187 of 233

on 2 Apr 1916. Bernhard had his own business in Hammerfest, Tollbodgt. 144. Elise

Othilde died in 1873 and Bernhard remarried to Harriet Rasmussen Esbensen, 1852,

Harriet was the daughter of Rasmus Fredrik Esbensen and cousin of Erikka Andrea,

the wife of Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl and also of Carl Brammer Esbensen that

was married to Maren Andrea Dahl, the daughter of Simon Marenius Dahl.

Johan Rasch Dahl 111 Johan Rasch Dahl 111 was born on 4 Oct 1872. He died on 3 Jan 1873. He was

the son of Bernhard Martin Ackermand 110 and of Elise Otilde Dahl 109.

6.9 THEODOR FREDRIK LORENTZEN DAHL113

Theodore Fredrik was born in Vadsø on December 12th

1850. He had his own business in Vadsø

and served the district around the Varangerfjord. He died, frozen to death, on a tiny island after a

shipwreck.

Children of Dahl Theodor Fredrik 113 and Strømstad Birgithe Rebekka 114

1. Dahl Tyra Andrea 116, Born: 19 Nov 1881, Died: 6 Oct 1883

Spouse: Strømstad Birgithe Rebekka 114

Strømstad Birgithe Rebekka 114 was born on Sept 5 1859. She was the daughter of Strømstad

Jørgen Andreas 115.

Dahl Tyra Andrea 116 Dahl Tyra Andrea 116 was born on Nov 19 1881. She died on Oct 6 1883. She was the daughter

of Dahl Theodor Fredrik 113 and of Strømstad Birgithe Rebekka 114.

Page 188: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 188 of 233

6.10 CAROLINE JOHANNE DAHL779 AND HANS CHRISTIAN INGEMANN ØSTVOLD775

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Lorentz Andreasrsen,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Elise Dahl

Nikolai Marenius

Wold Dahl

Hans Georg

Lorentzen Dahl,1831

Karen Dorthea

Stavseth, 1831

Golla Hertel Dahl,

1838

W. Andersen

Lorentz Andreas

Dahl,1840

Anne Regine Dahl,

1844-1911

Bernt Theodor Aas,

1840-1916

Betzy Kristine Dahl,

1846-93

Thor Soleglad,1824-00

Elise Otilde Dahl,1848-73

Bernhard Martin

Ackermand,1844-16

Theodor Fredrik

Dahl, 1850

Caroline Johanne

Dahl,1854

Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold,1847-32

Bertha Mathea Østvold,

1881-1919

Richard Sverre Kreutz,

1885-

Ragnvald Østvold, 1882-

Sigrid Golla Caroline

Østvold, 1884-1969

Andreas Øien

Sverre Østvold, 1886-

Olav Andreas Østvold, 1888-1962

(i)Fredrikke Marie Aagaard, 1888-1931

(ii)Anna Richarda Floer Krane,

Hans Petter Kreutz,

Andreas Øien,

died as a child

Fredrikke (Moja) Marie

Østvold,1925

Normann Tangen,

Sverre Emanuel

Østvold, 1923

Inger Berit Romseland

Olav Andreas Østvold,

1921

Elin Blom-Bakke,

Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold, 1919-

Åse Schanke, 1922-

Elisabeth Johanne

Østvold, 1917-1988

Ola Blæstrud, 1914-1970

Pe

r Ola

v T

an

ge

n,

19

52

Da

g T

an

ge

n, 1

95

3

Me

tte M

arie

Ta

ng

en

,

19

57

Ola

v A

nd

rea

s Ø

stv

old

,

19

52

Sju

r Ove

Østv

old

, 19

54

Sve

rre Ø

stv

old

, 19

56

Ma

rit Østv

old

, 19

50

An

ne

Østv

old

, 19

54

Kirs

ti Østv

old

, 19

46

(i)Arn

e J

oh

an

Va

gle

,

19

46

(ii)Alf S

ve

en

, - 20

10

Siri Ø

stv

old

, 19

56

Ro

lf Sve

inh

au

g, 1

95

6

Ha

ns C

hris

tian

Østv

old

,

19

55

-

Alic

e M

aria

Ale

xa

nd

ra

Cio

pa

la, 1

95

6

Frid

a E

lisa

be

th

Blæ

stru

d, 1

94

2 O

le M

artin

Blæ

stru

d,

19

49

Jo

run

Ma

rgre

te

Blæ

stru

d, 1

94

0

He

ge

Østv

old

Va

gle

, 19

70

Ku

rt Ove

Nils

en,

To

ne

Va

gle

Østv

old

, 19

72

Ma

rku

s E

ng

lert,

Ca

rolin

e Ø

stv

old

, 19

85

Ida

Østv

old

Sve

inh

au

g, 1

99

1

Page 189: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 189 of 233

Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter Dahl 779 Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter Dahl 779 was born on 26 Aug 1854. She was the daughter of

Lorentz Andreas Dahl 203 and of Golla Hansdatter Hertel 205. She was baptised on 26 Aug

1854.

Children of Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter Dahl 779 and Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold 775

1. Bertha Mathea Østvold 781, Birth: 1881, Death: 1919

2. Ragnvald 2 Østvold 782, Birth: 1882

3. Sigrid Golla Caroline Østvold 783, Birth: 1884, Death: in Oslo, 1969

4. Sverre Østvold 784, Birth: 1886, Death: in USA

5. Olav Andreas Østvold 785, Birth: 1888, Death: in Bergen in 1962

Spouse: Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 775

Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 775 was born on 30 Apr 1847. He died in 1932. He was the

son of Ole Østvold 943. Caroline Johanne died around 1890 and Hans Christian remarried to

Birgitte Aas, daughter of Anne Regine Lorentzdatter Dahl and Bernt Theodor Aas and as such

Caroline’s niece.

Bertha Mathea Østvold 781 Bertha Mathea Østvold 781 was born in 1881. She died in 1919. She was the daughter of

Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 775 and of Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter Dahl 779.

Children of Bertha Mathea Østvold 781 and Richard Sverre Kreutz 786

1. Hans Petter Kreutz 787 Spouse: Richard Sverre Kreutz 786

Richard Sverre Kreutz 786 was born in 1885.

Ragnvald 2 Østvold 782 Ragnvald 2 Østvold 782 was born in 1882. He was the son of Hans Christian Ingemann

Page 190: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 190 of 233

Østvold 775 and of Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter Dahl 779.

Sigrid Golla Caroline Østvold 783 Sigrid Golla Caroline Østvold 783 was born in 1884. She died in Oslo in 1969. She was the

daughter of Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 775 and of Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter Dahl

779.

Children of Sigrid Golla Caroline Østvold 783 and Andreas Øien 788

1. Andreas Øien 789 Spouse: Andreas Øien 788

Sverre Østvold 784 Sverre Østvold 784 was born in 1886. He died in USA. He was the son of Hans Christian

Ingemann Østvold 775 and of Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter Dahl 779.

Olav Andreas Østvold 785 Olav Andreas Østvold 785 was born in 1888. He died in Bergen in 1962. He was the son of/

Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 775 and of Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter Dahl 779.

Children of Olav Andreas Østvold 785 and Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie Aagaard 790

1. Elisabeth Johanne Østvold 793, Birth: Mehamn, 15 Jun 1917, Death: Oslo, 1988

2. Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 794, Birth: Mehamn, 26 Sep 1919

3. Olav Andreas Østvold 1977, Birth: Mehamn, 29 Jun 1921

4. Sverre Emanuel Østvold 1978, Birth: Mehamn, 4 Sep 1923

5. Fredrikke ( Moja) Marie Østvold 1979, Birth: Mehamn, 4 Jul 1925

Spouse 1: Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie Aagaard 790

Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie Aagaard 790 was born in Levanger in 1888. She died in Mehamn in

1931. She was the daughter of E Aagaard 791 and of Elisabeth Pettersen 1999.

Spouse 2: Anna Richarda Floer Krane 792

Hans Petter Kreutz 787

He was the son of Richard Sverre Kreutz 786 and of Bertha Mathea Østvold 781.

Andreas Øien 789 He was the son of Andreas Øien 788 and of Sigrid Golla Caroline Østvold 783.

Elisabeth Johanne Østvold 793 Elisabeth Johanne Østvold 793 was born in Mehamn on 15 Jun 1917. She died in Oslo in 1988.

She was the daughter of Olav Andreas Østvold 785 and of Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie Aagaard

790.

Children of Elisabeth Johanne Østvold 793 and Ola Blæstrud 795

1. Jorunn Margrethe Blæstrud 1983, Birth: 1 Sep 1940

2. Frida Elisabeth Blæstrud 1984, Birth: 10 Jan 1942

3. Ole Martin Blæstrud 1990, Birth: 1949

Spouse: Ola Blæstrud 795

Ola Blæstrud 795 was born on 1 Feb 1914. He died in 1970.

Page 191: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 191 of 233

Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 794 Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 794 was born in Mehamn on 26 Sep 1919. He was the son of

Olav Andreas Østvold 785 and of Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie Aagaard 790.

Children of Hans Christian Ingemann Østvold 794 and Åse Schanke 796

1. Kirsti Østvold 797, Birth: 6 Oct 1946

2. Hans Christian Østvold 798, Birth: 25 Feb 1955

3. Siri Østvold 799, Birth: 20 Nov 1956

Spouse: Åse Schanke 796

Åse Schanke 796 was born on 9 Jan 1922.

Olav Andreas Østvold 1977 Olav Andreas Østvold 1977 was born in Mehamn on 29 Jun 1921. He is the son of Olav

Andreas Østvold 785 and of Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie Aagaard 790.

Children of Olav Andreas Østvold 1977 and Elin Blom-Bakke 1980

1. Marit Østvold 1991, Birth: in Arendal, 12 Dec 1950

2. Anne Østvold 1992, Birth: in Arendal, 28 Jun 1954

Spouse: Elin Blom-Bakke 1980

Sverre Emanuel Østvold 1978 Sverre Emanuel Østvold 1978 was born in Mehamn on 4 Sep 1923. He was the son of Olav

Andreas Østvold 785 and of Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie Aagaard 790.

Children of Sverre Emanuel Østvold 1978 and Inger Berit Romseland 1981

1. Olav Andreas Østvold 1993, Birth: in Genova, Italy, 6 May 1952

2. Sjur Ove Østvold 1994, Birth: in Hammerfest, 22 Jun 1954

3. Sverre Østvold 1995, Birth: in Hammerfest, 24 Jul 1956

Spouse: Inger Berit Romseland 1981

Fredrikke ( Moja) Marie Østvold 1979 Fredrikke ( Moja) Marie Østvold 1979 was born in Mehamn on 4 Jul 1925. She is the daughter

of Olav Andreas Østvold 785 and of Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie Aagaard 790.

Children of Fredrikke ( Moja) Marie Østvold 1979 and Norman Tangen 1982

1. Per Olaf Tangen 1996, Birth: in Oslo, 7 Dec 1952

2. Dag Tangen 1997, Birth: in Oslo, 27 Aug 1953

3. Mette Marie Tangen 1998, Birth: in Oslo, 26 Mar 1957

Spouse: Norman Tangen 1982

Jorunn Margrethe Blæstrud 1983 Jorunn Margrethe Blæstrud 1983 was born on 1 Sep 1940. She is the daughter of} Ola

Blæstrud 795 and of Elisabeth Johanne Østvold 793.

Frida Elisabeth Blæstrud 1984 Frida Elisabeth Blæstrud 1984 was born on 10 Jan 1942. She is the daughter of Ola Blæstrud

795 and of Elisabeth Johanne Østvold 793.

Ole Martin Blæstrud 1990 Ole Martin Blæstrud 1990 was born in 1949. He is the son of Ola Blæstrud 795 and of

Page 192: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 192 of 233

Elisabeth Johanne Østvold 793.

Kirsti Østvold 797 Kirsti Østvold 797 was born on 6 Oct 1946. She is the daughter of Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold 794 and of Åse Schanke 796.

Children of Kirsti Østvold 797 and Arne Johan Vagle 800

1. Hege Østvold Vagle 802, Birth: 5 Dec 1970

2. Tone Vagle Østvold 803, Birth: 26 Dec 1972

Spouse 1: Arne Johan Vagle 800

Arne Johan Vagle 800 was born on 30 Apr 1946.

Spouse 2: Alf Sveen 801

He died in Oslo in 2010.

Hans Christian Østvold 798 Hans Christian Østvold 798 was born on 25 Feb 1955. He was the son of Hans Christian

Ingemann Østvold 794 and of Åse Schanke 796.

Children of Hans Christian Østvold 798 and Alice Maria Alexandra Ciopala 804

1. Caroline Østvold 1985, Birth: in St. Gallen, Switzerland, 15 Dec 1985

Spouse: Alice Maria Alexandra Ciopala 804

Alice Maria Alexandra Ciopala 804 was born on 15 Aug 1956.

Siri Østvold 799 Siri Østvold 799 was born on 20 Nov 1956. She is the daughter of Hans Christian Ingemann

Østvold 794 and of Åse Schanke 796.

Children of Siri Østvold 799 and Rolf Sveinhaug 1986

1. Ida Østvold Sveinhaug 1987, Birth: 3 Oct 1991

Spouse: Rolf Sveinhaug 1986

Rolf Sveinhaug 1986 was born on 21 Mar 1956.

Marit Østvold 1991 Marit Østvold 1991 was born in Arendal on 12 Dec 1950. She is the daughter of Olav Andreas

Østvold 1977 and of Elin Blom-Bakke 1980.

Anne Østvold 1992 Anne Østvold 1992 was born in Arendal on 28 Jun 1954. She is the daughter of Olav Andreas

Østvold 1977 and of Elin Blom-Bakke 1980.

Olav Andreas Østvold 1993 Olav Andreas Østvold 1993 was born in Genova, Italy on 6 May 1952. He is the son of Sverre

Emanuel Østvold 1978 and of Inger Berit Romseland 1981.

Sjur Ove Østvold 1994 Sjur Ove Østvold 1994 was born in Hammerfest on 22 Jun 1954. He is the son of Sverre

Emanuel Østvold 1978 and of Inger Berit Romseland 1981.

Page 193: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 193 of 233

Sverre Østvold Sverre Østvold 1995 was born in Hammerfest kommune on 24 Jul 1956. He is the son of Sverre

Emanuel Østvold 1978 and of Inger Berit Romseland 1981.

Per Olaf Tangen 1996 Per Olaf Tangen 1996 was born in Oslo on 7 Dec 1952. He is the son of Norman Tangen 1982

and of Fredrikke ( Moja) Marie Østvold 1979.

Dag Tangen 1997 Dag Tangen 1997 was born in Oslo on 27 Aug 1953. He is the son of Norman Tangen 1982 and

of Fredrikke ( Moja) Marie Østvold 1979.

Mette Marie Tangen 1998 Mette Marie Tangen 1998 was born in Oslo on 26 Mar 1957. She is the daughter of Norman

Tangen 1982 and of Fredrikke ( Moja) Marie Østvold 1979.

Hege Østvold Vagle 802

Hege Østvold Vagle 802 was born on 5 Dec 1970. She is the daughter of Arne Johan Vagle

800 and of Kirsti Østvold 797.

Spouse: Kurt Ove Nilsen 1988

Tone Vagle Østvold 803 Tone Vagle Østvold 803 was born on 26 Dec 1972. She is the daughter of Arne Johan Vagle

800 and of Kirsti Østvold 797.

Spouse: Markus Englert 1989

Caroline Østvold 1985 Caroline Østvold 1985 was born in St. Gallen, Switzerland on 15 Dec 1985. She is the daughter

of Hans Christian Østvold 798 and of Alice Maria Alexandra Ciopala 804.

Ida Østvold Sveinhaug 1987 Ida Østvold Sveinhaug 1987 was born on 3 Oct 1991. She is the daughter of Rolf Sveinhaug

1986 and of Siri Østvold 799.

6.11 ELISE DAHL227

Elise died as a child.

6.12 NIKOLAI MARENIUS WOLD DAHL222

Emigrated to the US.

Page 194: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 194 of 233

7 OLE JOHAN WOLD DAHL118-FURTHER GENERATIONS

7.1 FLORA JENSINE FREDRICIA DAHL242 AND JOHAN EMIL

NICOLAISEN246

Flora Jensine Fredriicia Olsdatter Dahl 242 Flora Jensine Fredriicia Olsdatter Dahl 242 was born on 30 Aug 1838. She was the

daughter of Ole Johan Wold Dahl 118 and of Andrea Maria Rasmussen 119. She

was baptised in Tromsø on 28 Oct 1838.

Children of Flora Jensine Fredriicia Olsdatter Dahl 242 and Johan Emil

Nicolaisen 246

1. Ole Nicolaisen 682, Birth: 1875

Spouse: Johan Emil Nicolaisen 246

Johan Emil Nicolaisen 246 was born in Bergen in 1830.

Ole Nicolaisen 682 Ole Nicolaisen 682 was born in 1875. He was the son of Johan Emil Nicolaisen

246 and of Flora Jensine Fredriicia Olsdatter Dahl 242.

7.2 OLE CHRISTIAN WOLD DAHL243

Ole Christian Wold Dahl was born in Tromsø on July 29th

1844.

7.3 ELLEN MARIE DAHL244

Ellen Marie Dahl was born in Tromsø and grew up with her parents family, she never married.

7.4 PEDER C. KJ. DAHL245

Peder C.Kj. Dahl died as a child.

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Ole Christian Wold Dahl, 1844

Flora Jensine Fredricia Dahl, 1838

Johan Emil Nicolaisen, 1830

Elen Marie Dahl

Peder C.K.Dahl,

Ole Nicolaisen, 1875-

Page 195: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 195 of 233

8 ANNE BIRGITHE DAHL104-FURTHER GENERATIONS

8.1 SIVERT REGOR WITH232

Died as a child.

8.2 SIVERT ODIN WITH233

Died as a child.

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Siv

ert R

eg

no

r With

,18

37

-38

Die

d a

s a

ch

ild

Siv

ert O

din

With

,18

39

-41

Die

d a

s a

ch

ild

Ed

vin

Ma

ren

ius W

ith,1

84

1-3

3

(i) Je

nsin

e M

arie

rge

nsd

atte

r, 18

47

-?

(2) M

are

n A

mu

nd

sd

atte

r,

Siv

ert A

nto

n D

ah

l With

,18

44

(i) Jo

ha

nn

e B

ern

ho

ft Kild

al,1

84

7-7

1

(2) S

ara

Ka

rolin

e K

ristin

e B

risza

ch

, 18

47

-

? Ric

ha

rd B

ern

ha

rd W

ith, 1

84

6-3

0

(i)Olin

e S

op

hie

We

nn

be

rg,1

84

4-7

8

(2)A

ug

usta

Se

ptim

a W

en

nb

erg

,18

47

-38

An

na

Su

sa

nn

e W

ith,1

84

9-3

0

An

ton

Ma

rius S

ch

ultz

e,1

84

6-

Ole

Wo

ld D

ah

l With

,18

51

Em

ma

With

,18

53

Em

ma

Ka

rolin

e W

ith,1

85

4-

Da

nie

l An

dre

as W

ith,1

85

9-3

7

Axe

line

Sch

iotz

,18

69

-38

Page 196: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 196 of 233

8.3 EDVIN MARENIUS WITH234 AND JENSINE MARIE JØRGENSDATTER683, MAREN

AMUNDSEN1464

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Sivert Regnor

With,1837-38

Died as a child

Sivert Odin With,

1839-41

Died as a child

Edvin Marenius With,

1841-1933

(i)Jensine Marie

Jørgensdatter, 1847-

(ii)Maren Amundsen

Sivert Anton Dahl With,

1844-

(i) Johanne Bernhoft

Kildal, 1847-1871

(ii)Sara Karoline

Briszcach, 1847-

Richard Bernhard With, 1846-

1930

(i)Oline Sophie Wennberg,

1844-78

(ii)Augusta Septima

Wennberg,1847-1938

Anna Susanne With,

1849-1930

Anton Marius Schultze,

1846-

Ole Wold Dahl

With,1851

Emma With,

1853

Emma Karoline

With,1854-

Daniel Andreas With,

1859-1937

Axeline Schiotz,

1869-1938

Edvard Reinholdt Andreas

With, 1861-

Rolf Hjalmar With,

1870-1875

Rolf Hjalmar With,

1884-

Hildur With, 1882-Sivert Regnor With,1874-

Mina Petrine Skjong, 1882

Anna Birgitte With,

1880-

Jensine M. With, 1904-

Page 197: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 197 of 233

Edvin Marinius With 234 Edvin Marinius With 234was born in Tromsø on July 16

th 1841 and he died in Harstad on

January 14th

1933. Edvin was “Lapp sheriff” in the Inner Troms Region. He had close contact

and exchanged letters with his cousin Regnor that had emigrated to the US. Edvin married to

Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter from Soløy on November 27th

1873. Edvin had before his marriage

to Jensine a relation to Maren Amundsen. He was the son of Sivert Regnor With 106 and of

Anne Birgithe Olsdatter Dahl 104.

Children of Edvin Marinius With 234 and Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter 683

1. Sivert Regnor With 687, Birth: 1874

2. Rolf Hjalmar With 685, Birth: 1875, Death: 1880

3. Anna Birgitte Edwinsdatter With 686, Birth: 1880

4. Hildur With 1466, Birth: 1882

5. Rolf Hjalmar With 1467, Birth: 1884

Children of Edvin Marinius With 234 and Maren Amundsen 1464

1. Edvard Reinhold Andreas With 1465, Birth: 25 Feb 1861

Spouse 1: Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter 683

Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter was born in Soløy, Lavangen, on March 17th

1847 and she married

to Edvin Marenius With on November 27th

1873. She was the daughter of Jørgen Isaksen at the

farm “Skaret” in Soløy which family two aunts of Maren Mette Johnsen (the spouse of John

Steinar Schjelderup Olaisen) was married to.

Spouse 2: Maren Amundsen 1464

Sivert Regnor With 687 Sivert Regnor With 687 was born in 1874. He was the son of Edvin Marinius With 234 and of

Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter 683.

Children of Sivert Regnor With 687 and Mina Petrine Skjong 1468

1. Jensine M. With 1471, Birth: 1904

Spouse: Mina Petrine Skjong 1468

Mina Petrine Skjong 1468 was born in Ibestad on 30 Aug 1882. She was the daughter of

Rasmus Joakim Pedersen Skjong 1469 and of Berit Kristine Kristensdatter 1470.

Rolf Hjalmar With 685 Rolf Hjalmar With 685 was born in 1875. He died in 1880. He was the son of Edvin Marinius

With 234 and of Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter 683.

Anna Birgitte Edwinsdatter With 686 Anna Birgitte Edwinsdatter With 686 was born in 1880. She was the daughter of Edvin

Marinius With 234 and of Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter 683.

Hildur With 1466 Hildur With 1466 was born in 1882. She was the daughter of Edvin Marinius With 234 and of

Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter 683.

Rolf Hjalmar With 1467 Rolf Hjalmar With 1467 was born in 1884. He was the son of Edvin Marinius With 234 and of

Jensine Marie Jørgensdatter 683.

Page 198: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 198 of 233

Edvard Reinhold Andreas With 1465 Edvard Reinhold Andreas With 1465 was born on 25 Feb 1861. He was the son of Edvin

Marinius With 234 and of Maren Amundsen 1464.

Jensine M. With 1471 Jensine M. With 1471 was born in 1904. She was the daughter of Sivert Regnor With 687 and

of Mina Petrine Skjong 1468.

Page 199: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 199 of 233

8.4 SIVERT ANTON DAHL WITH235 AND JOHANNE BERNHOFT KILDAL688, SARA KAROLINE

KRISTINE BRISZACH689

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Sivert Regnor

With,1837-38

Died as a child

Sivert Odin With,

1839-41

Died as a child

Edvin Marenius With,

1841-1933

(i)Jensine Marie

Jørgensdatter, 1847-

(ii)Maren Amundsen

Sivert Anton Dahl With,

1844-

(i) Johanne Bernhoft

Kildal, 1847-1871

(ii)Sara Karoline

Briszcach, 1847-

Richard Bernhard With, 1846-

1930

(i)Oline Sophie Wennberg,

1844-78

(ii)Augusta Septima

Wennberg,1847-1938

Anna Susanne With,

1849-1930

Anton Marius Schultze,

1846-

Ole Wold Dahl

With,1851

Emma With,

1853

Emma Karoline

With,1854-

Daniel Andreas With,

1859-1937

Axeline Schiotz,

1869-1938

Anne Birgithe With, 1877

Claus Daa Andersen,

1873

Valborg Andrea With,

1878

Jensine Marie With,

1880

H.N.Kitti With, 1883

Carl Prøsch

Sara Johanne With,

1875

Karoline Marie With,

1883

Dagny With, 1886

Søyland

Sivert Regnor With,

1882

Erling With

Andersen, 1905

Håkon With

Andersen, 1907

Sara With

Andersen, 1910

Reggi With, 1915

Dagny With, 1918

Valborg With,

1925

Aase Søyland,

1915

Anders Jon

Søyland, 1918

Inger Johanne

Søyland, 1921

Page 200: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 200 of 233

Sivert Anton Dahl With 235 Sivert Anton Dahl With was born in Tromsø on August 6th 1844. He was married to Johanne

Bernhoft Kildal from Bjarkøy on July 17th 1871. Johanne died and Sivert re-married to Sara

Karoline Briszach on July 28th 1874. Sivert Anton work as an accountant in Vesteraalske

Dampskipsselskap, Stokmarknes that was established in 1881 by his brother Richard Bernhard

With. He was the son of Sivert Regnor With 106 and of Anne Birgithe Olsdatter Dahl 104.

There were no children in the marriage with Johanne Bernhoft Kildal. Children of Sivert Anton Dahl With 235 and Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689

1. Sara Johanne Sivertsdatter With 690, Birth: 1875

2. Anne Birgitte Sivertsdatter With 693, Birth: 6 Jan 1877

3. Valborg Andrea Sivertsdatter With 691, Birth: 20 Sep 1878

4. Jensine Marie Sivertsdatter With 692, Birth: 7 Jun 1880

5. Sivert Regnor With 1472, Birth: 1882

6. H. N. Kitti With 1473, Birth: 1883

7. Karoline Marie With 1474, Birth: 30 Dec 1883

8. Dagny With 1475, Birth: 10 Sep 1886

Spouse 1: Johanne Bernhoft Kildal 688 Johanne Bernhoft Kildal 688 was born in 1847. She died on 15 Oct 1871.

Spouse 2: Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689 Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689 was born in 1847.

Sara Johanne Sivertsdatter With 690 Sara Johanne Sivertsdatter With 690 was born in 1875. She was the daughter of Sivert Anton Dahl

With 235 and of Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689.

Anne Birgitte Sivertsdatter With 693 Anne Birgitte Sivertsdatter With 693 was born on 6 Jan 1877. She was the daughter of Sivert Anton

Dahl With 235 and of Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689.

Children of Anne Birgitte Sivertsdatter With 693 and Claus Daa Andersen 1476

1. Erling With Andersen 1477, Birth: 1905

2. Håkon With Andersen 1478, Birth: 1907

3. Sara With Andersen 1479, Birth: 1910

Spouse: Claus Daa Andersen 1476 Claus Daa Andersen 1476 was born in 1873.

Valborg Andrea Sivertsdatter With 691 Valborg Andrea Sivertsdatter With 691 was born on 20 Sep 1878. She was the daughter of Sivert Anton

Dahl With 235 and of Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689.

Jensine Marie Sivertsdatter With 692 Jensine Marie Sivertsdatter With 692 was born on 7 Jun 1880. She was the daughter of Sivert Anton

Dahl With 235 and of Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689.

Sivert Regnor With 1472 Sivert Regnor With 1472 was born in 1882. He was the son of Sivert Anton Dahl With 235 and of Sara

Karoline Kristine Briszach 689.

Children of Sivert Regnor With 1472

1. Reggi With 1480, Birth: 1915

2. Dagny With 1481, Birth: 1918

Page 201: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 201 of 233

3. Valborg With 1482, Birth: 1925

H. N. Kitti With 1473 H. N. Kitti With 1473 was born in 1883. She was the daughter of Sivert Anton Dahl With 235 and of

Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689.

Spouse: Carl Prøsch 1483

Karoline Marie With 1474 Karoline Marie With 1474 was born on 30 Dec 1883. She was the daughter of Sivert Anton Dahl With

235 and of Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689.

Dagny With 1475 Dagny With 1475 was born on 10 Sep 1886. She was the daughter of Sivert Anton Dahl With 235 and

of Sara Karoline Kristine Briszach 689.

Children of Dagny With 1475 and Søyland 1484

1. Aase Søyland 1485, Birth: 1915

2. Anders Jon Søyland 1486, Birth: 1918

3. Inger Johanne Søyland 1487, Birth: 1921

Spouse: Søyland 1484

Erling With Andersen 1477 Erling With Andersen 1477 was born in 1905. He is the son of Claus Daa Andersen 1476 and of Anne

Birgitte Sivertsdatter With 693.

Håkon With Andersen 1478 Håkon With Andersen 1478 was born in 1907. He is the son of Claus Daa Andersen 1476 and of Anne

Birgitte Sivertsdatter With 693.

Sara With Andersen 1479 Sara With Andersen 1479 was born in 1910. She was the daughter of Claus Daa Andersen 1476 and of

Anne Birgitte Sivertsdatter With 693.

Reggi With 1480 Reggi With 1480 was born in 1915. She was the daughter of Sivert Regnor With 1472.

Dagny With 1481 Dagny With 1481 was born in 1918. She is the daughter of Sivert Regnor With 1472.

Valborg With 1482 Valborg With 1482 was born in 1925. She is the daughter of Sivert Regnor With 1472.

Aase Søyland 1485 Aase Søyland 1485 was born in 1915. She is the daughter of Søyland 1484 and of Dagny With 1475.

Anders Jon Søyland 1486 Anders Jon Søyland 1486 was born in 1918. He is the son of Søyland 1484 and of Dagny With 1475.

Page 202: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 202 of 233

Inger Johanne Søyland 1487 Inger Johanne Søyland 1487 was born in 1921. She is the daughter of Søyland 1484 and of Dagny With

1475.

Page 203: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 203 of 233

8.5 RICHARD BERNHARD WITH156 AND OLINE SOPHIE

WENNBERG313, AUGUSTA SEPTIME WENNBERG698

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Sivert Regnor

With,1837-38

Died as a child

Sivert Odin With,

1839-41

Died as a child

Edvin Marenius With,

1841-1933

(i)Jensine Marie

Jørgensdatter, 1847-

(ii)Maren Amundsen

Sivert Anton Dahl With,

1844-

(i) Johanne Bernhoft

Kildal, 1847-1871

(ii)Sara Karoline

Briszcach, 1847-

Richard Bernhard With, 1846-

1930

(i)Oline Sophie Wennberg,

1844-78

(ii)Augusta Septima

Wennberg,1847-1938

Anna Susanne With,

1849-1930

Anton Marius Schultze,

1846-

Ole Wold Dahl

With,1851

Emma With,

1853

Emma Karoline

With,1854-

Daniel Andreas With,

1859-1937

Axeline Schiotz,

1869-1938

Richarda Oline With, 1875

Johannes Paul Engelmann,

1879

Anna Birgithe

Karoline With, 174

Sophus Regnor

With, 178-1878

Helga With, 1877-

Oline Sophie With,

1880-

Gudrun With, 1881-

Paul Edvard Thode,

1880-1929

Augusta With, 1882-

Alan Nordbø Bakke,

1879-

Boletta With,

1882-1882

Richard Bernhard With jr.,

1884-1954

Magna Andersen Dalsbø,

1885-

Aagot With, 1885-

Oscar Kristoffer Bernt

Fische, 1880-

(ii)(i)

Franz Alfred With Engelmann,

Paul Edvard Thode, 1907-

1992

Aase Linchausen Bjørseth,

1907-1997

Ruth With Thode,

1908-2008

(i)Erling Bjørnrud

(ii)Halvor Skappel

Jon With Thode, 1910-

1967

Ester Heløe, 1911-

1982

Gerd Bakke, 1907-

Richarda Augusta

With Bakke, 1909-

Bjørn Bakke,

1913-

Bergljot With,

1917-

Iversen

Paul Edouard

Thode, 1941

Ulf Thode, 1943

Bjørn Thode, 1943

Erling Bjørnerud,

1937

Hans Jacob

Thode, 1943

Page 204: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 204 of 233

Relations between the Wold-With-Dahl families:

Page 205: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 205 of 233

Richard Bernhard With 156

Richard Bernhard With was born in Tromsø on September 18th

1846 and he died in Oslo on

February 9th

1930. Richard had an early start on his carrier in sea transportation business. He

joined his father that was a seacaptain on voyages from Tromsø to Europe already at the age of

two and experienced dangerous and exciting situations. As 7-years old he convinced his father to

stay on board and not leave the ship during an orcano and they made the way through it. He

became a seacaptain. He lived with mother’s cousin’s (Caroline Sophie Wold) family in

Trondheim when he was at the seaofficers’ academy. He was the secretly (?) engaged to the

daughter in the family (his second-cousin), Oline Sophie Wennberg. After sailing for 10 years

his proposed to Oline Sophie that accepted conditional that he stopped sailing, and they married

in 1873. Oline Sophie died in 1878 and Richard re-married to her sister Augusta Septima

Wennberg in 1879.

After his marriage to Oline Sophie he joined his brother’s business in Andenes, later he

established his own business in Risøyhamn and started a remarkable carrier as a business

entrepreneur. He was in 1881 the founder and first president of Vesteraalens Dampskipsselskap

Ltd., that is still operating the coastliner service along the weat- and northern coast of Norway.

Richard was also one of the founders and directors of Den norske Amerikalinje. He was a

parliamentarian during 1910-12, representing the conservatives and liberals. He was awarded as

Ridder l. kl. of St. Olavs orden in 1896.

Spouse 1-Oline Sophie Wennberg 313

Oline Sophie Wennberg was born in Trondheim in 1844 and she died in Dvergberg, Andøya on

November 3rd

1878. Oline was the daughter of Caroline Sophie Wold and Ole Simonsen

Wennberg. Caroline Sohpie was the cousin of Elen Martha Wold and Oline and her husband,

Richard Bernhard With, was second cousins. Richard stayed with the Wennberg family while

studying at the Trondheim Naval Academy and they then became secretly engaged according to

their daughter, Anna (Nanna) Birgitte Karoline With694.

Spouse 2-Augusta Septima Wennberg 698

Augusta Septima Wennberg was born in Trondheim on August 7th

1847 and she died in Oslo on

January 14th

1938. She was the younger sister of Richard’s first wife, Oline Sophie, and Augusta

moved to the family to take care of the children when Oline Sophie died late 1878. She arried to

Richard one year later. Children of Richard Bernhard With 156 and Oline Sophie Wennberg 313

1. Nanna (anna) Birgitte Karoline With 694, Birth: 30 May 1874

2. Richarda Oline With 695, Birth: 24 Oct 1875

3. Helga Richardsdatter With 696, Birth: 1 May 1877

4. Sophus Regnor With 697, Birth: 23 Jun 1878, Death: 28 Oct 1878

Children of Richard Bernhard With 156 and Augusta Septima Wennberg 698

1. Oline Sophie With 703, Birth: 15 Jan 1880

2. Gudrun With 935, Birth: 8 Jun 1881

3. Augusta With 700, Birth: 22 May 1882

4. Boletta With 704, Birth: 22 May 1882

5. Richard Bernhard With Jr. 701, Birth: 12 Apr 1884, Death: 17 Aug 1954

6. Aagot With 702, Birth: 3 Sep 1885.

Page 206: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 206 of 233

Nanna (anna) Birgitte Karoline With 694 Nanna (anna) Birgitte Karoline With 694 was born on 30 May 1874. She was the daughter of Richard

Bernhard With 156 and of Oline Sophie Wennberg 313.

Richarda Oline With 695 Richarda Oline With 695 was born on 24 Oct 1875. She was the daughter of Richard Bernhard With

156 and of Oline Sophie Wennberg 313.

Children of Richarda Oline With 695 and Johannes Paul Engelmann 1488

1. Alfred Franz With Engelmann 1490, Birth: in Berlin

Spouse: Johannes Paul Engelmann 1488 Johannes Paul Engelmann 1488 was born in Gotha in Germany in 1879. He was the son of Frank

Engelmann 1489.

Helga Richardsdatter With 696 Helga Richardsdatter With 696 was born on 1 May 1877. She was the daughter of Richard Bernhard

With 156 and of Oline Sophie Wennberg 313.

Sophus Regnor With 697 Sophus Regnor With 697 was born on 23 Jun 1878. He died on 28 Oct 1878. He was the son of Richard

Bernhard With 156 and of Oline Sophie Wennberg 313.

Oline Sophie With 703 Oline Sophie With 703 was born on 15 Jan 1880. She was the daughter of Richard Bernhard With 156

and of Augusta Septima Wennberg 698.

Gudrun With 935 Gudrun With 935 was born on 8 Jun 1881. She was the daughter of Richard Bernhard With 156 and of

Augusta Septima Wennberg 698.

Children of Gudrun With 935 and Paul Edvard Thode 1491

1. Paul Edvard Thode 1494, Birth: 20 Apr 1907, Death: 12 Nov 1992

2. Ruth With Thode 1495, Birth: 25 Nov 1908, Death: Aug 2008

3. Jon With Thode 1496, Birth: 28 Mar 1910, Death: 23 Feb 1967

Spouse: Paul Edvard Thode 1491 Paul Edvard Thode 1491 was born on 19 May 1880. He died on 30 Jan 1929. He was the son of Jacob

Georg Thode 1492 and of Hanna Fredrikke Allan Bertheussen 1493.

Augusta With 700 Augusta With 700 was born on 22 May 1882. She was the daughter of Richard Bernhard With 156 and

of Augusta Septima Wennberg 698.

Children of Augusta With 700 and Alan Norbø Bakke 1508

1. Gerd Bakke 1510, Birth: 1907

2. Richarda Augusta With Bakke 1511, Birth: 1909

3. Bjørn Bakke 1512, Birth: 1913

Spouse: Alan Norbø Bakke 1508 Alan Norbø Bakke 1508 was born in 1879. He was the son of Nils Bakke 1509.

Boletta With 704 Boletta With 704 was born on 22 May 1882. She was the daughter of Richard Bernhard With 156 and

of Augusta Septima Wennberg 698.

Page 207: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 207 of 233

Richard Bernhard With Jr. 701 Richard Bernhard With Jr. 701 was born on 12 Apr 1884. He died on 17 Aug 1954. He was the son of

Richard Bernhard With 156 and of Augusta Septima Wennberg 698.

Children of Richard Bernhard With Jr. 701 and Magna Andersen Dalsbø 1513

1. Bergljot With 1516, Birth: 13 Feb 1917

Spouse: Magna Andersen Dalsbø 1513 Magna Andersen Dalsbø 1513 was born on 15 Dec 1895. She was the daughter of Anders Andersen

Dalsbø 1514 and of Anna Pauline Hansen 1515.

Aagot With 702 Aagot With 702 was born on 3 Sep 1885. She was the daughter of Richard Bernhard With 156 and of

Augusta Septima Wennberg 698.

Spouse: Oscar Kristofer Bernt Fischer 1518 Oscar Kristofer Bernt Fischer 1518 was born in 1880. He was the son of Holger Fischer 1519.

Alfred Franz With Engelmann 1490 Alfred Franz With Engelmann 1490 was born in Berlin. He was the son of Johannes Paul Engelmann

1488 and of Richarda Oline With 695.

Paul Edvard Thode 1494 Paul Edvard Thode 1494 was born on 20 Apr 1907. He died on 12 Nov 1992. He was the son of Paul

Edvard Thode 1491 and of Gudrun With 935.

Children of Paul Edvard Thode 1494 and Aase Linchausen Bjørseth 1497

1. Paul Edouard Thode 1500, Birth: 14 Jun 1941

2. Ulf Thode 1502, Birth: 14 Nov 1943

3. Bjørn Thode 1501, Birth: 14 Nov 1943

Spouse: Aase Linchausen Bjørseth 1497 Aase Linchausen Bjørseth 1497 was born on 25 Mar 1907. She died on 2 Mar 1997. She was the

daughter of Carl Ludvig Bjørseth 1498 and of Anna Dorothea Rostad 1499.

Ruth With Thode 1495 Ruth With Thode 1495 was born on 25 Nov 1908. She died on Aug 2008. She was the daughter of Paul

Edvard Thode 1491 and of Gudrun With 935.

Children of Ruth With Thode 1495 and Erling Bjørnrud 1503

1. Erling Bjørnrud 1504, Birth: 15 Jan 1937

Spouse 1: Erling Bjørnrud 1503 162-1

Spouse 2: Halvor Skappel 1505 162-2 Halvor Skappel 1505 was born on 23 Dec 1945.

Jon With Thode 1496 Jon With Thode 1496 was born on 28 Mar 1910. He died on 23 Feb 1967. He was the son of Paul

Edvard Thode 1491 and of Gudrun With 935.

Children of Jon With Thode 1496 and Ester Heløe 1506

1. Hans Jacob Thode 1507, Birth: 4 May 1943

Spouse: Ester Heløe 1506 Ester Heløe 1506 was born on 26 Jul 1911. She died on 27 Apr 1982.

Gerd Bakke 1510 Gerd Bakke 1510 was born in 1907. She was the daughter of Alan Norbø Bakke 1508 and of Augusta

Page 208: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 208 of 233

With 700.

Richarda Augusta With Bakke 1511 Richarda Augusta With Bakke 1511 was born in 1909. She was the daughter of Alan Norbø Bakke

1508 and of Augusta With 700.

Bjørn Bakke 1512 Bjørn Bakke 1512 was born in 1913. He was the son of Alan Norbø Bakke 1508 and of Augusta With

700.

Bergljot With 1516 Bergljot With 1516 was born on 13 Feb 1917. She was the daughter of Richard Bernhard With Jr. 701

and of Magna Andersen Dalsbø 1513.

Spouse: Iversen 1517

Paul Edouard Thode 1500 Paul Edouard Thode 1500 was born on 14 Jun 1941. He is the son of Paul Edvard Thode 1494 and of

Aase Linchausen Bjørseth 1497.

Ulf Thode 1502 Ulf Thode 1502 was born on 14 Nov 1943. He is the son of Paul Edvard Thode 1494 and of Aase

Linchausen Bjørseth 1497.

Bjørn Thode 1501 Bjørn Thode 1501 was born on 14 Nov 1943. He is the son of Paul Edvard Thode 1494 and of Aase

Linchausen Bjørseth 1497.

Erling Bjørnrud 1504 Erling Bjørnrud 1504 was born on 15 Jan 1937. He is the son of Erling Bjørnrud 1503 and of Ruth With

Thode 1495.

Hans Jacob Thode 1507 Hans Jacob Thode 1507 was born on 4 May 1943. He is the son of Jon With Thode 1496 and of Ester

Heløe 1506.

Page 209: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 209 of 233

8.6 ANNA SUSANNE WITH239 AND ANTON MARIUS SCHULTZE241

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Sivert Regnor

With,1837-38

Died as a child

Sivert Odin With,

1839-41

Died as a child

Edvin Marenius With,

1841-1933

(i)Jensine Marie

Jørgensdatter, 1847-

(ii)Maren Amundsen

Sivert Anton Dahl With,

1844-

(i) Johanne Bernhoft

Kildal, 1847-1871

(ii)Sara Karoline

Briszcach, 1847-

Richard Bernhard With, 1846-

1930

(i)Oline Sophie Wennberg,

1844-78

(ii)Augusta Septima

Wennberg,1847-1938

Anna Susanne With,

1849-1930

Anton Marius Schultze,

1846-

Ole Wold Dahl

With,1851

Emma With,

1853

Emma Karoline

With,1854-

Daniel Andreas With,

1859-1937

Axeline Schiotz,

1869-1938

Karl E. Schultze,

1877

Sivert Ragnar

Schultze, 1878

Olaf Dahl

Schultze, 1880

Anne B.M.

Schultze, 1881

Karo E. Schultze,

1883

Karl E. Schultze,

1888

Valborg Schultze,

1892

Martha A.

Schultze, 1885

Page 210: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 210 of 233

Anna Susanne With 239 Anna Susanne With 239 was born on 12 May 1849. She died on 7 May 1930. She was the daughter of

Sivert Regnor With 106 and of Anne Birgithe Olsdatter Dahl 104.

She was baptised on 9 Sep 1849.

Children of Anna Susanne With 239 and Anton Marius Schultze 241

1. Karl E. Schultze 1520, Birth: 1877

2. Sivert Ragnar Schultze 1521, Birth: 1878

3. Olaf Dahl Schultze 1522, Birth: 1880

4. Anne B. M. Schultze 1523, Birth: 1881

5. Karo E. Schultze 1524, Birth: 1883

6. Martha A. Schultze 1525, Birth: 1885

7. Karl E. Schultze 1526, Birth: 1888

8. Valborg Schultze 1527, Birth: 1892

Spouse: Anton Marius Schultze 241 Anton Marius Schultze 241 was born in 1846.

Karl E. Schultze 1520 Karl E. Schultze 1520 was born in 1877. He was the son of Anton Marius Schultze 241 and of Anna

Susanne With 239.

Sivert Ragnar Schultze 1521 Sivert Ragnar Schultze 1521 was in 1878. He was the son of Anton Marius Schultze 241 and of Anna

Susanne With 239.

Olaf Dahl Schultze 1522 Olaf Dahl Schultze 1522 was born in 1880. He was the son of Anton Marius Schultze 241 and of Anna

Susanne With 239.

Anne B. M. Schultze 1523 Anne B. M. Schultze 1523 was born in 1881. She was the daughter of Anton Marius Schultze 241 and of

Anna Susanne With 239.

Karo E. Schultze 1524 Karo E. Schultze 1524 was in 1883. She was the daughter of Anton Marius Schultze 241 and of Anna

Susanne With 239.

Martha A. Schultze 1525 Martha A. Schultze 1525 was born in 1885. She was the daughter of Anton Marius Schultze 241 and of Anna

Susanne With 239.

Karl E. Schultze 1526 Karl E. Schultze 1526 was born in 1888. He was the son of Anton Marius Schultze 241 and of Anna Susanne

With 239.

Valborg Schultze 1527 Valborg Schultze 1527 was born in 1892. She was the daughter of Anton Marius Schultze 241 and of Anna

Susanne With 239.

1.

Page 211: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 211 of 233

8.7 OLE WOLD DAHL WITH237

Ole Wold Dahl With 237 was born in Tromsø in 1851 and he died as a child.

8.8 EMMA WITH1037

Emma With 1037 was born in Tromsø in 1853 and she died as a child.

8.9 EMMA KAROLINE WITH236

Emma Karoline With 236 was born in Tromsø in 1854 and she died as a child.

Page 212: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 212 of 233

8.10 DANIEL ANDREAS WITH240 AND AXELINE SCHIOTZ705

Baard Benjamin Nicolai Dahl,1805-76

Maren Anna Klæboe,1808-80

Simon Andreas Dahl,1807-74

Sophie Andrea Andersen,1810-93

Ole Johan Wold Dahl,1813-75

Maria Andrea Rasmussen,1812-75

Ole Hansen Dahl,1770(74)-1839

Elen Martha Wold 1774-1855

Anne Birgithe Dahl,1814-71

Sivert Regnor With,1810-97

Lorentz Andreas Dahl,1810-1860

Golla Hansdatter Hertel,1813-1866

Sivert Regnor

With,1837-38

Died as a child

Sivert Odin With,

1839-41

Died as a child

Edvin Marenius With,

1841-1933

(i)Jensine Marie

Jørgensdatter, 1847-

(ii)Maren Amundsen

Sivert Anton Dahl With,

1844-

(i) Johanne Bernhoft

Kildal, 1847-1871

(ii)Sara Karoline

Briszcach, 1847-

Richard Bernhard With, 1846-

1930

(i)Oline Sophie Wennberg,

1844-78

(ii)Augusta Septima

Wennberg,1847-1938

Anna Susanne With,

1849-1930

Anton Marius Schultze,

1846-

Ole Wold Dahl

With,1851

Emma With,

1853

Emma Karoline

With,1854-

Daniel Andreas With,

1859-1937

Axeline Schiotz,

1869-1938

Arthur Schiotz With, 1888

(i)Pauline Kent, 1903

(ii)Myrt Scharf, 1894

Georg Orlando With, 1892-1963

Elizabeth Marie Milligan, 1892-1991

Torolf Edwin With, 1901-1979

Helen Lucile Hanna, 1903-1978

Georg Orlando With, 1923-1984

Joan Frances Cambell,1925-1985

Richard Edwin With, 1935

Necis Cecilie Moorhead, 1938-

1968

Nancy Hanna With, 1934

Georg F. Merill, 1932

Helen Anna With, 1930-1995

Ferdinand Vincent Huber,

1925

Gregory Georg

With, 1952

Peter James With,

1954

Linda Joan With,

1956

Ferdinand Vincent

Huber, 1952

Nancy Ann Huber,

1955

David Andrew

Huber, 1957

Linda Linn Merill,

1965

Georg Edwin

Merill, 1966

Tracy Linn With,

1961-68

Richard Daniel

With, 1961-1968

Page 213: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 213 of 233

Daniel Andreas With 240 Daniel Andreas With 240 was born on 18 Sep 1859. He died in 1937. He was the son of Sivert Regnor With

106 and of Anne Birgithe Olsdatter Dahl 104.

Children of Daniel Andreas With 240 and Axeline Schiotz 705

1. Arthur Schiotz With 708, Birth: Oct 1889, Death: 13 Jun 1955

2. Georg Orlando With 709, Birth: 25 Jul 1892, Death: May 1963

3. Thorolf Edwin With 710, Birth: 14 Jul 1901, Death: 10 Dec 1979

Spouse: Axeline Schiotz 705 Axeline Schiotz 705 was born in 1869. She died in 1938. She was the daughter of Fredrik Axel Schiotz 706

and of Jørgine Knudsen 707.

Arthur Schiotz With 708 Arthur Schiotz With 708 was born on Oct 1889. He died on 13 Jun 1955. He was the son of Daniel Andreas

With 240 and of Axeline Schiotz 705.

Spouse 1: Pauline Kent 711 Pauline Kent 711 was born in 1903.

Spouse 2: Myrt Scharf 712 Myrt Scharf 712 was born in 1894.

Georg Orlando With 709 Georg Orlando With 709 was born on 25 Jul 1892. He died in May 1963. He was the son of Daniel Andreas

With 240 and of Axeline Schiotz 705.

Children of Georg Orlando With 709 and Elizabeth Marie Milligan 713

1. Georg Orlando With 1528, Birth: 29 Oct 1923, Death: 14 Oct 1984

Spouse: Elizabeth Marie Milligan 713 Elizabeth Marie Milligan 713 was born on 8 Dec 1892. She died in May 1991.

Thorolf Edwin With 710 Thorolf Edwin With 710 was born on 14 Jul 1901. He died on 10 Dec 1979. He was the son of Daniel

Andreas With 240 and of Axeline Schiotz 705.

Children of Thorolf Edwin With 710 and Helen Lucile Hanna 714

1. Helen Anna With 1533, Birth: 19 Mar 1930, Death: 8 Sep 1995

2. Nancy Hanna With 1534, Birth: 26 May 1934

3. Richard Edwin With 1535, Birth: 16 Nov 1935

Spouse: Helen Lucile Hanna 714 Helen Lucile Hanna 714 was on 13 Jun 1903. She died on 26 Aug 1978. She was the daughter of Wiliam

Lorimer Ii Hanna 715 and of Maud Laub 716.

Georg Orlando With 1528 Georg Orlando With 1528 was born on 29 Oct 1923. He died on 14 Oct 1984. He was the son of Georg

Orlando With 709 and of Elizabeth Marie Milligan 713.

Children of Georg Orlando With 1528 and Joan Frances Campbell 1529

1. Gregory Georg With 1530, Birth: 25 Oct 1952

2. Peter James With 1531, Birth: 17 Mar 1954

3. Linda Joan With 1532, Birth: 23 Nov 1956

Spouse: Joan Frances Campbell 1529 Joan Frances Campbell 1529 was born on 1 Mar 1925. She died on 18 Apr 1985.

Helen Anna With 1533 Helen Anna With 1533 was born on 19 Mar 1930. She died on 8 Sep 1995. She was the daughter of Thorolf

Edwin With 710 and of Helen Lucile Hanna 714.

Page 214: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 214 of 233

Children of Helen Anna With 1533 and Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1536

1. Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1537, Birth: 1952

2. Nancy Ann Huber 1538, Birth: 1955

3. David Andrew Huber 1539, Birth: 1957

Spouse: Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1536 Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1536 was born in 1925.

Nancy Hanna With 1534 Nancy Hanna With 1534 was born on 26 May 1934. She is the daughter of Thorolf Edwin With 710 and of

Helen Lucile Hanna 714.

Children of Nancy Hanna With 1534 and George F. Merill 1540

1. Linda Ann Merill 1541, Birth: 22 Mar 1965

2. Georg Edwin Merill 1542, Birth: 7 Aug 1966

Spouse: George F. Merill 1540 George F. Merill 1540 was born on 27 Mar 1932.

Richard Edwin With 1535 Richard Edwin With 1535 was born on 16 Nov 1935. He is the son of Thorolf Edwin With 710 and of Helen

Lucile Hanna 714.

Children of Richard Edwin With 1535 and Necis Ceclie Moorhead 1543

1. Traci Lynn With 1544, Birth: 22 Mar 1961, Death: 6 Jul 1968

2. Richard Daniel With 1545, Birth: 14 Sep 1961, Death: 6 Jul 1968

Spouse: Necis Ceclie Moorhead 1543 Necis Ceclie Moorhead 1543 was born on 30 Oct 1938. She died on 6 Jul 1968.

Gregory Georg With 1530 Gregory Georg With 1530 was born on 25 Oct 1952. He is the son of Georg Orlando With 1528 and of Joan

Frances Campbell 1529.

Peter James With 1531 Peter James With 1531 was born on 17 Mar 1954. He is the son of Georg Orlando With 1528 and of Joan

Frances Campbell 1529.

Linda Joan With 1532 Linda Joan With 1532 was born in 23 Nov 1956. She is the daughter of Georg Orlando With 1528 and of

Joan Frances Campbell 1529.

Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1537 Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1537 was born in 1952. He is the son of Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1536 and of

Helen Anna With 1533.

Nancy Ann Huber 1538 Nancy Ann Huber 1538 was born in 1955. She is the daughter of Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1536 and of

Helen Anna With 1533.

David Andrew Huber 1539 David Andrew Huber 1539 was born in 1957. He is the son of Ferdinand Vincent Huber 1536 and of Helen

Anna With 1533.

Linda Ann Merill 1541 Linda Ann Merill 1541 was born in 22 Mar 1965. She is the daughter of George F. Merill 1540 and of Nancy

Hanna With 1534.

Page 215: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 215 of 233

Georg Edwin Merill 1542 Georg Edwin Merill 1542 was born in 7 Aug 1966. He is the son of George F. Merill 1540 and of Nancy

Hanna With 1534.

Traci Lynn With 1544 Traci Lynn With 1544 was born in 22 Mar 1961. She died on 6 Jul 1968. She was the daughter of Richard

Edwin With 1535 and of Necis Ceclie Moorhead 1543.

Richard Daniel With 1545 Richard Daniel With 1545 was born in 14 Sep 1961. He died on 6 Jul 1968. He was the son of Richard

Edwin With 1535 and of Necis Ceclie Moorhead 1543.

Page 216: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 216 of 233

9 DAHL EMIGRANTS

A number of the Dahl family members emigrated for different countries, however most of

them for North America, USA and Canada. Among those are:

Name

Familtytree

number

Immigration

dateTo/destination

1 Aall, Anathon

2 Aas, Bernt Theodor 126

3 Bjørnrud, Erling 1504

4 Bøe, Regine Olsen 1648 1881

5 Daae, Herman 1963 Sweden, Canada, pilot-electro engineer

6 Dahl, Adolph Herman Hermansen 150

7 Dahl, Anton Hermansen 665 1905

8 Dahl, Bjarne 1899 New Jersey

9 Dahl, Borghild 168 Chicago, USA

10 Dahl, Herman Richard Klæboe 144

11 Dahl, Nikolai Marenius 222

12 Dahl, Olaf Georg Martin 149 1902 Canada

13 Dahl, Oluf Dahl 262

14 Dahl, Ragnvald 169

15 Dahl, Regnor Fredrik Lauritz 173 1881

16 Dahl, Simon Kristian 1875 Naval engineer, South Africa,Los Angeles

17 Dahl, Sofie Helene 1888

18 Enger, Karl 1843

19 Krohn, Ivar Karl 1889

20 Krohn, Jens 1893

21 Krohn, Simon Einar 1890

22 Lilleåren, Anna Johannessen 1951

23 Lindeberg, Marie 249 1881

24 Michalsen, Anna Amalie 254

25 Michalsen, Maren Anna 257

26 Natvig, Regine Birgithe 250

27 Tidemann (Marcusdatter), Martha Andrea 952

28 With, Daniel Andreas 240

29 Østvold, Sverre 784

Page 217: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 217 of 233

10 GEOGRAPHY

Vadsø

Kirkenes

Nesseby Hammerfest

Kirkenes Skjervøy

Kirkenes Tromsø

Andøy/Andenes

Kvæfjord

Øksnes/Langenes

Karasjokk

Gibostad Ibestad

Steigen

Rødøy

Trondheim

es

Ålesund

Valdres/Sør-Aurdal

Sokndal/Kirkebø Skåtøy/Kragerø

Hurdal

Oslo

Furnes

Page 218: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 218 of 233

10.1 KVAEFIORD

It all started here, our first Dahl, Ole Hansen Dahl, was born in Dale i Kvaefiord. His

grandparents (father’s parents) lived at Oeynes where Ole’s father, Hans Rasmussen was

born. The family moved across the fiord to Dahle at about 1755(must be this , not 1855 as in

the org text), here he met Beret Andersdatter and Ole was born, most likely in 1774. He was

at least baptized in the church 13 March 1774. (4 Sunday of Lent). Ole took the name Dahl

after the farm Dale where he grew up. The Dale farm was at that time owned by Nils

Pedersen, farmer and local police man. In the register he is mentioned as Beret’s brother,

most likely half-brother. After receiving training to become a teacher by the vicar, Buchardt,

Ole got a job in the late 1790 as school master in Kierringoe, Steigen. Ole had no siblings and

with that Dahlfamily left Kvaefiord.

Oynes, “where it all started” is the farm on the edge of Kveoy. There are a lot of old graves

along the sea side. Most of them from the early “Iron-age”. The area is full with stories about

both people and powers. There is a story written by the vicar in the Baptist church Helbostad

in the 1920, “Havet Gru”. The island seems to have been the first “kremmerleie” or

“borgerleie” in Kvaefiord. Already in 1680 there was a beggar there, Jon Ellingsen Normann,

he moved in 1682 to Elgsnes. Later Tarald Gievaer had this borgerleie at Oynes, until he

married the widow at Vebostad (on the same island) and moved there. There is no more

information about “borgere” at Oynes. The place has poor harbour, so maybe it was left due

to that, even though otherwise it is easy to reach by boat. (Erling Linde, Kvaefiord boka,

1960).

The Dahl family returned to Kvaefiord in 1951, Anna Ida Mathilde Dahl married to John

Roest Scheldrup Olaisen without any knowledge about the family history. In 1950 they

bought the shop Dankert Nilsen from Klaus Roest. For the first 4 years the family rented

house from Asta Roervik, Dalsnes this was part of the Dalegard where Ole grew up! 1956-57

Laily Oynes was working as maid with Olaisens, and John had much business with the

people at Oynes and Dahle. The Dahl family disappeared from Kvaefiord when Anna passed

away in 2006.

10.2 TRONDHEIM

Somehow Ole, while at the school in Kjerringoy,met his Ellen from Strinda, Trondheim, how

they met is another story. But Dahl family from that time seems to have many connections to

Trondheim. Ellen and Ole’s daughter ,Anne Birgitte, married her cousin Sivert With from

Trondheim and their son, Richard With (father of the coast liner!) was married to the sisters

Page 219: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 219 of 233

Oliane and Augusta (both at the same time??) Wennberg, daughters of school principal Ole

Wennberg, Bakkland school, Trondheim.

Familes Wold,Baard and the son Joergen Lorentz, all lived at Lademoen. Nanna With

describes their lands in her book “Underveis” in this way: Joergen Lorents Wold, who

besides being a sailor, harbour-master and officer also had a well known hostel and

restaurant, ”Wolds Minne” at his beautiful farm, which is mentioned in Carl W. Schnitler’s

book; “Norwegian Gardens”. Here count Schmettow’s coach was used as hut in the garden.

Close by was police Wold’s beautiful farm, “Lykkens Prove”.

Here is a map over today’s Trondheim with Strinda and Lademoen:

Lademoen

Dahl family still has connetions to Trondheim. Gudreun Dahl, Gustav Dahl’s youngest

daughter from his first marriage, a nurse, midwife and nurse, she worked for many years at

E.C Dahls, she was married to Nikolai Eidem . their daughter, Randi, married with Jens Erik

Lervik, live in Kval, just outside Trondheim. Andrea Erikka Dahl, Gustav Dahl’s oldest

daughter, was married to Olaf Rokseth from Trondheim and in her old age, she lived in

Trondheim. Their son, Rolf, prof.med, was working for many years at Trondheim Hospital.

10.3 TROMSOE

Around 1818, Ole was headhunted, to Tromsoe to establish a public school there. Vicar

Bochgrevink, made sure that “Klokkergarden”, north on the island, was there for Ole.

“klokkergarden” was just above today’s University, it reached to the seaside. The house was

torn down in 1945, and was used by Bjerk’s horse riding school. It is thought that the family

settled here when they came to Tromsoe. Later, 1825, Ole got some land in the city and built

a house close to the school, Sjogata 7.

Sjøgata anno 1955, view in direction of Sjøgata 2 where Ole Wold Dahl’s house was. The

school was across the street to the left.

Page 220: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 220 of 233

Ole’s son, Ole Wold Dahl, took over as teacher and paris clerk and was central figure in the

development of the public school in Tromsoe. Ole’s 2.son, Simon, got “borgerskap” in 1833

and he had form some years a shop in Strandskillet (Strandgata 29), Ole’s daughter Anne

Birgitte and family lived at Soroya, also Tromsoe, where Richard Bermhard With grew up.

There are many of Ole’s descendants living in Tromsoe for the next generations.

The Dahl family took in many ways part in the development of Tromsoe in 1800’s. Many of

the “Dahl- properties” are mentioned in Tromsoe City’s history (book 1) by N.A. Ytreberg,

like:

We have to count Ole Dahl’s sons (but OHD had 4 sons, Baard ,Lorentz, Simon, Ole) who both became business men! Autumn 1818 an important meeting concerning schools in Tromsoe was held, this was in connection to the Law of 14 June,1816. It was decided to try with one school in Tromsoe,. This was constructed close to the church (now Bankgaten 5), two floors, torvtak(grass roof) 221/2 alen long and 6 alen wide. Four rooms + kitchen (with open fire place and oven). The Bishop Krogh was asked to make sure this building was arranged in accordance to the people’s wishes, and also to decide how much they all should contribute for a teacher’s salary. - Vicar Borchgrevink made sure the “Klokkergarden” wa made available for Ole Dahl. In addition Ole Dahl got in 1825 land in the city and built a house there (Sjogata 7) - Klokker Dahl built Sjogata 7 (1825), this was later owned by his son Baard Dahl. This is maybe the oldest house in the city with “laying panel. The door is plain, but the window frames have the typical empire-design. -

Sjøgata 7 (Ole Hansen Dahls house)

Bankgata 5 (The school)

”Klokkergarden”

Strandskillet and Sorbyen-Anne Birgitte og

Sivert Withs house and Simon Dahl’s shop

Page 221: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 221 of 233

In the school nothing happened until the city got their own administration, klokker Dahl passed away in 1839, but his son Ole Wold Dahl had already had this position since 1833. In 1837 he married the vicar’s daughter, Andrea Marie Rasmussen, they built a house on the corner across from the church-yard, where the telegraph now stands. - Simon Dahl had a shop in the two floors house close by Strandgata 29. In 1852 there was a fire in parish clerk Dahl ( Ole Wold Dahl)’s house. This house had torv-roof, which they think helped to stop the fire from spreading.

Anne Birgitte and Sivert Regnor With’s house in “Sørbyen” is also described in the book

“Underveis” by Nanna With, the daughter of Richard Bernhard With.

The Dahl and With-families also took part in the social circles and life of Tromsoe:

10.4 VADSOE

Vadsoe has been written in many different ways throughout the history, Vasthoen(1520),

Vaadsoeen(1567), Wadzoen (1597), Wadsoe(1620), Watsoe(1683), Vasoen (1694) and

Vadsoen (1717). Vadsoe has been a fishing village and expected inhabited by Norwegians in

more than 300 years before it became a city in 1833.

From mid 1800 Vadsoe and the rest of east Finnmark experienced good economy and more

people moved here. The brothers Lorentz Andreas Dahl and Baard Benjamin Nikolai Dahl

(sons of Ellen and Ole Hansen Dahl) moved here in 1830, Lorentz came first and most likely

encouraged his brother to follow, 1838.

Photos of Vadsoe at different times in modern history:

Party in Hans With’s garden, Richard

Bernhard With with a stiff hat to the left.

Page 222: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 222 of 233

Lorentz Andreas Dahl came to Vadsoe around 1830, he was the first of us Dahl. He started

business at Torvet, where Vadsoe Modeforretning was for some time.

Andreas Esbensen, father in law to Johan Marenius Rasch Dahl, started shop in Kirkegata,

this was later run by Johan.

When Johan passed away, Andrea Erikka and daughters Thora and Erikka moved to

Teatergata 54.

Different generations of Esbensen has lived in Esbensengarden, here also Carl Brammer

Esbensen married to Maren Andrea Dahl (daughter of Simon Dahl, who was brother of Baard

Benjamin Nikolai Dahl and uncle of Johan Rasch), so also a Dahl has lived there!

A census was held in 1900, then Anna Eugenie and Gustav with the children Andrea, Dagmar

and Johan (Edvard) together with Anna’s parents lived in Slettengaten 116. In 1908 Gustav

bought the neighbouring house Slettengata 117, where they moved and lived later.

Slettengata 116-117

Herman Dahls street

Lorentz Dahl had his business in Torvet.

FromTanavegen up to Glimmerstua

kindergarden

Kirkegata and Andreas Esbensens

business and house which was taken over by his son-in-law Johan M. Rasch

Dahl.

Teatergata,

Esbensen’s house

Page 223: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 223 of 233

11 INDEX Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

AA Ananiassen Vilgunn 1217 124-132

Aagaard E 791 190 Ananiassen Willy 1210 119-124

Aagaard Fredrikke ( Frida) Marie 790 190 Andersdatter Beret 974 8

Aall Achtan Louis de Serèrene d'Acqueria 2015 107 Andersdatter Kristina Margreta 141 178

Aall Alf Immanuel Gustav 272 105-107 Andersen Claus Daa 1476 200

Aall Anathon August Fredrik 266 105-107 Andersen Erling With 1477 200-201

Aall Cato Nicolai Benjamin Nilsen 265 105-107 Andersen Håkon With 1478 200

Aall Charlotte Henrikke Ragna 271 105-107 Andersen Per Oscar 489 54

Aall Dagny Therese Susanne 2012 105-108 Andersen Petter Joacim Dahl 491 54-58

Aall Esther Nathalia Mathilde 268 105-107 Andersen Sara With 1479 200-201

Aall Hans Cato 666 105 Andersen Sophie Andrea 661 12

Aall Herman Johan Regnor Harris 269 105-107 Andersen Tine Dahl 490 54-58

Aall Maren Anna Nielsine 270 105 Andersen Trine 447 55

Aall Niels Anton Hansen 175 11-104-105 Andersen W. 228 179

Aall Niels Emil Ude 2011 108 Andreassen Bjørnar 1177 130

Aall Oskar Ørnulf de Serèrene d'Acqueria 2016 107 Andreassen Emilie Hov 1647 133-139

Aall Signe Olava Nicoline 273 105-108 Andreassen Gudrun Magdalene 1623 120

Aall Vera Dagny 248 108 Andreassen Jan Eugen 1628 120-125

Aars Agnar 1594 108-109 Andreassen Johan Edvart Charles 1624 120

Aars Elin 1586 109-110 Andreassen Monica 1179 130-138

Aars Ingeborg 1592 110-111 Andreassen Ole Andreas 1178 130-138

Aars Ivar 740 108-109 Andreassen Patrick Aune 1643 133-139

Aars Jon 1587 109-110 Andreassen Peer 1633 125-133

Aars Jonathan 735 107-108 Andreassen Sissel 1632 125-133

Aars Kristian 1602 109-110 Andreassen Tonje 1180 130-138

Aars Kristian Birch - Reichenvald 275 107 Andrup Christine Marie 806 14

Aars Kristine 1599 109-110 Aslaksen Elen Kristine 296 80-81

Aars Laila 734 107-108 Aspestrand Elisabet 1788 165

Aars Marit 1585 109 Aune Ann - Christin 1640 133

Aars Solveig 1596 108-109 Aune Arnulf 1641 133

Aars Solveig 1601 109-110 BAars Torstein 1595 108-109 Baastad Maren 264 36

Aars Vilde 1598 109-110 Baier Susanne Charlotte 1921 162

Aars Øystein 739 108 Bakke Alan Norbø 1508 206

Aarvig Per 1091 21 Bakke Bjørn 1512 206-208

Aas Anna Theodora 768 181-182 Bakke Gerd 1510 206-208

Aas Bernt 1 Theodor 769 181 Bakke Nils 1509 206

Aas Bernt 2 Theodor 764 181-182 Bakke Richarda Augusta With 1511 206-208

Aas Bernt Theodor 126 180-181 Bakken Jørn Ivar 1753 102

Aas Bernt Theodor 759 181 Bakken Torill 1307 127

Aas Birgitte 765 181 Balto Marianne 1256 126

Aas Dorthea 770 181-182 Barlien Harald 610 92-93

Aas Einar 1093 21 Barlien Ingrid Nanna 612 92-93

Aas Golla Ulrikka 766 181-182 Barlien Johannes 611 92-93

Aas Hilda 1 763 181 Barlien Terje 609 92

Aas Hilda 2 774 181 Barricelli Luisa Aall 742 107-108

Aas Ida 767 181-182 Barricelli Maurizio 276 107

Aas Johannes 772 181-182 Barricelli Nils Aall 741 107-108

Aas Margit 773 181-182 Beck Annie Marie Juell 1880 153

Aas Sara Fredrikke 771 181-182 Beebe Mr 260 28

A Bekken Andre 503 53

Abelstad Anne Lise 1157 129 Bekken Lasse Falch 504 53-56

Abhari Ahmed El - 633 97-98 Bekken Stian Falch 505 53-56

Abhari Somaya El - 632 97-98 Bekkevold Dagny Valborg 2012 108

Ackermand Bernhard Martin 110 186 Bekkonen Mathis 1269 36

Aikio Anne - Mona 467 53 Bendiksen Freidis 1318 128

Almquist Karin 1806 172 Berg Kari 1881 154

Amundsen Maren 1464 196-197 Berg Ragnhild 1143 119

Ananiassen Anny 1121 118 Bergesen Solveig 448 50

Ananiassen Arnhild 1219 124-132 Berle Alvilda (Ba) 1938 160

Ananiassen Edgar 1207 119-124 Bertheussen Hanna Fredrikke Allan 1493 206

Ananiassen Eilert 1206 119 Betsi Anja 1241 125-133

Ananiassen Erling 1208 119-124 Betsi Benedikte 1239 133-139

Ananiassen Gerd Tove 1734 51 Betsi Hanne 1238 133-139

Ananiassen Kirsten 1209 119-124 Betsi Jens Roald 1240 125-133

Ananiassen Lill Eirin 1221 124-132 Betsi John Ingvald 1236 125-133

Ananiassen Magna 1294 121 Betsi Roald 1235 125

Ananiassen Ronny 1218 124-132 Betten Camilla 623 97

Ananiassen Tommy 1220 124-132 Betten Iris Cordelia Dahl 625 97-98

Page 224: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 224 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Betten John Rainer 624 97-98 Dahl Anathon 1364 31-32

Bigset Kolbjørn Arne 392 63 Dahl Andrea Erikka 24 40-41-42

Bigseth Gabriel 398 66-70 Dahl Andrea Skrede 454 52-56

Bigseth Kjetil 394 63-66 Dahl Anette 1782 160-163

Bigseth Mathias 401 66 Dahl Ann Karin 343 65-121-128

Bigseth Mille Andrea 400 66-70 Dahl Anna 17 62-63

Bigseth Rebekka 397 66-70 Dahl Anna Hemmingdine 137 178-179

Bigseth Vilgunn 393 63-66 Dahl Anna Ida Mathilde 155 36-37

Bishop Jason 1728 55 Dahl Anna Ida Mathilde 2 40-74-75

Bjørnrud Erling 1503 207 Dahl Anna Margrethe 1090 20-21

Bjørnrud Erling 1504 207-208 Dahl Anna Nicoline Baardsdatter 247 27-28

Bjørseth Aase Linchausen 1497 207 Dahl Anna Rose 1571 144-146

Bjørseth Carl Ludvig 1498 207 Dahl Anne Birgithe Olsdatter 104 14-195

Blom- Bakke Elin 1980 191 Dahl Anne Kristine 644 83

Blæstrud Frida Elisabeth 1984 190-191 Dahl Anne Regine Lorentzdatter 125 13-180-181

Blæstrud Jorunn Margrethe 1983 190-191 Dahl Anne Sophie (Anka) 1821 159

Blæstrud Ola 795 190 Dahl Annikken 628 97-98

Blæstrud Ole Martin 1990 190-191 Dahl Anton Hermansen 665 19-20

Bohinen Reidun 1321 128 Dahl Anton William 1366 31-32

Bondix Fredrikke Nicoline Cathrina 947 28 Dahl Arnfinn 460 51-53

Bore Fabienne 97 76 Dahl Baard Nikolai Baardsen 72 16-30-31

Boyle Eila Suzanne 423 51-54 Dahl Baard Nikolai Benjamin 53 11-16-18-28

Boyle Jacob Bishop 435 55-59 Dahl Berit 1940 160-163

Boyle Johan Peter 1723 51 Dahl Betsy Olefine 1824 12-156-157

Boyle John Morten 421 51-54 Dahl Betzy Kristine 224 13-184-185

Boyle Kathleen Margrethe 422 51-54 Dahl Bjarne 1899 150

Boyle Liv Elisabeth 424 51-55 Dahl Bjørg Vilgunn 18 62-63

Boyle Maiken Karolina 426 54-58 Dahl Bjørn Albert 21 62-64

Brahde Alf Cato Aall 744 108-109 Dahl Bjørn-Erik 283 64-67

Brahde Camilla 1583 109-110 Dahl Borghild 168 19-20

Brahde Rebecca 1582 109-110 Dahl Brandon 1692 25-26

Brahde Rolf 743 108 Dahl Bård Nicolai Zakarias 1369 31-33

Brattsti Adrian Schjelderup Olaisen 317 77 Dahl Carl Anthon Reiner Baardsen 83 112-113

Briszach Sara Karoline Kristine 689 199-200 Dahl Caroline 1697 145-147

Bruun Brynjolf 1946 161 Dahl Caroline Johanne Lorentsdatter 779 14-188-189

Bruun Fredrik Kristian 1947 161-164 Dahl Catherine Barbara 1936 160-163

Bruun Fredrikke Johanne Olava ( Rikka) 1817 158-159 Dahl Cathrine Marie Hansdatter 134 178

Bye Odd 44 73 Dahl Chris 1691 25-26

Bye Osvald Birger 43 73 Dahl Christian 473 53-57

Bøe Regine Olsen 1648 18-22-23 Dahl Cristopher 1664 24-25

C Dahl Cristopher 1696 145-147

Campbell Joan Frances 1529 213 Dahl Dag Agnar 1122 65-118-121

Christiansen Tora 1897 150 Dahl Dagmar Karoline 38 40-43-44

Christie Aagot 1915 159-162 Dahl Dankert Erik 15 62

Christie Helga 1907 159-161 Dahl David Jay 1614 143

Christie Johan (Johnny) Koren 1909 159-161 Dahl Dawn Dagny Mathilda 1650 23-24

Christie Margrethe Sofie Fredrikke (Mosse) 1912 159-161 Dahl Eduard Cornelius 1836 12-149-150

Christie Martha 1908 159-161 Dahl Einar Regnor 1118 117-118

Christie Nils Cornelius 1820 159 Dahl Elenore Anne Christine 1826 12-152-153

Ciopala Alice Maria Alexandra 804 192 Dahl Elenore Detlefine 1834 12-151

Cohn Charlotte 1699 145-147 Dahl Elevine Elisabeth Hansdatter 135 178

Cohn William 1698 145 Dahl Elisabeth 287 64-68

Colmar Mary 1694 145 Dahl Elise 2 227 14-176-193

D Dahl Elise Otilde 109 13-186

Daae Denyse 1917 164 Dahl Ellen Marie 244 14-194

Daae Hermann 1963 161-163 Dahl Elsa 1088 20-21

Daae Ludvig 1964 161-164 Dahl Else Olea 1560 55-59

Daae Peter 1943 161 Dahl Erikka Andrea Johansdatter 153 36

d'Acqueria Gerhardine 729 107 Dahl Erling Finn 1874 159-160

d'Acqueria Oscar Ferdinand 730 107 Dahl Erna 14 62

Dahl Aagot Fredrikke 1876 159-161 Dahl Ester Elisabeth 20 62-63

Dahl Aase 1089 20-21 Dahl Eugenie 35 50

Dahl Adolph Herman Hermansen 150 19-20 Dahl Evald 196 36-37

Dahl Adrian Phillip 1570 144-146 Dahl Fletcher 2009 20

Dahl Agnes Therese Regnorsdatter 668 117-118 Dahl Flora Jensine Fredricia Olsdatter 242 14-194

Dahl Alf Berge 451 52 Dahl Frederick Allen 1563 143

Page 225: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 225 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Dahl Fredrik 442 55-59 Dahl Lorenze Olea 1815 12-167-168

Dahl Fredrik Kristian Bruun 1948 159-161 Dahl Mai Bente 479 51-54

Dahl Fredrik Skrede 453 52-56 Dahl Maren Andrea 1810 12-28-170-171

Dahl Frode 645 83 Dahl Margaret (Peg) Jane 1659 24

Dahl Gabriel Fitch 1569 144-146 Dahl Margareth 618 97

Dahl Georg Sigmund 7 40-61-62 Dahl Marianne 647 83

Dahl Gerd 36 50-51 Dahl Marion 597 92

Dahl Gisle Gunnar 1937 159-160 Dahl Marit 284 53-64-67

Dahl Golla Hertel Lorentsdatter 220 179 Dahl Mathilde Karlsdatter 279 113

Dahl Greg 1662 24-25 Dahl Mathilde Susanne Baardsdatter 174 11-104-105

Dahl Gregory Sheldon 1617 143-145 Dahl Michael 1695 145-146

Dahl Grethe (gift Dahl) 2001 36 Dahl Mimmi Gyda 1722 50-51

Dahl Gudrun 48 40-78-79 Dahl Nathalie 1367 31-33

Dahl Gudrun Elenora 1945 159-161 Dahl Nicolai Benjamin 145 147

Dahl Gunvor Margrethe 16 62-63 Dahl Nikolai 261 31

Dahl Gustav Harald 302 81-91-92 Dahl Nikolai Marenius Wold 222 14-176-193

Dahl Gustav Johansen 3 36-38-39-40-42-80-81 Dahl Nils Aslak 301 81-96-97

Dahl Gøril 464 53-57 Dahl Nils Erling 34 50-51

Dahl Hagerup Zakkæus 1368 31 Dahl Olaf 13 52

Dahl Hannah Christine 475 53-57-67-71 Dahl Olaf 1681 19-20

Dahl Hans Georg Lorentzen 124 13-177-178 Dahl Olaf Georg Martin Hermansen 149 19

Dahl Hansine (Sinus) Bergitte 1813 12-175 Dahl Ole Christian Wold 243 14-194

Dahl Hansine Dorthea Hansdatter 131 178 Dahl Ole Edvard 440 52-55

Dahl Hege 598 92 Dahl Ole Hansen 120 7

Dahl Heidi Vibeke 439 52-55 Dahl Ole Johan Wold 118 14-194

Dahl Helene 468 53-57 Dahl Olga Eugenie 28 40-72-73

Dahl Helga 1822 159 Dahl Oluf 262 31-32

Dahl Henrik Hertel 133 178 Dahl Oluf Edvard Martin 146 16

Dahl Herman Gaustad 334 67-71 Dahl Peder C. Kj. 245 14-194

Dahl Herman Regnold 1649 23-24 Dahl Per Ragnvald 642 83

Dahl Herman Richard Klæboe 144 17-18-19-22-23 Dahl Ragna 1116 117-118

Dahl Hilde Marie 619 97 Dahl Ragna 956 140

Dahl Hjalmar Fredrik Berle 1939 160-163 Dahl Ragnor 1086 141

Dahl Håvard 471 53-57 Dahl Ragnvald 169 19-20

Dahl Inger (inga) Mathisdatter 1072 36-100-101 Dahl Ragnvald Mathis K. 297 81-82-83

Dahl Jakob Kristian 1326 32-33 Dahl Ramona 472 53-57

Dahl James Michael 1693 143-145 Dahl Randolf 565 86

Dahl Jan Einar 1125 121-128 Dahl Rannveig 648 83

Dahl Jan Helge 449 50-52 Dahl Raphael Xeno Skøtt 637 97-99

Dahl Janet Elizabeth 1618 143-145 Dahl Raymond 474 53-57

Dahl Jashua 1690 25 Dahl Rebekka Mathilde Baardsen 248 33

Dahl Jason 1689 25 Dahl Regine Bergitte 1351 31-33

Dahl Johan Edvard 10 40-49-50 Dahl Regnor Fredrik Lauritz Wold 173 114-117-140-141-142

Dahl Johan Fridtjof 31 50 Dahl Reidar 1117 117-118

Dahl Johan Marenius Rasch 8 28-33-34-35-36 Dahl Reidun Andrea 12 62

Dahl Johan Nicolai 154 36 Dahl Renate 465 53-57

Dahl Johan Rasch 111 186-187 Dahl Rita 478 51-54

Dahl Johan Rasch 936 36 Dahl Rolf Engh Johansen 67 36

Dahl Josephine Skøtt 636 97-98 Dahl Rolf Gustav 32 50

Dahl Kaleb Økland 477 51-53 Dahl Rudolf 1365 31-33

Dahl Karin 599 92 Dahl Rudolf Fredrik 955 117

Dahl Karl Anton 277 113 Dahl Ruth Inger 19 62-63

Dahl Karl Fredrik 419 50-51 Dahl Sara 1363 31-32

Dahl Karl Gustav 1099 40-73 Dahl Sebastian 653 83

Dahl Kjell Arne 617 97 Dahl Sheldon Tiedeman 1325 142-143

Dahl Knut 1682 19-20 Dahl Signe Bergliot 1819 159-160

Dahl Knut Juel Hermansen 148 19 Dahl Sigrid Marie 953 142

Dahl Kristin 1781 163-165 Dahl Sigurd Bernhard Hansen 136 178-179

Dahl Laila Gunhild 298 81-85-86 Dahl Simon Kristian 1875 159-160

Dahl Leif - Tore 459 51-53 Dahl Simon Marenius 1811 12-28-148

Dahl Leif 33 50 Dahl Simon Nicolai Marenius 1816 12-158-159

Dahl Leif Albert 1098 40-73 Dahl Simon Sarao 1837 150

Dahl Lena 482 53-57 Dahl Sofie 1896 150

Dahl Liv 600 92 Dahl Sofie Helene 1888 168

Dahl Liv Else 418 50-51 Dahl Sonja 1839 150

Dahl Lorentz Andreas 203 11-13-176 Dahl Sophie Marie 1835 12-151

Dahl Lorentz Andreas Lorentzen 221 13-179 Dahl Sophus Calmeyer 263 16

Dahl Lorentze Golla 132 178 Dahl Steven 1663 24-25

Page 226: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 226 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Dahl Steven Phillip 1567 144 Eidisen Marit 1293 127-135

Dahl Stig Arne 627 97-98 Eidisen Rolf Tore 1290 126

Dahl Stig J. R. 643 83 Eidsvik Marte 556 46-47

Dahl Stine 458 52-56 Eidsvik Ole Alexander 557 46-47

Dahl Susan Lee 1616 143-145 Ellen 1600 109

Dahl Svein Roar 450 50-52 Ellingsdatter Dorte Karine 828 44

Dahl Sverre 165 19-20 Engelmann Alfred Franz With 1490 206-207

Dahl Tamana Louanne 1565 144 Engelmann Frank 1489 206

Dahl Tamina Helena Sundin 425 51-54 Engelmann Johannes Paul 1488 206

Dahl Thea (gift Dahl) 1796 150 Enger Frank 1797 168-169

Dahl Thea 300 81-88-89 Enger Karl 1843 168

Dahl Theodor Fredrik 113 14-187 Enger Roy 1846 168-169

Dahl Thora Agnete 22 40-73 Enger Stella 1798 168-169

Dahl Thora Johansdatter 152 36 Engesæther Birgit 348 65

Dahl Thorleif 166 19-20 Engh Ella 1849 171

Dahl Timian 654 83-84 Englert Markus 1989 193

Dahl Tom Fredrik 438 51-55 Erga Anders Dahl 335 67

Dahl Tone 412 62-64 Eriksen Ingar 1759 103

Dahl Tonje 481 53-57 Erke Alexandra Blaser 568 86

Dahl Tor Erik 463 53-57 Erke Amalie Blaser 569 86

Dahl Tor Gustav 567 86 Erke Dina Alise 575 86-87

Dahl Trygve 1095 36 Erke Elisabeth Blaser 564 86

Dahl Trygve 167 19-20 Erke Erke 841 86

Dahl Trygve 1683 19-21 Erke Frank Dahl 566 86

Dahl Tyra Andrea 116 187 Erke Katrine Johansen 574 86-87

Dahl Vally 278 113 Erke Sophie Blaser 570 86-87

Dahl Vibeke Elisabeth 170 19-21 Esbensen Andreas 3 50 34

Dahl Victoria 1661 24-25 Esbensen Anniken Marika 1970 173-174

Dahl Victoria Skøtt 635 97-98 Esbensen Arnt Nicolay 1850 171

Dahl Wilhelm 1962 160-163 Esbensen Berit (gift Esbensen) 1969 173

Dahl William James 1658 24 Esbensen Carl Brammer 1809 28-170-171

Dahl Ørjan 620 97 Esbensen Carl-Fredrik 1769 172-174

Dahl Øystein 461 51-53-67 Esbensen Christine Margrethe 1958 173-174

Dahl Åse Ingvarda 299 81-94-95 Esbensen Datter 2 1956 172

Dalsbø Anders Andersen 1514 207 Esbensen Erik 1872 172

Dalsbø Magna Andersen 1513 207 Esbensen Erikka Andrea 9 28-34-35

Davidsen Alf Thorvald 1630 125 Esbensen Eva (gift Esbensen) 1957 172

Davidsen Gerd Lillian 1629 125 Esbensen Eystein Fredrik 1771 173-175

Dervola Eila Margrethe 417 50 Esbensen Gudny (dokken) 1853 171-172

Drageset Didrik Meyer 1783 164-165 Esbensen Halfdan 1807 171

Drageset Jarle 1787 164 Esbensen Halfdan Fredrik Rosenvinge 1805 171-172

Drageset Jonas Meyer 1786 164-165 Esbensen Hans Petter 1413 28

Dørmænen Birgitte 445 55-59 Esbensen Inger Merete 1864 172-173

Dørmænen Henrik 446 55-59 Esbensen Kari Sofie 1855 171-172

Dørmænen Madelen 444 55-59 Esbensen Karl Brammer 1848 171

Dørmænen Svein Tore 443 55 Esbensen Maria Helene 1971 173-174

E Esbensen Mette 1955 172-174

Eddy Albert 1654 24-25 Esbensen Ragnhild Viken 1772 173-175

Eddy Charles Clark 1651 24 Esbensen Rolf Erik 1867 172-174

Eddy Harriet 1652 24 Esbensen Simon 1844 171

Eddy Irene 1656 25 Esbensen Stig 1862 171-172

Eddy Nita 1655 25 Esbensen Ulf 1852 1712-172

Eddy Virginia 1653 24 Espedalen Jacob 1092 21

Edland Aleksander Sunde 1861 174-175 FEdland Anders 1776 174-175 Falch Anita Eugenie 494 50-52

Edland Geir Knut 1857 172-174 Falch Merete Gyda 495 50-52

Edland Julie Sunde 1859 174-175 Falch Unni Lucie 493 50-52

Edland Marie Sunde 1860 174-175 Falch Åsmund 492 50

Edland Mia 1972 174-175 Falck- Pedersen X 1804 165

Edland Saavi 1854 172 Falk Sylvia Karoline 1725 54

Edland Tone Guri 1856 172-174 Fallstad Oddrun 1168 123

Eide Ingrid 1589 109-110 Fehr Ludvig Korck Vd 280 113

Eide Ketil 1588 109 Fischer Holger 1519 207

Eide Sigmond 1590 109-110 Fischer Oscar Kristofer Bernt 1518 207

Eidem Nikolai 49 79 Fitch Laura Ann 1568 144

Eidem Randi 201 79 Foldal Dagmar 517 44

Eidisen Anette 1291 127-136 Foldal Dorothy H. 527 45-46

Eidisen Erlend 1292 127-135 Foldal Elna 515 44

Page 227: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 227 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Foldal Liv Muriel 510 44 Hansen Linda 1760 102

Foldal Maria Lorentze 532 46-48 Hansen Ole Edvard 5 39

Foldal Nils Andreas 528 45-46 Hansen Pål 295 76

Foldal Nils Andreas 530 46-48 Hansen Ronny 1761 102-103

Foldal Nils Andreas Larsson 507 44 Hansen Sandra 341 65-69

Foldal Nils Asbjørn 508 44-45 Harila Kenneth 839 68

Foldal Rasmus 531 46-48 Harris Karen Nikoline 667 105

Foldal Reidun 516 44 Hartmann Carl Christian 1918 162

Framholt Kåre 1941 163 Hartmann Signe Bergliot 1919 162-164

Framholt Mette 1794 163-165 Hartvigsen Ida Elise 356 68

FRAMHOLT To Barn 1942 163 Haugen Haugen 756 178

Fuglesang Kåre 1795 165 Haugen Ingjerd 1729 55

G Hegge Sigrun 1642 133

Gadd Anna Karina Erna Astrid 1933 160 Heggebakk ?? 1170 130

Gaino Lillian 630 98 Heggebakk Silje 1172 130-138

Gaup - Lervik Noah Nikolai 328 79 Heggebakk Ørjan 1171 130-138

Gaup Sanny Therese 327 79 Heggtveit Rannveig 1765 83

Gellein Eva Kristin 498 56 Heller Lida Caldwell 1657 24

Glude Heather Elra 1680 144-145 Helmersen Sonja Helene 1636 133

Glude William ( Bill) 1679 144 Heløe Ester 1506 207

Graven Tom Harald 395 63-66 Henderson David 1668 24-25

Grisco Patricia Ellen 2002 143 Henderson Eric 1666 24-25

Grongstad Anne Petra 1268 126-135 Henderson Kelsey 1688 25-26

Grongstad Line Kristine 1266 126-135 Henderson Kendall 1687 25-26

Grongstad Roald 1265 126 Henderson Mark 1667 24-25

Grongstad Tina 1267 126-135 Henderson Wayne Richard 1665 24

Grønningsæter Margaret 535 45 Henninen Ida Dagfryd 330 92

Gundersen Janne 390 67 Henriksen Alexander 355 64-68

Gåsemyr Anna 552 45-47 Henriksen Anne Grethe 352 62-64

Gåsemyr Bjørn 551 45-47 Henriksen Christina 589 89-90

Gåsemyr Lars Audun 549 45 Henriksen Daniel 354 64-68

Gåsemyr Liv 550 45-47 Henriksen Eilif 351 62

H Henriksen Elin Kristin 584 89

Haas Maxime 1660 24 Henriksen Hallgeir 583 89

Haavik Ingrid Rossen 441 55 Henriksen Heidi Irene 353 62-64

Hagen Anne Marie 1879 253-154 Henriksen Ingar Gustav 586 89

Hagen Gudrun Sofie 1833 153 Henriksen Ingeborg Marie 1087 20

Hagen Gunder Olsen 1825 152-153 Henriksen Ingvald 331 89

Hagen Gunnar Helle 1831 153-154 Henriksen Morten 358 64-68

Hagen Gunnar Ola 1828 153-154 Henriksen Tarjei Kristian 588 89

Hagen Gunnar Simon 1827 153 Henriksen Thomas 359 64-68

Hagen Inga Kristine 1832 153 Henriksen Trond Magne 585 89

Hagen Kristine 1886 154-155 Herd Priscilla Gabrielle Constance 315 42

Hagen Thomas 1885 154 Hertel Golla Hansdatter 205 13

Hagen Toralv 1830 153 Hertel Hans Henrik Richardsen 662 13

Hagen Toralv Gunder 1882 154 Hervik Bjørn Eirik 65 76

Hammari Gerd 1237 133 Hervik Erik Kristoffer 2219 76

Hampton Edward George 1575 143 Hervig Kristoffer Olaisen 66 76-77

Hampton Gayle Marie 1576 143-144 Hervik Marit 220 76

Hampton Kristina Lee 1578 143-144 Hervik Rasmus Olaisen 838 76-77

Hampton Mark Edward 1579 143-144 Hess Louise 726 107

Hampton Vicki Lynn 1577 143-144 Hess Susanne Margrethe 660 11

Hanna Helen Lucile 714 213 Hildonen Jan Arild 631 98

Hanna Wiliam Lorimer Ii 715 213 Hildre Inger 1281 126

Hansen ? 1271 101 Hjort Astrid Christie 1973 161-164

Hansen Anna Eugenie 4 38-39-40 Hjort Erling Falsen 1913 161

Hansen Anna Pauline 1515 207 HJORT Fire Barn 1914 161

Hansen Arne Leonhard 1751 101-102 Holdhus Kirsti 1161 129-130

Hansen Britt Eva 1738 131 Holm- Johannessen Gudny 1774 172-173

Hansen Bård Anders 1763 102-103 Holm- Johannessen Per 1868 172

Hansen Emma Ovidie 1625 120 Holm-Johannessen Cecilie 1871 172-173

Hansen Finn Torleif 1750 101-102 Holm-Johannessen Hege 1870 172-173

Hansen Helene Serinna 958 31-32 Holm-Johannessen Peder 1869 172-173

Hansen Ingrid 1152 122 Holm-Johannessen Steven 1960 172-174

Hansen Joakim 342 65-69 Holsve Nina Elisabeth 409 67

Hansen Kari Julianne 1272 101-102 Horchitz Annebelle Lee 1615 143

Hansen Kjell 340 65 Horn Sigrid 1910 161

Hansen Lill Karin 1764 102-103 Hov Sylvia 1646 133

Page 228: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 228 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Huber David Andrew 1539 214 Karlsen Stein Walter 1287 126-135

Huber Ferdinand Vincent 1536 214 Karlsen Ståle Johan 1288 126

Huber Ferdinand Vincent 1537 214 Karlsen Tormod 1285 126

Huber Nancy Ann 1538 214 Karlsen Trond Inge 369 63-65

Husby Thora 1593 108 Kashio Erik 291 75-76

Hustadnes Ragnhild 1194 123 Kashio Etsuko 312 76

Høyer Kjell Arne 357 64 Kashio Makoto 289 77

I Kashio Masahide 288 75

Ida 2010 20 Kashio Rumi 292 76

Imiskund Helene 738 108 Kashio Ryunosuke 293 76-77

Ireland Dorothy H. 526 45 Kashio Sakura 294 76-77

Irgens Anne Hadelen Krog 942 159 Kashio Soonouske 941 76-77

Isaksen Jørgen 684 197 Kashio Tor Hideki 290 75-76

Istad Janne Helene 1159 129-138 Kaspersen Alvilde 391 67-71

Istad Liv Ragnhild 1164 122-130 Kaspersen Frank Arne 384 63-67

Istad Marie 1163 130 Kaspersen Hilde Mari 383 63-66

Istad Martine 1162 129-138 Kaspersen Jon Christian 382 63

Istad Paul 1155 122 Kent Pauline 711 213

Istad Roy Martin 1160 122-129 Kildal Johanne Bernhoft 688 199-200

Istad Terje 1156 122-129 Kilen Ann Kristin 1735 53

Istad Tom Andre 1158 122-137 Kjær Hanna Josefine 416 64-69

Ittelin Julie 1222 120 Kjær Julie 414 64-68

Ittelin Oskar 1626 120 Kjær Rune 413 64

Iversen 1517 208 Kjær Siri 415 64-69

Iversen Caroline Birgitte 760 181 Kjølstad Gunn Hilde 1883 154

Iversen Eli 362 64 Klem Gustav 737 108

Iversen Harriet Charlotte 437 51 Klem Lajla 736 108

J Kleven Anna Oline 1411 28

Jacobsen Aina 1303 127 Kloch Erika Lorenze 68 34

Jacobsen Johan Bjørvig 259 29 Klæboe Henrich Johan Henrichsen 659 11

Jacobsen Marie 1069 29 Klæboe Maren Anna Henriksdatter 54 11-13

Jane 1591 110 Knecht Elsie 1935 160

Jogert Esben 1312 127-136 Knudsen Henry 522 45

Jogert Fred Einar 1310 127 Knudsen Jill 480 53

Jogert Rune 1311 127-136 Knudsen Jørgine 707 213

Johansdatter Margrethe 1061 185 Korbi Eva Karolina Persdatter 6 39

Johansen Enid 1276 120-126 Korvanen Malin Knudsen 484 53-58

Johansen Magne 1275 120-126 Korvanen Sunniva 483 53-58

Johansen Magnus 1274 120 Kostamo Emma 1101 117

Johansen Reidun 573 86 Kramer Ray 1799 173

Johnsen Arthur Aa 197 75 Krane Anna Richarda Floer 792 190

Johnsen Maren-Mette 62 75 Kras Christopher Monsen 579 95

Joki Bjørn Håkon 604 93 Kras Elisabeth 578 95

Joki Nikolai Olaussen 605 93 Kreutz Hans Petter 787 189-190

Jutkvam Nina 558 46 Kreutz Richard Sverre 786 189

Jørgensdatter Jensine Marie 683 196-197 Kristensdatter Berit Kristine 1470 197

Jørgensen Jørgen 1130 122-128 Kristensdatter Sara Dorthea 1328 32

Jørgensen Nils Fredrik 1129 122 Kristensen Petrine Pauline 1406 28

Jørgensen Stein 1131 122-129 Kristiansen Agnes 1200 123

K Kristiansen Greta 587 89

Kaldestad Haldis 411 62 Kristine 1559 58

Kallen Kenneth Nicolas 1620 145-146 Kristoffersen Hans Michael 1327 32

Kallen Mark Andrew 1566 145 Krohn Blanche 1887 168-169

Kallen Megan Christine 1621 145-146 Krohn Hans Iversen 1814 167-168

Kallen Rick James 1622 145-146 Krohn Helga 1892 168-169

Kalliainen Lembi Natalie 11 62 Krohn Howard 1950 168-169

Karlsen Ann 1174 130 Krohn Ivar Karl 1889 168

Karlsen David Esaias Ottesen 374 65-70 Krohn Jens 1893 168-169

Karlsen Georg Martin 371 63-66 Krohn Karl Asbjørn 1891 168

Karlsen Helena Solheim 381 66-70 Krohn Margit 1954 168-169

Karlsen Håvard 370 63-66 Krohn Sigmund 1952 168-169

Karlsen Idar 367 63 Krohn Simon Einar 1890 168

Karlsen Isabel 378 66-70 Krohn Stella 1949 168-169

Karlsen Isak Alexander Ottesen 373 65-69 Kvien Andreas Halvor 360 62

Karlsen Marita 379 66-70 Kvien Bjørn Are 361 62-64

Karlsen Ragna 1286 126 Kvien Catherine Iversen 366 64-68

Karlsen Raymond 1289 126-135 Kvien Mia Elise Haag 365 68-71

Karlsen Ronald 368 63-65 Kvien Stian 363 64-68

Page 229: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 229 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

L Meyer Kristen Johanne Fredrikke 1926 160-162

Langaard Conrad 724 107 Meyer Morten 1778 162-164

Langaard Katrine Antonie 722 107 Meyer Øyvin Morten 1929 160-163

Larsen Espen 608 92-93 Michaelsen Anna Amalie 254 28

Larsen Fredrik 607 92-93 Michaelsen Maren Anna 257 28

Larsen Harriet 1216 124 Michaelsen Marie Nicoline Fredrikke 255 28-29

Larsen Svein 606 92 Michaelsen Michael Julius Høyem 253 27-28

Larsen Victor 1573 142 Michaelsen Paul 946 28

Larson Joyce Marie 1574 142 Michaelsen Paul Mikael Julius 256 28-29

Larsson Lars 827 44 Mietinen Emma Kristine 1627 120

Laub Maud 716 213 Milligan Elizabeth Marie 713 213

Leberg Walter Thor 1580 144 Moe Alfhild 1128 119-121

Lervick Karl Olen 1677 144-146 Moe Andreas 1127 119

Lervick Michael Olen 1676 144 Moe Andreas 1137 122-129

Lervick Paul Michael 1678 144-146 Moe Berit 1136 122-129

Lervik Anders 325 79 Moe Birger 1135 122-129

Lervik Jens Kristian 323 79 Moe Bjørn 1134 122-129

Lervik Kristian 322 79 Moe Margot 1141 121-128

Lervik Marit 326 79 Moe Svein 1142 121-128

Lervik Ragnhild 324 79 Moe Thoralf 1132 119-122

Lillevik 1273 102 Moe Trygve 1139 119-121

Lillevik Hanne Elisabeth 1758 102-103 Moksnes Ove 1119 118

Lillevik Roy Arild 1756 102-103 Moksnes Sven 1120 118-121

Lillevik Svein Hugo 1757 102-103 Monsdatter Henriette Karen Anna 959 31-32

Lilleåren Anna Johannessen 1951 168 Monsen Bodil 577 95

Lindeberg Marie 249 140 Monsen Hilbert Sigmunn 332 95

Livingston Dixie Anne 1564 143 Monsen Sigmund 576 95

Lorentzen Tamara 376 68 Moorhead Necis Ceclie 1543 214

Lottie 1572 142 Mortensdatter Birthe 1071 36

Ludvigsen Vibeke Renate 377 66 Moxnes Thorild 1149 129

Lund Hannah Tonette 502 52-56 Mudenia Jane Rita 452 52-55

Lund Jan Erik 500 52 Mudenia Ranveig 1730 52

Lund Just 274 107 Murti Benjamin J. 1670 144

Lund Tonje Eugenie 501 52-56 Murti Benjamin,jr Kamlesh 1671 144-145

Løken Henriette 1944 162-164 Murti Jared Kristofer 1672 144-146

Løken Johan 1916 162 Murti Jordan Daniel 1673 144-146

M Myrvold Hege 1755 102

Magallanes Julio Cesar 396 66 Myrvold Merete 1754 102

Mandin Amy 1675 144-146 Møller Celine 650 83-84

Mandin Michael 1674 144 Møller Petter 649 83

Markussen Viviikke Elisabeth 147 17-19 Møller William 651 83-84

Mathiassen Rasmus 719 8 NMathisen Anna 1245 125 Natvig Regine Birgithe 250 16-30-31

Mathisen Britt 1123 65-121 Natvig Søren 939 31

Mathisen Christoffer 406 67-71 Nicolaisen Johan Emil 246 194

Mathisen Emily Tomine 410 67-71 Nicolaisen Ole 682 194

Mathisen Ernst Leif 402 63 Nicolaisen Trygve Dahl 1350 31-33

Mathisen Henrik 407 67-71 Nielsen Anthon Julius 1902 157

Mathisen Linda Irene 403 63-67 Nielsen Anton Julius 1823 156-157

Mathisen Rune Georg 404 63-67 Nielsen Axel Johannes 1458 185

Mathisen Thomas 405 64-67 Nielsen Bergliot 1904 157

Mattila Wilhelmine (mina) Sofie Johansen 954 114-117 Nielsen Betzy Marie 1461 185-186

Meier Mette 408 67 Nielsen Einar 1903 157

Merill Georg Edwin 1542 214-215 Nielsen Haldis 1905 157

Merill George F. 1540 214 Nielsen Reidar 1906 157

Merill Linda Ann 1541 214 Nielsen Sigmund 1462 185-186

Mette 1597 109 Nielsen Simon 1900 157

Meyer Bergliot Mathilde 1884 160-162 Nielsen Steffen 1901 157

Meyer Eline 1784 164-165 Nielsen Søren Julius 1459 185

Meyer Elisabeth Støre 1961 152-164 Nielsen Tordis 1463 185-186

Meyer Erling Johannes Irgens Bruun 1920 160-162 Niemi Turid Solveig 200 64

Meyer Eva Magdalena Katharina 1873 160-163 Nikolaisen Arne Paul 506 51

Meyer Gisle 1780 162-165 Nilsdatter Gurina Maria 663 13

Meyer Helge 1779 162-164 Nilsen Gerd 1145 122

Meyer John 1777 162-164 Nilsen Kurt Ove 1988 193

Meyer John 1924 162 Nordlund Maria Kristina Elisaberth 1726 54

Meyer John Martin Edvard 1818 160 Nordlund Tanja Liv Elisabeth Boyle 427 54-58

Meyer Kaare Christian 1923 160-162 Næss Elida 346 65-69-128-137

Page 230: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 230 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Næss Geir Olav 338 63-65-128 Pettersen Fridtjof Georg 816 50

Næss Jan Helge 336 63 Pettersen Gerd 1185 123

Næss Jone Engesæther 350 65-69 Pettersen Gyda Mimmi 30 50

Næss Lydia 347 65-69-128-137 Pettersen Katrine Gaustad 285 67

Næss Mathilde 344 65-69-128-137 Pettersen Sofie 817 50

Næss Otilie 345 65-69-128-137 Pleym Arnfinn 1213 124-132

Næss Sindre 339 63-65 Pleym Bente 1215 124-132

Næss Tove Karin 337 63-65 Pleym Nancy 1214 124-132

Næss Trym Engesæther 349 65-69 Pleym Otto Andreas 1070 29

Nørve Anne Foldal 554 44-46 Pleym Torgeir 1212 124-132

Nørve Hans Christian 560 46-48 Pleym Trygve 1211 124

Nørve Hans H. 553 44 Povea Gustavo 1737 52

Nørve Julia Nicoline 561 46-48 Povea Leandro Christopher Falch 497 52-56

Nørve Knud Hans 555 44-46 Povea Marcello Andre Falch 496 52-56

Nørve Linn Charlotte 559 46-47 Povea Matheo Gellein 499 56-59

Nøstblad Anders 1967 154 Pratt Dorothy Mae 1562 143

Nøstblad Mariet 1968 154 Prøsch Carl 1483 201

Nøstblad Thomas 1966 154 QNøstblad XX 1965 154 Quist Marie Louise "Maja" 1845 171

O ROlaisen Anne Margrete 45 75 Rafaelsen Henrik 590 89-90

Olaisen Arthur Sang 98 76-77 Ram Bigga Gunhild Andersdatter 1355 33

Olaisen John Arthur Schjelderup 63 75-76 Rasmussen Andrea Maria 119 14

Olaisen John Røst Schjelderup 27 75 Rasmussen Hans 973 8

Olaisen John Steinar Schjelderup 1 75 Rasmussen Jens Florup 805 14

Olaisen Mette Schjelderup 64 75-76 Rasmussen Runar 571 86-87

Olaisen Solveig 47 75 Rasmussen Vilde 572 86-87

Olaisen Svein Håkon Thrane 316 75-77 Rautio Dagny Signora 1631 125

Olaisen Turid 46 75 Reinholtsen Georg Kristian 139 178-179

Olaussen Eskil Dahl 603 92-93 Reinholtsen Ole Johan 140 178

Olaussen Kine Dahl 602 92-93 Reinholtsen Richard Nicolai 138 178

Olaussen Leif Erik 601 92 Reitan Anne Lise 457 52

Olsen Andreas 2003 23 Rockmann Johan 780 182

Ongamo Milla 1140 121 Rokseth Christian Rolf 99 42

Opdahl Ann Elisabeth 1732 56 Rokseth David Sebian Paez 321 42

Opdahl Chris Alvin 1733 56-59 Rokseth Emilie Aylin Paez 320 42

Osimili Erik Chinedu 582 95 Rokseth Olav 25 42

Osimili Ozaka 580 95 Rokseth Olav William 100 42

Ottesen Eva Helen 372 65 Rokseth Rolf 26 42

Ottesen Michael Jarle 375 65-69 Rokseth Tamia Camila Paez 319 42

Ovesdatter Trine Eline Ovidia 960 31-32 Rolfsdatter Karen Marie 2004 23

P Roll 1762 102

Pak Anna Dorthea 1353 33 Romseland Inger Berit 1981 191

Pak Nils Jon Olsen 1354 33 Rosenvinge Guri Fredrikke 1808 171

Patton Christine 1581 109 Rossebø Karen 542 46

Pedersdatter Anne Martha 282 8-28 Rostad Anna Dorothea 1499 207

Pedersdatter Maren 966 8 Rushfeldt Alfine 1166 119

Pedersen Anita 399 66 Rushfeldt Andreas 1253 134-140

Pedersen Atle 485 54 Rushfeldt Ann Irene 1258 126-134

Pedersen Barbro 1188 131-138 Rushfeldt Arild 1230 120-125

Pedersen Bjørnar 613 92 Rushfeldt Bjørg Karen 1234 120-125

Pedersen Ellen Helen 638 98 Rushfeldt Bjørgun 1324 128-137

Pedersen Gry 1189 131-138 Rushfeldt Elin Solaug 1260 120-126

Pedersen John Christer 455 55 Rushfeldt Elise 1250 134-140

Pedersen Kristian 456 55-59 Rushfeldt Halgeir 1320 128-137

Pedersen Kristian 639 98-99 Rushfeldt Helmer 1315 121

Pedersen Mads Dahl 616 92-93 Rushfeldt Håkon 1248 125-134

Pedersen Monica Dahl 487 54-58 Rushfeldt Ingvald 1229 120

Pedersen Nils 732 8 Rushfeldt Ivar Brynjulf 1244 120-125

Pedersen Ninni Isabell Dahl 615 92-93 Rushfeldt Johne 1251 134-140

Pedersen Preben Dahl 614 92-93 Rushfeldt Jonar Andreas 1247 125-134

Pedersen Sverre 1187 131 Rushfeldt Jostein 1319 128-137

Pedersen Trond - Atle Dahl 486 54-58 Rushfeldt Knut 1317 121-128

Pence Ann Louise 1669 25 Rushfeldt Kolbjørn 1322 128-137

Persen Maud 1263 134 Rushfeldt Lillian 1246 125-134

Petersen Hans Gievær 1096 19 Rushfeldt Markus 1254 134-140

Pettersen Anna Margrethe 164 19 Rushfeldt Mette 1257 126-134

Pettersen Elisabeth 1999 190 Rushfeldt Sigurd 1323 128-137

Page 231: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 231 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Rushfeldt Stein Torbjørn 1259 126-134 Seppænen Brita Helene 629 97-98

Rushfeldt Ståle 1233 125-133 Simonsen Oddbjørg 462 53

Rushfeldt Torbjørn Mikael 1264 134-140 Sjøwall Disa 1829 153

Rushfeldt Trine 1232 125-133 Skappel Halvor 1505 207

Rushfeldt Valter 1316 121-128 Skinner Daniel 258 28

Rushfeldt Ørjan 1249 125-134 Skjong Mina Petrine 1468 197

Rushfeldt Øystein 1255 120-125 Skjong Rasmus Joakim Pedersen 1469 197

Rushfeldt Åse 1277 120 Skrede Nina Skrede 1731 52

Rødal Mathie 581 95 Skøtt Marianne 634 97

Rønneberg Elisabeth Rossebø 545 46-47 Slungård Marit 1252 134

Rønneberg Henning Rossebø 543 46-47 Smuk Aud Henriette 1748 101-102

Rønneberg Joachim H. 538 44 Solbak Torhild 529 46

Rønneberg Jostein 539 44-46 Soleglad Anne 1448 185

Rønneberg Liv Birthe 541 44-45 Soleglad Brynjulf 1454 185-186

Rønneberg Trygve Joachim Rossebø 544 46-47 Soleglad Golla Hertel Thorsdatter 1447 185

Rønneberg Åse Dorthe 540 44-45 Soleglad Hans 1446 185

Røttimann 1959 173 Soleglad Lorentze Andrea 1449 185

S Soleglad Marianne Kristine 1450 185-186

Sagen Finn 1261 134 Soleglad Ragna 1451 185-186

Sagen Sara Irene 1262 134-140 Soleglad Reidar 1453 185-186

Salamonsen Egil 385 66 Soleglad Thor 1452 185-186

Salamonsen Eskil 387 66-70 Soleglad Thor 230 184-185

Salamonsen Sigrid 389 67-70 Soleglad Vilhelm Paludan 1455 185-186

Salamonsen Sondre 386 66-70 Solheim Mari Lynn 380 66

Salamonsen Vebjørn 388 66-70 Sotkajærvi Gustav Henrik 596 89-90

Salkjelsvik Aslak 621 97-98 Sotkajærvi Vigdis 595 89

Salkjelsvik Judith Petra 329 97 Sponland Egil 523 45

Salkjelsvik Jørgen 622 97-98 Sponland Margrete 524 45-46

Salkjelsvik Karoline Pedersen 640 98-99 Sponland Peder Julius 525 45-46

Samuelsen 1745 101 Stav Eva 1231 125

Samuelsen Joachim Rønneberg 548 101 Stavseth Karen Dorthea Svensdatter 127 177-178

Samuelsen Karl Emil 546 42 Steinsvik Torill 646 83

Samuelsen Kristin Rønneberg 547 44-45 Stenby Arne Oskar 1225 124

Samuelsen Lars 1747 44-45 Stenby Arvid Regnor 1228 124-132

Samuelsen Åse Olaug 1746 44-45 Stenby Bjørn Harald 1226 124-132

Sanchez Rocio Paez 318 44 Stenby Ørjan 1227 124-132

Sandvig Dagmar F. 520 57-59 Stock 1561 118

Sandvig Grete 519 57-60 Stock Agnes 1314 128-136

Sandvig Gudrun 521 57 Stock Agnes Kristine 1224 120-124

Sandvig Peder Julius 518 101 Stock Aksel 1107 118-119

Sandvik Lukas 470 101 Stock Aksel Johan 1198 123-131

Sandvik Seline 1736 101 Stock Aksel Kildal 1103 118

Sandvik,jr Steinar 469 101 Stock Anna Elfryda 1110 118-120

Sarre Anders Leonhard 1270 101 Stock Anne Rigmor 1195 123-131

Sarre Inga Alette 1073 101 Stock Asbjørn 1193 119-123

Sarre Isak Leonhard 1744 101 Stock Beate 1196 123-131

Sarre Johan 1743 101 Stock Bjarne 1308 127-136

Sarre Kaisa Bigga 1741 101 Stock Bjarne Godtfred 1113 118-121

Sarre Mathis Ole 1742 101 Stock Bjarnhild 1295 121-127

Sarre Reidun Synnøve Hansen 1752 101-102 Stock Bjørn Dagfinn 1223 120-124

Schanke Carl Johan 937 113 Stock Bjørn Magne 1306 127-136

Schanke Gudny 1851 171 Stock Charlotte 1313 128-136

Schanke Julie Sofie 172 112-113 Stock Daniel 1739 131-139

Schanke Åse 796 191 Stock Elisabeth 1197 131-139

Scharf Myrt 712 213 Stock Ellinor 1176 123-130

Schiotz Axeline 705 212-213 Stock Elvira Magdalena 1115 118-121

Schiotz Fredrik Axel 706 213 Stock Evy 1309 127-136

Schultze Anne B. M. 1523 210 Stock Finn Roar 1191 123-131

Schultze Anton Marius 241 209-210 Stock Freider 1278 120-126

Schultze Karl E. 1520 210 Stock Frode 1282 126-135

Schultze Karl E. 1526 210 Stock Geir Tore 1190 123-131

Schultze Karo E. 1524 210 Stock Helene Lovise 1204 123-132

Schultze Martha A. 1525 210 Stock Hugo 1167 119-123

Schultze Olaf Dahl 1522 210 Stock Håkon 1304 127-136

Schultze Sivert Ragnar 1521 210 Stock Håkon Ferdinant 1104 118-119

Schultze Valborg 1527 210 Stock Ida 1150 129-137

Sculler Grant 434 55 Stock Jan Arne 1173 123-130

Semb Line Haag 364 68 Stock Johan Rudolf 1112 118-120

Page 232: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 232 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Stock John Reidar 1284 126-135 TStock Jorunn Bergljot 1205 119-124 Tangen Dag 1997 191-193

Stock Jøte 1297 121-127 Tangen Mette Marie 1998 191-193

Stock Karl 1144 119-122 Tangen Norman 1982 191

Stock Karl Aksel 1201 123-131 Tangen Per Olaf 1996 191-193

Stock Karl Fredrik 1102 118 Taxbro Carl Erik 534 44-45

Stock Kasper Kristoffer 1106 118-119 Taxbro Carl Wilhelm 533 44

Stock Kjell Roger 1148 122-129 Taxbro Erik Grønningsæter 536 45-46

Stock Klara Therese 1108 118-119 Taxbro Henriette Grønningsæter 537 45-46

Stock Kristine 1283 126-135 Thode Bjørn 1501 207-208

Stock Lisbeth 1146 122-129 Thode Hans Jacob 1507 207-208

Stock Liss Inger 1186 123-130 Thode Jacob Georg 1492 206

Stock Magnhild 1305 127-136 Thode Jon With 1496 206-207

Stock Marcus 1740 131-139 Thode Paul Edouard 1500 207-208

Stock Margit Lovise 1105 118-119 Thode Paul Edvard 1491 206

Stock Odd Aksel 1199 119-123 Thode Paul Edvard 1494 206-207

Stock Oddrun Elisabeth 1183 123-130 Thode Ruth With 1495 206-207

Stock Ragny Wenche 1154 119-122 Thode Ulf 1502 207-208

Stock Randi Mathilde 1111 118-120 Thorbekk Karen 429 54-58

Stock Regnor Wilfred 1109 118-120 Thorbekk Magnus 430 54-58

Stock Reidun 1280 120-126 Thorsbekk Arne 428 54

Stock Ronald 1296 121-127 Thorsen Bjørn Erik 626 97

Stock Rune 1181 123-130 Tidemann Martha Andrea 952 141-142

Stock Ruth 1279 120-126 Tjelle Ingjerd 591 89

Stock Rønnaug 1169 123-130 Tjelle Irina Henriksen 592 89-90

Stock Sara 1147 129-137 Tjelle Jonas Henriksen 594 89-90

Stock Siv Trude 1192 123-131 Tjelle Magnus Henriksen 593 89-90

Stock Steinar 1153 122-129 Torget Arne 1838 150

Stock Tone 1299 121-127 Torget Kari 1842 150

Stock Torbjørn 1151 119-122 Torget Stein 1840 150-151

Stock Tore 1203 123-132 Torget Tove 1841 150

Stock Torstein 1184 119-123 Torseter Jan 59 75

Stock Turid 1298 121-127 Torseter Jostein 61 75-76

Stock Vally Dorthea 1114 118-121 Torseter Margrete 60 75-76

Stock Vigdis 1182 123-130 Torseter Marius 957 76-77

Stock Yngve 1175 130-138 Trentief Nicolai 1243 134-139

Stock Øyvind 1202 123-131 Trentief Pål Ivan 1242 134

Stock Åse 1165 119-122 UStousland Anne-Karine 1932 163-165 Ulich Wally Berhardine 938 113

Stousland Carl Georg Andreas 1931 163-165 Ulvestad Andrè 1638 133-139

Stousland Carl Jacob 1930 163 Ulvestad Jan Ove 1634 133

Stousland Cristine 1791 165-166 Ulvestad Jeanette 1637 133-139

Stousland Eric 1790 165-166 Ulvestad Madeleine 1639 133-139

Stousland Falck- Pedersen Cecilie Karine 1793 165-166 Ulvestad Ola Ulvestad 1635 133

Stousland Falck- Pedersen Didrik Andreas 1792 165-166 Unni 1094 73

Stousland Scott 1789 165-166 VStrøm Anna Dorthea 1898 149-150 Vagle Arne Johan 800 192

Strømstad Birgithe Rebekka 114 187 Vagle Hege Østvold 802 192-193

Strømstad Jørgen Andreas 115 187 Vartiainen Hilma 1133 122

Støre Ragnhild 1925 162 Viken Aud Marit 1770 173

Størseth Marie Meyer 1785 165-166 Vist Daniel Boyle 431 54-58

Sudgarden Inger A. 652 83 Vist Felix Lund 1558 58-60

Sunde Hanne 1302 127-136 Vist Ida Boyle 433 55-59

Sunde Kari 1858 174 Vist Jarle 1727 54

Sunde Lars Bjarne 1301 127-136 Vist Pernille Boyle 432 55-59

Sunde Rolf 1300 127 WSundfær Liv Hansen 641 83 Webb Blanche L.F. 1847 168

Sundin Mats 420 51 Weiser Hans 725 107

Sunquist Kari 1138 122 Weiser Lily Auguste 723 107

Sveen Alf 801 192 Wennberg Augusta Septima 698 203-205

Sveinhaug Ida Østvold 1987 192-193 Wennberg Ole Simonsen 813 205

Sveinhaug Rolf 1986 192 Wennberg Oline Sophie 313 203-205

Sørensen Freddy 1645 133 Widding Sara Bing 762 145-147

Sørensen Trude 1644 133 Wilcox Caitlin 1701 145-147

Søyland 1484 201 Wilcox Elise 1702 145-147

Søyland Aase 1485 201 Wilcox Grant 1700 145

Søyland Anders Jon 1486 201 Wilhelmsen Benedicte 1604 109-110

Søyland Inger Johanne 1487 201-202 Wilhelmsen Bent Christian 1603 109

Page 233: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Page 233 of 233

Name and ID number Pages Name and ID number Pages

Wilhelmsen Karl Oscar 1606 109-110 XWilhelmsen Nils Christian 1605 109-110 Xxon Amber 1802 174-175

Winsnes Erlend 1865 173-175 Xxon Matthew 1803 174-175

Winsnes Ingvild 1866 173-175 Xxon Son 1800 173-174

Winsnes Wilhelm Harald 1863 173 ØWith Aagot 702 205-207 Ødegaard Ingrid 1584 109

With Anna Birgitte Edwinsdatter 686 197 Øien Andreas 788 190

With Anna Susanne 239 15-209-210 Øien Andreas 789 190

With Anne Birgitte Sivertsdatter 693 200 Økland Kari Ann 476 51

With Arthur Schiotz 708 213 Østerås Fire barn 1928 162-165

With Augusta 700 205-206 Østerås Otto Kalmar 1927 162

With Bergljot 1516 207-208 Østring Ole Andreas 1894 12

With Boletta 704 205-206 Østring Olilie (Tilla) Andrea 1895 12-148

With Dagny 1475 200-201 Østvold Anna 776 181-182

With Dagny 1481 200-201 Østvold Anne 1992 191-192

With Daniel Andreas 240 15-212-213 Østvold Bertha Mathea 781 189

With Edvard Reinhold Andreas 1465 196-198 Østvold Caroline 1985 192-193

With Edvin Marinius 234 15-196-197 Østvold Elisabeth Johanne 793 190

With Emma 1037 15-211 Østvold Fredrikke ( Moja) Marie 1979 190-191

With Emma Karoline 236 15-211 Østvold Hans Christian 798 191-192

With Georg Orlando 1528 213 Østvold Hans Christian Ingemann 775 181-188-189

With Georg Orlando 709 213 Østvold Hans Christian Ingemann 794 190-191

With Gregory Georg 1530 213-214 Østvold Kirsti 797 191-192

With Gudrun 935 205-206 Østvold Marit 1991 191-192

With H. N. Kitti 1473 200-201 Østvold Olav Andreas 1977 190-191

With Helen Anna 1533 213-214 Østvold Olav Andreas 1993 191-192

With Helga Richardsdatter 696 205-206 Østvold Olav Andreas 785 189-190

With Hildur 1466 197 Østvold Ole 943 189

With Jensine M. 1471 197-198 Østvold Ragnhild 777 181-182

With Jensine Marie Sivertsdatter 692 200 Østvold Ragnvald 2 782 189

With Jr. Richard Bernhard 701 205-207 Østvold Ragnvald 778 181-182

With Karoline Marie 1474 200-201 Østvold Sigrid Golla Caroline 783 189-190

With Linda Joan 1532 213-214 Østvold Siri 799 191-192

With Nancy Hanna 1534 213-214 Østvold Sjur Ove 1994 191-192

With Nanna (anna) Birgitte Karoline 694 205-206 Østvold Sverre 1995 191-193

With Ole Wold Dahl 237 15-211 Østvold Sverre 784 189-190

With Oline Sophie 703 205-206 Østvold Sverre Emanuel 1978 190-191

With Peter James 1531 213-214 Østvold Tone Vagle 803 192-193

With Reggi 1480 200-201 Øvergård Ole Mikkelsen 1456 185

With Richard Bernhard 156 15-203-205

With Richard Daniel 1545 214-215

With Richard Edwin 1535 213-214

With Richarda Oline 695 205-206

With Rolf Hjalmar 1467 197

With Rolf Hjalmar 685 197

With Sara Johanne Sivertsdatter 690 200

With Sivert Anton Dahl 235 15-199-200

With Sivert Odin 233 15-195

With Sivert Regnor 106 14

With Sivert Regnor 1472 200

With Sivert Regnor 232 15-195

With Sivert Regnor 687 197

With Sophus Regnor 697 205-206

With Susanna Dorthea 831 31

With Thorolf Edwin 710 213

With Traci Lynn 1544 214-215

With Valborg 1482 201

With Valborg Andrea Sivertsdatter 691 200

Wold Baard Larsen 281 8

Wold Caroline Sophie 814 205

Wold Ellen Martha 121 8-14-16-31-205

Wold Regine Birgitte 810 14-31

Page 234: Kvæfjord Dale The Dahl FAMILYTREE - Dahlslekt

Vik in Ibestad anno 2010